This is a modern-English version of A History, of the War of 1812-15 Between the United States and Great Britain, originally written by Johnson, Rossiter.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
A HISTORY, OF THE WAR OF 1812-15 BETWEEN THE UNITED STATES AND GREAT BRITAIN
By Rossiter Johnson
Dodd, Mead and Company Publishers
1882
CONTENTS
TABLE OF CONTENTS
DETAILED CONTENTS.
CHAPTER I.
Causes of the War, 001.
Franklin's Prediction, 001.—British Feeling
toward
the United States, 002.—The
Unsurrendered Posts, 003.—Indian Troubles,
4.—Impressment of Seamen, 007.—The
Decrees and Orders in Council,
13.—Declaration of War, 018.
CHAPTER II.
The Detroit
Campaign, 021.—First Bloodshed, 021.—Attitude of
Political Parties, 022.—Plans for Invading Canada, 026.—Capture of
Michilimackinac, 030.—Engagements at the River Raisin and
Maguaga,
31.—Battle of Chicago, 032.—Hull's
Surrender, 036.
CHAPTER III.
Fights with the Indians, 038.—Tecumseh's
Scheme, 038.—Harrison's March
to Fort
Wayne, 039.—Defence of Fort Harrison, 041.—Defence of Fort
Madison, 043.—Ball's Fight, 044.
CHAPTER IV.
The Battle of Queenstown, 046.—Fight
at Gananoqui, 046.—Expedition
against
Ogdensburg, 047.—Elliott captures two
War-vessels,
48.—Gathering of Forces on the Niagara, 049.—Battle of Queenstown,
50.—Death
of General Brock, 055.
CHAPTER V.
War on the Ocean, 061.—The President
and the Little Belt,
62.—The President and the
Belvidera, 064.—Hull's Race, 066.—The
Constitution and the Guerriere,
068.—Effect of the Victory, 071.—The
Wasp and the Frolic, 073.—The
United States and the Macedonian,
76.—The Constitution
and the Java, 079.—Nelson's
Prediction, 083.
CHAPTER VI.
Minor
Battles in the West, 084.—Winchester's
Expedition, 084.—Fight at
Frenchtown,
085.—Massacre at the Raisin, 087.—Siege of Fort Meigs, 090.
CHAPTER VII.
War on the Lakes, 098.—The
Armaments, 098.—Preliminary Operations,
99.—Expedition against York, 100.—Death
of General Pike, 103.—Capture
of Fort
George, 107.—Attack on Sackett's Harbor, 112.—Battle of Stony
Creek, 118.
CHAPTER VIII.
Battle of the
Thames, 140—Harrison's Advance, 140.—Proctor's
Retreat
141.—Nature of the Ground, 141.—Disposition of the Indians, 143.—The
Battle, 144.—Death
of Tecumseh, 146.—Flight of Proctor, 146.—Results
of the Campaign, 148.
CHAPTER IX.
Wilkinson's
Expedition, 149.—Armstrong's Plans, 149.—Position of the
Troops, 150.—Descent of the St. Lawrence, 152—Battle
of Chrysler's
Field, 154.—Hampton's
Defeat, 159.—Cost of the Campaign,
160.—Effects on the Niagara Frontier, 161.—Capture of Fort Niagara,
163.—Destruction of Buffalo and other Villages,
166.
CHAPTER X.
War in the South,
168.—Engagement at Lewistown, 168.—Fight in Delaware
Bay, 169.—Burning of Havre de Grace, Georgetown, and
Fredericktown,
171.—Battle at Craney
Island, 172.—Destruction of Hampton,
176.—Troubles with the Southern Indians, 178.—Fight at Burnt
Corn Creek, 179.—Massacre at Fort Mims, 182.—Jackson's
Campaign,
183.—Fights at
Tallus-chatches, Talladega, the Hillabee Towns, Autosse,
and
Econochaca, 183.—Dale's Canoe Fight, 188.
CHAPTER XI.
Naval Battles of
1813, 195.—The Hornet and the Peacock,
195.—The
Chesapeake and the Shannon,
197.—The Argus and the Pelican,
201.—The Enterprise and the Boxer,
202.—Decatur Blockaded at New
London,
204.—A New Embargo, 206.
CHAPTER XII.
Privateers, 207.—Their
Number and Importance, 207.—Jefferson's
Opinion
of them, 208.—A London
Journal's Prediction, 211.—Some of their
Captures, and some of their Battles, 212.—The
Yankee's Laughable
Exploit, 222.
CHAPTER XIII.
Peace Negotiations, 223.—Campaign
against the Creeks, 223.—Condition
of
Affairs at the Opening of the Third Year, 223.—Congressional
Appropriations, 224—Russian Offers of Mediation, 225.—Jackson's
Preparations, 227.—Battles of Emucfau, Enotachopco, and
Horseshoe Bend, 227.
CHAPTER I.
Causes of the War, 001.
Franklin's Prediction, 001.—British Sentiment
toward
the United States, 002.—The
Unsurrendered Posts, 003.—Indian Issues,
4.—Impressment of Sailors, 007.—The
Decrees and Orders in Council,
13.—Declaration of War, 018.
CHAPTER II.
The Detroit
Campaign, 021.—First Bloodshed, 021.—Position of
Political Parties, 022.—Plans for Invasion of Canada, 026.—Capture of
Michilimackinac, 030.—Engagements at the River Raisin and
Maguaga,
31.—Battle of Chicago, 032.—Hull's
Surrender, 036.
CHAPTER III.
Conflicts with the Indians, 038.—Tecumseh's
Plan, 038.—Harrison's March
to Fort
Wayne, 039.—Defense of Fort Harrison, 041.—Defense of Fort
Madison, 043.—Ball's Fight, 044.
CHAPTER IV.
The Battle of Queenstown, 046.—Fight
at Gananoqui, 046.—Expedition
against
Ogdensburg, 047.—Elliott captures two
Warships,
48.—Gathering of Troops on the Niagara, 049.—Battle of Queenstown,
50.—Death
of General Brock, 055.
CHAPTER V.
War at Sea, 061.—The President and the Little Belt,
62.—The President and the
Belvidera, 064.—Hull's Race, 066.—The
Constitution and the Guerriere,
068.—Impact of the Victory, 071.—The
Wasp and the Frolic, 073.—The
United States and the Macedonian,
76.—The Constitution
and the Java, 079.—Nelson's
Prediction, 083.
CHAPTER VI.
Minor Battles in the West, 084.—Winchester's
Expedition, 084.—Fight at
Frenchtown,
085.—Massacre at the Raisin, 087.—Siege of Fort Meigs, 090.
CHAPTER VII.
War on the Lakes, 098.—The
Armaments, 098.—Preliminary Actions,
99.—Expedition against York, 100.—Death
of General Pike, 103.—Capture
of Fort
George, 107.—Attack on Sackett's Harbor, 112.—Battle of Stony
Creek, 118.
CHAPTER VIII.
Battle of the
Thames, 140—Harrison's Advance, 140.—Proctor's
Retreat
141.—Nature of the Terrain, 141.—Position of the Indians, 143.—The
Battle, 144.—Death
of Tecumseh, 146.—Flight of Proctor, 146.—Outcomes
of the Campaign, 148.
CHAPTER IX.
Wilkinson's
Expedition, 149.—Armstrong's Plans, 149.—Troop Positions, 150.—Descent of the St. Lawrence, 152—Battle
of Chrysler's
Field, 154.—Hampton's
Defeat, 159.—Cost of the Campaign,
160.—Effects on the Niagara Front, 161.—Capture of Fort Niagara,
163.—Destruction of Buffalo and other Towns,
166.
CHAPTER X.
War in the South,
168.—Engagement at Lewistown, 168.—Fight in Delaware
Bay, 169.—Burning of Havre de Grace, Georgetown, and
Fredericktown,
171.—Battle at Craney
Island, 172.—Destruction of Hampton,
176.—Issues with the Southern Indians, 178.—Fight at Burnt
Corn Creek, 179.—Massacre at Fort Mims, 182.—Jackson's
Campaign,
183.—Fights at
Tallus-chatches, Talladega, the Hillabee Towns, Autosse,
and
Econochaca, 183.—Dale's Canoe Fight, 188.
CHAPTER XI.
Naval Battles of
1813, 195.—The Hornet and the Peacock,
195.—The Chesapeake and the Shannon,
197.—The Argus and the Pelican,
201.—The Enterprise and the Boxer,
202.—Decatur Blockaded at New
London,
204.—A New Embargo, 206.
CHAPTER XII.
Privateers, 207.—Their
Number and Significance, 207.—Jefferson's
Views
on them, 208.—A London
Journal's Prediction, 211.—Some of their
Captures, and some of their Battles, 212.—The
Yankee's Comical
Exploit, 222.
CHAPTER XIII.
Peace Negotiations, 223.—Campaign
against the Creeks, 223.—Condition
of
Affairs at the Start of the Third Year, 223.—Congressional
Funding, 224—Russian Offers to Mediate, 225.—Jackson's
Preparations, 227.—Battles of Emucfau, Enotachopco, and
Horseshoe Bend, 227.
A HISTORY OF THE WAR OF 1812-15.
001
CHAPTER I.—CAUSES OF THE WAR.
Franklin's Prediction—British Feeling toward the United States—The Unsurrendered Posts—Indian Troubles—Impressment of Seamen—The Decrees and Orders in Council—Declaration of War.
Franklin's Prediction—British Attitude towards the United States—The Unsurrendered Posts—Indian Conflicts—Impressment of Sailors—The Decrees and Orders in Council—Declaration of War.
The offender, says an Italian proverb, never forgives; and it is a singular fact that the deepest resentments and the most implacable hatreds are not those arising from a sense of injuries received, but from injuries inflicted. The victim of a deliberate wrong seldom treasures up a purpose of revenge, or demands anything more than a restoration of his rights; but the oppressor always hates those who have escaped from his oppression.
The person who wrongs another, as an Italian proverb suggests, never forgets; and it’s interesting to note that the strongest grudges and most intense hatreds don’t come from the pain of being wronged, but from causing harm to others. A victim of a purposeful wrongdoing usually doesn’t hold on to thoughts of revenge or ask for anything more than getting back what was theirs; however, the oppressor always harbors hatred for those who have managed to break free from their control.
That wise old philosopher, Ben Franklin, who died within seven years after the acknowledgment of our country as a separate nation in 1783, foresaw, even then, what did not take place till more than twenty years after his death. He declared that the war which had just closed in the surrender of Cornwallis was only the war of Revolution, and that the war of Independence was yet to be fought. 002When, in June, 1785, George III. received John Adams as United States Minister at his court, he said: "I was the last man in the kingdom, Sir, to consent to the independence of America; but, now it is granted, I shall be the last man in the world to sanction a violation of it." If the King was sincere in this declaration, he must have had—as Lincoln said of himself when President—very little influence with the Administration; for, almost from the first, there was systematic disregard of the rights of the new nation, with an evident purpose to humiliate her people and cripple their commerce.
That wise old philosopher, Ben Franklin, who passed away just seven years after our country was recognized as an independent nation in 1783, predicted what wouldn’t happen until more than twenty years after his death. He stated that the recently concluded war, marked by Cornwallis's surrender, was just the war of Revolution, and that the war of Independence was still to come. 002When, in June 1785, George III welcomed John Adams as the United States Minister at his court, he said: "I was the last person in the kingdom, Sir, to agree to the independence of America; but now that it’s been granted, I’ll be the last person in the world to approve any violation of it." If the King was sincere in this statement, he must have had—as Lincoln remarked about himself when he was President—very little influence with the Administration; for, right from the beginning, there was a systematic disregard for the rights of the new nation, clearly aimed at humiliating its citizens and undermining their commerce.
It was hard for the British Ministry and British commanders to realize that those whom they had so lately attempted to chastise as rebels, that they might again tax them as subjects, were now, after their triumph in a long war, and by the terms of a solemn treaty, entitled to the same privileges on the ocean, and the same courtesies in diplomacy, that were accorded to the oldest nation of Europe. They knew as little of the spirit of the American people and the mighty destinies within the coming century, as of the resources of the vast continent which lay behind that thin line of civilization along the Atlantic coast.
It was difficult for the British Ministry and British commanders to accept that those they had recently tried to punish as rebels, so they could tax them as subjects, were now, after their victory in a long war and according to the terms of a formal treaty, entitled to the same rights on the ocean and the same diplomatic courtesies given to the oldest nation in Europe. They understood very little about the spirit of the American people and the great futures that awaited them in the coming century, just as they knew little about the vast resources of the immense continent that lay beyond that narrow line of civilization along the Atlantic coast.
This failure to realize, or reluctance to admit, that the people of America were no longer British sub003jects, and that the United States was an independent nation, was forcibly illustrated in England's disregard, for thirty years, of an important portion of the Treaty of 1783. It was there stipulated that the military posts on our western frontier should be surrendered to our Government. Yet not only did the British forces retain possession of them, but from them they supplied the Indians with arms and ammunition, and instigated savage hostilities against the American settlements. Attempts have been made to deny this, but the proof is unquestionable.
This failure to understand, or unwillingness to acknowledge, that the people of America were no longer British subjects, and that the United States was an independent nation, was clearly demonstrated by England's indifference for thirty years to a significant part of the Treaty of 1783. It specified that the military posts on our western frontier should be handed over to our government. Yet, not only did British forces keep control of these posts, but they also supplied the Indians with weapons and ammunition, inciting brutal attacks against American settlements. Attempts have been made to deny this, but the evidence is undeniable.
Lord Dorchester, Governor of Canada, called a council of the Indian tribes, engaged to supply them with munitions of war, encouraged them to enmity against the United States, and gave them to understand that they would have the co-operation of his Government. These facts were published in British newspapers, and when the British Minister was asked to account for them, he could give no satisfactory answer. In pursuance of this policy, when war broke out, in 1812, the English commanders not only employed Indian allies, but offered and paid a regular bounty for American scalps. It seems incredible that such things could have been done, only seventy years ago, by one of the most enlightened governments on earth. And yet in our own day we have seen the performance repeated, 004when the English in South Africa armed the native savages with the best English rifles, that they might make war upon the peaceful and industrious Boers of the Transvaal Republic.
Lord Dorchester, the Governor of Canada, called a meeting with the Indian tribes, promising to supply them with weapons, stirring them up against the United States, and suggesting that they would have support from his Government. These events were reported in British newspapers, and when the British Minister was asked to explain, he had no satisfactory response. Following this strategy, when war broke out in 1812, the British commanders not only recruited Indian allies but also offered and paid a bounty for American scalps. It seems unbelievable that such actions could have occurred just seventy years ago by one of the most progressive governments in the world. Yet, in our time, we've witnessed a similar situation when the British in South Africa armed local tribes with top-quality English rifles to wage war against the peaceful and hardworking Boers of the Transvaal Republic.
But our people had a grievance, of more than twenty years' standing, which was even more serious than this. While the frontiersman was contending with British treachery and Indian ferocity, which combined to hinder the development of our inland resources, the American sailor—then the best in the world, as was proved by the result of the war—was confronted by a monstrous policy intended to check our growing commerce and recruit the English navy at our expense.
But our people had a long-standing grievance that lasted over twenty years, which was even more serious than this. While the frontiersman was dealing with British betrayal and brutal Indian attacks that hindered the development of our inland resources, the American sailor—who was the best in the world, as demonstrated by the outcome of the war—was faced with a terrible policy designed to stifle our growing trade and boost the English navy at our expense.
England was at this time the greatest commercial nation in the world. Her merchant ships and whalers were found on every sea, gathering and distributing the productions of every land. In herself she was but an island, not larger than one of our States—a very beautiful and fertile island, it is true; but if her jurisdiction had not extended beyond its borders, she would have been hardly more important than Switzerland or Sweden. But in her colonies and her commerce she was powerful. And now the finest of those colonies, casting off her authority in the only successful rebellion ever waged against it, were rapidly building up a mercantile marine 005that threatened to rival her own. They had thousands of miles of seacoast, with innumerable fine harbors; they had behind them, not a crowded island, but a virgin continent; the construction of their government and society was such that the poorest man before the mast might not unreasonably hope some day to command a ship. With all this, they were not involved in the wars which were then distracting Europe.
England was at this time the greatest commercial nation in the world. Her merchant ships and whalers were found on every sea, gathering and distributing the products of every land. In itself, it was just an island, not larger than one of our states—a very beautiful and fertile island, it’s true; but without her jurisdiction extending beyond its borders, she would have been hardly more important than Switzerland or Sweden. But in her colonies and her commerce, she was powerful. And now, the finest of those colonies, breaking away from her authority in the only successful rebellion ever fought against it, was quickly building up a merchant fleet that threatened to rival her own. They had thousands of miles of coastline, with countless great harbors; they had behind them not a crowded island, but a vast continent; the structure of their government and society was such that the poorest man at sea might reasonably hope to one day command a ship. With all this, they were not involved in the wars that were then distracting Europe.
Being neutrals, of course they enjoyed those advantages which England has never been slow to reap when she herself has been a neutral while her neighbors were at war. Their ships could carry goods which in any other ships would have been seized by hostile cruisers. England was now—as she truly said, in extenuation of her depredation on American commerce—struggling for her very existence, against mighty armies led by the ablest general that had appeared since Alexander. Many of the most desirable ports were closed to her merchantmen, her entire coast was declared by Napoleon to be under blockade; and it was exasperating in the last degree to see these misfortunes redounding to the advantage of a people whom she had so lately treated as rebels and outlaws, whose military prowess she had affected to despise, until it had disarmed her legions and conquered an honorable peace. 006The motive that controlled British policy was plainly revealed in an editorial article which appeared in the London Independent Whig (January 10th, 1813), after the war had been begun and the British public had been astounded by the capture of two or three of their finest frigates. "Accustomed, as we have hitherto been, to a long and uninterrupted tide of success upon the watery element, and claiming an absolute and exclusive sovereignty over the ocean, to be defeated there, where we securely rested our proudest hopes and wishes, might reasonably be expected to check our insolence and mortify our pride. In this view of the case, and if we could not flatter ourselves that it would have the effect of inducing us to abate somewhat of our unwarrantable pretensions, and listen to terms of moderation and forbearance, our regret would be sensibly diminished; since even the misfortune, severe as it is, might be converted into a great and lasting benefit to the nation at large. But the mischief will not confine itself here; the charm of the invincibility of the British navy, like that of the Grecian warrior, being destroyed, the terror that has long preceded our flag, and commanded the abject homage of surrounding nations, will henceforward be dissipated, and every maritime power with whom we may be involved in war will fight with redoubled zeal, ar007dently and anxiously hoping to lower our ascendency and establish the freedom of the seas." That was it exactly; they were afraid somebody would establish the freedom of the seas, and at that time the Americans seemed most likely to do it.
Being neutrals, they definitely enjoyed the advantages that England has always been quick to take advantage of when she herself has remained neutral while her neighbors were at war. Their ships could carry goods that would have been seized by enemy cruisers on any other vessels. England was now—as she claimed in justification of her actions against American commerce—struggling for her very survival, against powerful armies led by the best general seen since Alexander. Many of the most sought-after ports were closed to her merchant ships, and Napoleon had declared her entire coastline to be under blockade; it was incredibly frustrating to see these misfortunes benefiting people whom she had recently treated as rebels and outlaws, whose military strength she had pretended to scorn until it had defeated her legions and secured an honorable peace. 006The motive that drove British policy was clearly shown in an editorial that appeared in the London Independent Whig (January 10th, 1813), after the war had started and the British public had been shocked by the capture of two or three of their finest frigates. "Used to a long and uninterrupted series of successes at sea, and claiming an absolute and exclusive sovereignty over the ocean, to be defeated in that arena, where we comfortably placed our proudest hopes and wishes, should reasonably humble our arrogance and hurt our pride. Given this situation, and if we couldn’t convince ourselves that it would make us lower our unreasonable claims and consider terms of moderation and restraint, our regret would be significantly lessened; as even this severe misfortune might be turned into a major and lasting benefit for the nation overall. But the damage will not stop here; the aura of the invincibility of the British navy, like that of the Greek warrior, being shattered, the fear that has long accompanied our flag and commanded the subservient respect of neighboring nations will from now on fade away, and every maritime power we might find ourselves at war with will fight with renewed vigor, eagerly hoping to reduce our dominance and establish freedom of the seas." That was exactly it; they were afraid someone would establish freedom of the seas, and at that time the Americans seemed most likely to do it.
During the Napoleonic wars, in the early years of the present century, England's navy consisted of about one thousand vessels. As she was recruiting this vast squadron by perpetual press-gangs, and maintaining its discipline by unstinted flogging, while at the same time the flourishing merchant marine of the United States was paying more liberal wages to men before the mast than could be obtained on the English merchantmen, it might have been expected that the number of desertions would only be limited by the number of opportunities to desert. Many of the deserters undoubtedly found employment on American ships, where British captains soon established the custom of searching for and reclaiming them. This was a gross violation of the sovereignty of the United States, for the deck of an American vessel is to all intents and purposes American territory; yet our Government permitted it, and only complained of what were considered its incidental abuses.
During the Napoleonic Wars, in the early years of this century, England's navy had about one thousand ships. While she was constantly recruiting this large fleet through press gangs and maintaining discipline with harsh punishments, the thriving American merchant marine was offering better pay to sailors than what was available on British ships. It was reasonable to expect that the number of desertions would be limited only by the chances to escape. Many deserters likely found jobs on American vessels, where British captains soon adopted the practice of searching for and reclaiming them. This was a serious infringement on the sovereignty of the United States, as the deck of an American ship is essentially American territory; however, our government allowed it and only raised concerns about its incidental abuses.
The troubles that followed from this beginning remind us of the fable of the camel and the tailor. 008England's next step was to claim that no British subject had a right to enter any military or marine service but the British, and that any who did so might be taken by British authorities wherever found—just as if they were deserters.
The issues that arose from this start remind us of the fable about the camel and the tailor. 008England's next move was to assert that no British citizen had the right to join any military or naval service except for the British, and that anyone who did could be seized by British authorities no matter where they were found—just like they were deserters.
But presently it appeared that something more was needed in order to give Great Britain the full benefit of these assumptions. An English war-vessel stops an American merchantman on the high sea, and sends an officer with armed men on board to inspect the crew and take off any that are British subjects. The officer selects some of the ablest seamen he finds, and claims them. Immediately a dispute arises; the seamen say they are American citizens—or at least not British subjects; the officer says they were born subjects of the English king, and can never throw off their allegiance. Here is a question of fact, and by all the principles of law and justice it would devolve upon the officer to prove his claim. But as the purpose was, not to do justice, but to recruit the British navy, the admission of any such principle would hardly answer the purpose. So the British Government set up the doctrine that the burden of proof rested with the accused; that is, any sailor who was unable to prove on the spot, to the satisfaction of the boarding officer, that he was not a British subject, was to be 009considered as such, and carried off to serve against his will on a British ship.
But soon it became clear that something more was needed to give Great Britain the full advantage of these assumptions. An English warship stops an American merchant vessel on the open sea and sends an officer with armed men on board to inspect the crew and take away any British subjects. The officer picks some of the best sailors he finds and claims them. Immediately a dispute arises; the sailors say they are American citizens—or at least not British subjects; the officer argues that they were born subjects of the English king and can never renounce their allegiance. Here’s a matter of fact, and according to all principles of law and justice, it should be the officer's responsibility to prove his claim. But since the goal was not to serve justice but to bolster the British navy, acknowledging any such principle wouldn’t be beneficial. So the British Government established the doctrine that the burden of proof lay with the accused; that is, any sailor who could not prove on the spot, to the satisfaction of the boarding officer, that he was not a British subject would be considered one and taken away to serve against his will on a British ship.
The English naval commanders were now fully equipped for this new method of recruiting, and it soon became the practice for them to board American merchantmen and take off as many of the best sailors as they happened to be in need of at the time, with very little reference to their nationality. Some of the men thus forcibly carried off were released by order of the Admiralty, on the application of the American Consul, with the apology that, as English and Americans spoke the same language and were of the same race, it was often difficult to distinguish between them. But as a matter of fact the sailors thus impressed included men of nearly every European nationality—Germans, Swedes, Danes, Portuguese, and even negroes. In 1811 it was believed that more than six thousand American sailors were serving under compulsion in the British navy; and Mr. Lyman, United States Consul at London, estimated the number at fourteen thousand.
The English naval commanders were now fully prepared for this new recruitment method, and it quickly became standard practice for them to board American merchant ships and take as many of the best sailors as they needed at the moment, with very little regard for their nationality. Some of the men who were forcibly taken were released by order of the Admiralty, upon request from the American Consul, with the explanation that since the English and Americans spoke the same language and were of the same race, it was often hard to tell them apart. However, the truth was that the sailors who were impressed included men of almost every European nationality—Germans, Swedes, Danes, Portuguese, and even Black sailors. In 1811, it was estimated that more than six thousand American sailors were serving against their will in the British navy; and Mr. Lyman, the United States Consul in London, estimated the number at fourteen thousand.
This was only the natural result of the original error committed by our Government when it admit ted the right to search for and carry away deserters. And the impressments took place not only on the high seas but often within the three miles from shore to which a maritime country's jurisdiction extends, 010and sometimes in the very harbors of the United States. Coasting and fishing schooners were robbed of their men, and occasionally fired upon and plundered; while of larger vessels bound for distant waters, the crews were sometimes so depleted by visit from a British man-of-war that the voyage was broken up and the ship compelled to return to port.
This was just the natural result of the original mistake made by our government when it accepted the right to search for and take away deserters. Impressments happened not only on the high seas but often within the three miles from shore that defines a maritime country's jurisdiction, 010and sometimes right in the harbors of the United States. Coasting and fishing boats were robbed of their crew members, and occasionally fired upon and plundered. Meanwhile, larger vessels headed for distant waters sometimes had their crews so reduced by visits from a British warship that the voyage had to be abandoned, forcing the ship to return to port.
The greatest of these outrages was the capture of the Chesapeake, a United States frigate, by the British man-of-war Leopard, June 23d, 1806. The Chesapeake, which had just left Hampton Roads for a cruise, had not been put in fighting trim; not a single gun was ready for use. Her commander, Commodore James Barron, refused to permit a search for British deserters, and the Leopard thereupon fired several broadsides into her, when she struck her flag. Three of her crew were killed, and eighteen wounded. The Leopard carried away four of her men, claiming them as deserters; but it was afterward proved that three of them were Americans, and they were released, while the fourth was tried and executed at Halifax.
The worst of these incidents was the capture of the Chesapeake, a United States frigate, by the British warship Leopard on June 23, 1806. The Chesapeake, which had just set out from Hampton Roads for a cruise, wasn't ready for battle—none of her guns were prepared for action. Her commander, Commodore James Barron, refused to let the British search for deserters, so the Leopard fired several broadside shots at her, causing the Chesapeake to surrender. Three crew members were killed and eighteen were injured. The Leopard took four of her men, claiming they were deserters, but it was later shown that three of them were Americans, who were released, while the fourth was tried and executed in Halifax.
When the Chesapeake returned to Norfolk, Va., with the news, it created the greatest excitement the country had seen since the Revolutionary war. Indignation meetings were held, and the people seemed almost unanimous in a desire to plunge at 011once into war. A schooner was sent to England by our Government, carrying instructions to the American Minister to demand apology and reparation. These were made, after a fashion; but the English Government refused to give up the right of search. President Jefferson, who thought anything, under any circumstances, was better than war, issued a proclamation ordering all British vessels of war then in United States waters to leave at once.
When the Chesapeake returned to Norfolk, Va., with the news, it created the biggest excitement the country had seen since the Revolutionary War. Indignation meetings were held, and people seemed almost unanimous in their desire to jump straight into war. A schooner was sent to England by our government, carrying instructions for the American Minister to demand an apology and compensation. These were made, in a way; but the English government refused to give up the right of search. President Jefferson, who believed that anything, under any circumstances, was better than war, issued a proclamation ordering all British warships in U.S. waters to leave immediately.
Meanwhile, England had attempted to revive what was known as "the rule of 1756." During the war of that year she had tried to establish a rule that neutral nations were not at liberty to trade with the colonies of a belligerent power from which, in times of peace, they were excluded by the parent state. For instance, if in time of peace France permitted none but her own vessels to trade at the ports of certain of her colonies, she should not be allowed, when at war, to have that trade carried on for her in vessels belonging to a neutral nation; and if such vessels attempted it, they should be liable to capture and confiscation by cruisers of the nation which was at war with France. Such a regulation of course belongs to the domain of international law, and cannot be established by one nation alone. This rule had been frequently disregarded by England herself, and had never received the sanction of 012other powers; but by orders in council, of November 6th, 1793, she secretly instructed her naval commanders to enforce it against American vessels trading to the French colonies of the West Indies. The United States Government sent commissioners to London, English commissioners were appointed to meet them, and a treaty of "amity, commerce, and navigation" was concluded, which was ratified by both governments in 1795. Yet the capture and condemnation of American vessels went on almost as before.
Meanwhile, England had tried to bring back what was called "the rule of 1756." During the war that year, she attempted to set a rule stating that neutral nations couldn't trade with the colonies of a belligerent power from which they were excluded by the parent country during peacetime. For example, if France only allowed her own ships to trade at certain colony ports in peacetime, she shouldn't be able to have that trade done for her by neutral vessels when at war; if those vessels tried, they would be subject to capture and confiscation by the nation at war with France. Such a regulation obviously falls under international law and can't be established by just one nation alone. This rule had often been ignored by England herself and never received approval from other powers; however, by orders in council on November 6th, 1793, she secretly instructed her naval commanders to enforce it against American vessels trading with the French colonies in the West Indies. The United States Government sent commissioners to London, English commissioners were appointed to meet them, and a treaty of "amity, commerce, and navigation" was concluded, which was ratified by both governments in 1795. Yet, the capture and condemnation of American vessels continued almost as before.
In the early European wars of this century, the days of paper blockade—a blockade which consists merely in a proclamation, without the presence of armed vessels to enforce it—were not yet over, and on May 16th, 1806, England declared the whole coast of the Continent, from Brest to the mouth of the Elbe, to be in a state of blockade. Napoleon retaliated by issuing from Berlin a counter decree, dated November 21st, 1806, which declared the entire coast of Great Britain to be under blockade, and prohibited any vessel which sailed from a British port from entering a Continental port. England then, by orders in council, published November 17th, 1807, prohibited all neutral trade with France and her allies, except in vessels that had first entered a British port. As paper and ink were cheap, and 013by this time so little was left of the rights of neutrals that it was hardly worth while to regard them at all, Napoleon tried his hand at one more decree. Under date of Milan, December 17th, 1807, he proclaimed that any vessel which should submit to search by British cruisers, or pay any tax to the British Government, should be forfeit as good prize.
In the early European wars of this century, the era of paper blockades—a blockade relying solely on announcements without armed ships to enforce it—was not yet over. On May 16th, 1806, England declared the entire coast of the Continent, from Brest to the mouth of the Elbe, to be under blockade. In response, Napoleon issued a counter decree from Berlin, dated November 21st, 1806, declaring the whole coast of Great Britain to be blocked and prohibiting any ship leaving a British port from entering a Continental port. Then, through orders in council published on November 17th, 1807, England prohibited all neutral trade with France and her allies, except for vessels that had first docked at a British port. Since paper and ink were inexpensive and 013 by this point, the rights of neutrals were so diminished that it hardly made sense to consider them at all. Napoleon attempted one more decree. Dated Milan, December 17th, 1807, he proclaimed that any vessel that submitted to search by British cruisers or paid any tax to the British Government would be forfeited as a legitimate prize.
These so-called measures of retaliation—which became famous as the "orders in council," and the "Berlin and Milan decrees"—had very little effect upon the people who were at war, but they laid some of the heaviest penalties of war upon the one maritime nation that was at peace with all. Instead of resorting to war at once, the United States Government, being as well able as any other to issue a foolish proclamation, laid an embargo, December 22d, 1807, upon all shipping in American ports, prohibiting exportations therefrom. This measure met with violent opposition in New England, which was more largely interested in commerce than any other part of the country. The coast of New England presented innumerable harbors, and her forests were full of the finest ship-timber, while in agriculture she could not compete with the States having richer soils and a less rigorous climate. Cotton-spinning was in its infancy, and the manufactures that were to employ her water-powers had not been 014developed. She naturally and properly looked to the carrying trade as her best means of livelihood. The orders in council and the Berlin and Milan decrees imposed great risks and unjust restrictions upon it, but did not altogether destroy it; the embargo suppressed it at once.
These so-called retaliation measures—known as the "orders in council" and the "Berlin and Milan decrees"—had very little impact on the nations involved in the war, but imposed some of the harshest consequences on the one maritime nation that was at peace with everyone. Instead of jumping into war right away, the U.S. government, which was just as capable as anyone else of issuing a misguided proclamation, placed an embargo on December 22, 1807, banning all shipping in American ports and prohibiting exports. This action faced strong opposition in New England, which was more invested in commerce than any other region. New England’s coastline offered countless harbors, and its forests were rich in high-quality ship timber, while its agriculture couldn't compete with states that had more fertile soil and milder climates. Cotton spinning was still in its early stages, and the industries that could have utilized its water power had not yet been developed. Naturally, New England looked to the shipping trade as its best source of income. The orders in council and the Berlin and Milan decrees posed significant risks and unfair restrictions on this trade, but they didn't completely eliminate it; the embargo shut it down entirely.
In March, 1809, Congress repealed the embargo, and substituted a system of non-importation and non-intercourse with France and Great Britain. Voyages to their dominions, and trade in articles produced by them, were prohibited; but it was provided that whenever either of those nations should repeal its decrees against neutral commerce, the restriction should be removed as to that nation.
In March 1809, Congress ended the embargo and replaced it with a system of non-importation and non-intercourse with France and Great Britain. Travel to their territories and trade in goods produced by them were banned; however, it was stated that if either of those countries lifted its restrictions against neutral trade, the ban would be lifted for that country.
This at last produced some effect, and the French Government revoked the Berlin and Milan decrees, the revocation to take effect on the 1st of November, 1810; the letter of the French Minister communicating the fact to the American Minister adding that it was "clearly understood that the English orders in council were to be revoked at the same time." In August of that year, Hon. William Pinkney, United States Minister at London, laid this before the British Government, but was told that the English decrees would be revoked "after the French revocation should have actually taken place." This was a most palpable evasion, since it 015is very common for treaties and governmental orders to contain clauses which render them operative only in certain contingencies, and it was the easiest thing in the world for England to give her revocation precisely the same form as that of France, when each would have put the other in force on the date named. If any further proof had been wanted that the British Government was determined to suppress American commerce, at least till her own ships could resume the carrying trade of the world, it was supplied when in 1812 Lord Castlereagh, Minister for Foreign Affairs, declared officially that "the decrees of Berlin and Milan must not be repealed singly and specially, in relation to the United States, but must be repealed also as to all other neutral nations; and that in no less extent of a repeal of the French decrees had the British Government pledged itself to repeal the orders in council." That is, the rights of the United States as a neutral nation were not to be regarded by England, unless the United States could induce or compel France to regard not only these rights but those of all other neutral nations!
This finally made an impact, and the French Government canceled the Berlin and Milan decrees, effective November 1, 1810. The letter from the French Minister notifying the American Minister noted that it was "clearly understood that the English orders in council would be revoked at the same time." In August of that year, Hon. William Pinkney, the United States Minister in London, presented this to the British Government, but was told that the English decrees would be revoked "after the French revocation had actually taken place." This was a clear evasion, as it's quite common for treaties and government orders to include clauses that make them effective only under certain conditions. It would have been easy for England to frame their revocation exactly like France's, allowing both to take effect on the agreed date. If further proof was needed that the British Government was intent on stifling American commerce—at least until their own ships could take over global trade—it came when, in 1812, Lord Castlereagh, the Minister for Foreign Affairs, officially stated that "the decrees of Berlin and Milan must not be repealed individually and specifically concerning the United States, but must also be repealed for all other neutral nations; and that a repeal of the French decrees to any extent would equally apply to the orders in council by the British Government." This meant that England would not recognize the rights of the United States as a neutral nation unless the United States could persuade or force France to acknowledge not just these rights, but those of all other neutral nations as well!
With this tangle of orders, decrees, and proclamations, with an important part of the Treaty of 1783 unfulfilled, with unlawful impressments daily taking place on the high seas, and with no disposition on the part of the chief aggressor to right these wrongs, 016it is difficult to see how negotiations could have been continued longer, or the alternative of war avoided. On the first day of June, 1812, President Madison sent a message to Congress, in which he set forth the facts that necessitated war; Congress accordingly declared war on the 18th, and the next day the President proclaimed it. On the 23d, before this news was received, England revoked her orders in council, thus removing one of the grievances, but still leaving those which amply justified the declaration.
With this mess of orders, decrees, and proclamations, with a significant part of the Treaty of 1783 still unfulfilled, with illegal impressments happening daily on the high seas, and with no willingness from the main offender to correct these issues, 016it’s hard to see how negotiations could have continued for much longer or how war could have been avoided. On June 1, 1812, President Madison sent a message to Congress explaining the facts that made war necessary; Congress declared war on the 18th, and the next day the President announced it. On the 23rd, before this news arrived, England canceled her orders in council, which removed one of the complaints but still left enough grievances to justify the declaration.
It thus appears that the immediate and specific causes of the war of 1812 between the United States and Great Britain were complex; but the general cause, the philosophic reason, was simply the determined purpose manifested by England to nullify and render valueless the political independence gained by the American colonies in the Revolution.
It seems that the immediate and specific causes of the War of 1812 between the United States and Great Britain were complicated; however, the general cause, the underlying reason, was clearly England’s determined effort to undermine and devalue the political independence that the American colonies achieved during the Revolution.
Since the inauguration of President Jefferson, in 1801, the Government had been in the hands of the Republicans, and all measures looking toward war with England were opposed by the party out of power—the Federalists. The young reader must not be confused by the change of names which political parties have undergone between that day and this. The Republican party of Jefferson's day was 017the predecessor of what is now called the Democratic party; while the Republican party of our own day is to some extent the successor of the Federal party of that day. Presidents Washington and Adams were Federalists, or what would now be called Republicans; Presidents Jefferson, Madison, and Monroe were Republicans, or what would now be called Democrats.
Since President Jefferson took office in 1801, the Government has been led by the Republicans, and any actions suggesting war with England were opposed by the other side—the Federalists. Young readers shouldn’t get confused by the name changes that political parties have gone through since then. The Republican party from Jefferson’s time is 017the predecessor of what we now know as the Democratic party; meanwhile, today's Republican party is somewhat the successor of the Federalist party from back then. Presidents Washington and Adams were Federalists, or what we would now consider Republicans; Presidents Jefferson, Madison, and Monroe were Republicans, or what we would now classify as Democrats.
The Federalists in Congress protested against the declaration of war; and this protest was repeated in every possible form by the Federal newspapers, by mass-meetings, in numerous political pamphlets, and even in many pulpits. The opposition was especially strong in the New England States. The arguments of those who opposed the war were, that the country was not prepared for such a struggle, could not afford it, and would find it a hopeless undertaking; that the war policy had been forced upon Madison's administration by the Republican party, in order to strengthen that party and keep it in power; that if we had cause for war with England, we had cause for war with France also, and it was unreasonable to declare war against one of those powers and not against both. The last argument was the one most vehemently urged, and the war party was denounced and sneered at as making our Government a tool of France. 018There was a certain amount of truth in each of these propositions. The country was poorly prepared for war at all, least of all with the most powerful of nations. Madison probably had been given to understand that unless he recommended a declaration of war, he need not expect a renomination at the hands of his party. And we certainly had cause of war with France, whose cruisers had captured or destroyed many of our merchantmen. But the position of the Federalists on this question furnishes a singular example of the fact that an argument may sometimes be true in each of its parts, and yet incorrect in its grand conclusion. It seldom happens that any people are prepared for a just and defensive war; they begin their preparations for such a contest after the necessity is upon them. While a portion of the Republican party were undoubtedly actuated by selfish motives, as is the case with some portion of every party, the greater part were unquestionably patriotic, and advocated war because they believed it to be necessary. The crowning argument—that the United States had a grievance against France as well as England, and should make war on both if on either—would have been unanswerable if it had been a moral warfare that was in question. But in military matters it is necessary to consider what is practicable as well as what is logi019cal. For our Government to attempt to fight England and France at the same time, would have been simply suicidal. A good general strives to divide his foes, instead of uniting them. The shrewd thing to do was, to declare war against one only, and by saying nothing of any grievance against the other, make of that other either an ally or a neutral. Then if the war was successful on our part, it would put an end to the outrages complained of, not only on the part of the nation with whom we had fought, but also on that of the other; or if not, a war with the second offender would almost necessarily have the same result. The only question was, with which of those great European powers we should attempt to cope in battle. It was not difficult to decide. England was by far the greater offender. Not only had she done more than France to cripple our commerce, but she still held military posts on our frontier which she had solemnly agreed to give up, and kept the savages in a state of perpetual hostility to our western pioneers. England had colonies contiguous to our territory on the north, which we might make the battle-ground; France had no territory that would serve us for such a purpose. England was the power that our people had been compelled to fight thirty years before, to escape from oppression; France was the power that 020had assisted us in that war. Mr. Madison's Administration was right in the conclusion that war could no longer be avoided, if the United States was to maintain an honorable place among nations; and right in the determination to wage it against England alone. But for the manner in which it began and conducted that war, the Administration was open to the severest criticism.
The Federalists in Congress opposed the declaration of war, and their protest echoed through every possible avenue: Federalist newspapers, mass meetings, various political pamphlets, and even many sermons. The resistance was particularly strong in the New England States. Those against the war argued that the country wasn't ready for such a conflict, couldn't afford it, and would find it to be a losing battle. They claimed that Madison's administration was pressured into a war policy by the Republican party to strengthen their hold on power. They also pointed out that if there was a reason to go to war with England, there should be one with France too, making it unreasonable to declare war on just one power. This last argument was the most forcefully presented, with the war supporters criticized and ridiculed for making the government a tool of France. There was some truth to these claims. The country was ill-prepared for any war, especially against a major power. Madison likely understood that if he didn't recommend a war declaration, he wouldn’t be renominated by his party. And certainly, we had grievances against France, which had seized or destroyed many of our merchant ships. However, the Federalists’ stance illustrates a unique example where an argument can be true in parts but flawed in its overall conclusion. It's rare for any nation to be truly ready for a just and defensive war; they usually start preparing once the need arises. While some members of the Republican party were undoubtedly driven by selfish interests, as with any group, the majority were clearly patriotic and believed that war was necessary. The key argument—that the United States had a complaint against both France and England and should declare war on both—would have made sense if it were purely a moral conflict. However, in military strategy, it's crucial to consider what's practical as well as logical. Attempting to fight both England and France at the same time would have been incredibly unwise. A good general aims to divide their enemies rather than unite them. The smart move was to declare war on just one and, by not mentioning any issues with the other, make them either an ally or neutral. If the war was successful, it would address the grievances against both nations, or if not, a conflict with the second nation would likely lead to the same results. The only question was which of these major European powers we should engage in battle. It was easy to decide: England was clearly the bigger aggressor. She had done more than France to damage our trade, still occupied military posts on our border that she had promised to vacate, and fueled ongoing hostility from Native Americans towards our western settlers. England had colonies near our territory to the north, which could be used as a battleground; France had no land suitable for that purpose. England was the nation our people had fought against thirty years earlier to escape oppression, while France had been our ally in that conflict. Mr. Madison's administration was correct in concluding that war could no longer be avoided if the United States wanted to maintain respect among nations, and they were right to decide to fight against England alone. However, the way they initiated and conducted that war left them open to harsh criticism.
CHAPTER II. THE DETROIT CAMPAIGN.
021
First Bloodshed—Attitude of Political Parties—Plans for Invading Canada—Capture of Michilimackinac—Engagements at the River Raisin and Maguaga—Battle of Chicago—Hull's Surrender.
First Bloodshed—Attitude of Political Parties—Plans for Invading Canada—Capture of Michilimackinac—Engagements at the River Raisin and Maguaga—Battle of Chicago—Hull's Surrender.
It was perhaps characteristic of the conduct of the war, that the first blood spilled should be American blood, shed by Americans. This occurred in a riot, occasioned by high party feeling, and it is a curious fact that it took place in the same city where the first blood was shed, also by riot, in the great war of the Rebellion, half a century later. In the night of June 22d, three days after the proclamation of war, a mob in Baltimore sacked the office of the Federal Republican, edited by Alexander Hanson, because he had opposed the war policy. The mob also attacked the residences of several prominent Federalists, and burned one of them. Vessels in the harbor, too, were visited and plundered. About a month later Hanson resumed the publication of his paper, and in the night of July 26th the mob gathered again. This had been expected, and Hanson was ready for them. A large 022number of his friends, including Generals James M. Lingan and Henry Lee, offered to assist him in protecting his property. When the rioters burst into the building, they were at once fired upon, and one of them was killed and several were wounded. The authorities were slow and timid in dealing with the riot; and when at length a force of militia was called out, instead of firing upon the mob, or capturing the ringleaders, they arrested Hanson and his friends, and lodged them in jail. The rioters, thus encouraged by those whose business it was to punish them, attacked the jail the next night, murdered General Lingan, injured General Lee so that he was a cripple for the rest of his life, and beat several of the other victims and subjected them to torture. The leaders of the mob were brought to trial, but were acquitted!
It was perhaps typical of the way the war was conducted that the first blood shed should be American blood, spilled by Americans. This happened during a riot fueled by strong political emotions, and it's interesting that it took place in the same city where the first blood was also shed during a riot in the Civil War, half a century later. On the night of June 22nd, just three days after the war was declared, a mob in Baltimore vandalized the office of the Federal Republican, edited by Alexander Hanson, because he opposed the war effort. The mob also attacked the homes of several prominent Federalists and set one of them on fire. Ships in the harbor were looted as well. About a month later, Hanson started publishing his paper again, and on the night of July 26th, the mob returned. This was expected, and Hanson was prepared. A large 022group of his friends, including Generals James M. Lingan and Henry Lee, offered to help him protect his property. When the rioters broke into the building, they were immediately fired upon, resulting in one death and several injuries among them. The authorities were slow and hesitant to respond to the riot; when they finally called in the militia, instead of firing on the mob or capturing the leaders, they arrested Hanson and his friends, putting them in jail. The mob, feeling emboldened by the inaction of those meant to stop them, attacked the jail the next night, killing General Lingan, injuring General Lee so severely that he became a lifelong cripple, and beating several other victims while subjecting them to torture. The leaders of the mob were brought to trial, but they were acquitted!
In this state of affairs, the war party in the country being but little stronger than the peace party, the youngest and almost the weakest of civilized nations went to war with one of the oldest and most powerful. The regular army of the United States numbered only six thousand men; but Congress had passed an act authorizing its increase to twenty-five thousand, and in addition to this the President was empowered to call for fifty thousand volunteers, and to use the militia to the extent of one hundred 023thousand. Henry Dearborn, of Massachusetts, was made a major-general and appointed to command the land forces. Against the thousand vessels and one hundred and forty-four thousand sailors of the British navy, the Americans had twenty war-ships and a few gunboats, the whole carrying about three hundred guns.
In this situation, with the war faction in the country only slightly stronger than the peace faction, the youngest and almost the weakest of civilized nations went to war against one of the oldest and most powerful. The regular army of the United States had just six thousand men; however, Congress had passed a law allowing it to increase to twenty-five thousand, and in addition, the President could call for fifty thousand volunteers and use the militia up to one hundred 023thousand. Henry Dearborn from Massachusetts was appointed as a major-general to lead the ground forces. In contrast to the thousand vessels and one hundred forty-four thousand sailors of the British navy, the Americans had twenty warships and a few gunboats, armed with about three hundred guns.
But these figures, taken alone, are deceptive; since a very large part of the British force was engaged in the European wars, and the practical question was, what force the United States could bring against so much as England could spare for operations on the high seas and on this side of the Atlantic. In that comparison, the discrepancy was not so great, and the United States had an enormous element of strength in her fine merchant marine. Her commerce being temporarily suspended to a large degree, there was an abundance both of ships and sailors, from which to build up a navy and fit out a fleet of privateers. Indeed, privateering was the business that now offered the largest prizes to mariners and ship-owners. Yet so blind was President Madison's Administration to the country's main strength and advantage, that he actually proposed to lay up all the naval vessels, as the only means of saving them from capture. Of what use it would be to save from capture war-vessels which were not to 024sail the sea in time of war, he seems not to have thought. From this fatal error he was saved by the pluck and foresight of Captains Stewart and Bain-bridge. Those two officers happened fortunately to be in Washington at the time, and succeeded in persuading the Administration to give up this plan and order the vessels fitted for sea at once.
But these numbers, when looked at alone, can be misleading; since a large part of the British military was engaged in the wars in Europe, the real question was what forces the United States could put together against whatever England could spare for operations on the high seas and on this side of the Atlantic. In that comparison, the difference wasn’t as significant, and the United States had a major advantage with its strong merchant marine. With its trade largely suspended for the time being, there were plenty of ships and sailors available to build a navy and outfit a fleet of privateers. In fact, privateering was the enterprise that now presented the biggest rewards for sailors and ship owners. Yet, so oblivious was President Madison's Administration to the country's true strength and advantage, that he actually suggested putting all the naval vessels in storage, as the only way to protect them from capture. He didn’t seem to consider what good it would do to save warships if they weren't going to sail during wartime. He was saved from this critical misjudgment by the courage and foresight of Captains Stewart and Bainbridge. Fortunately, those two officers happened to be in Washington at the time and managed to persuade the Administration to abandon this plan and order the ships to be made ready for sea immediately.
War with Great Britain being determined upon, the plan of campaign that first and most strongly presented itself to the Administration was the conquest of the British provinces on our northern border. This had been attempted during the Revolution without success, but none the less confidence was felt in it now. And it was certainly correct in principle, though it proved wofully disastrous in the execution. It is observable that in all recent wars, the party on whose ground the fighting has taken place has been in the end the losing party. Thus the Mexican war in 1846-7 was fought in Mexican territory, and the Mexicans were defeated. The Crimean war was fought in Russian territory, and the Russians were defeated. The war between France and Austria, in 1859, was fought in Austrian territory, and the Austrians were defeated. The Schleswig-Holstein war was fought in Danish territory, and the Danes were defeated. The war between Prussia and Austria, in 1866, was fought in 025Austrian territory, and the Austrians were defeated. The Franco-German war of 1870 was fought in French territory, and France was defeated. The Russo-Turkish war of 1877 was fought in Turkish territory, and the Turks were defeated. The war of the American Rebellion was fought in territory claimed by the rebels, and they were defeated. It only needs that a war should continue long enough for us to see where the battle-ground is to be, and we can then tell what will be its result. The reason is obvious. A nation that is strong enough to carry the war into its enemy's country, and keep it there, will certainly prove strong enough to win in the end, unless interference by some other power prevents it; while a nation that is too weak to keep war, with all its devastation and ruin, out of its territory, must certainly be defeated unless assisted by some neighboring people. The invaders may, and probably will, lose the greater number of men in the pitched battles; but it is not their harvests that will be trampled, not their mills that will be burned, not their bridges that will be blown up, not their homes that will be desolated, not their families that must fly for shelter to the caves and the forests. Their sources of supply are untouched. This principle was recognized by Scipio, when he declared that the war with Carthage "must be carried into Africa." 026As England claimed to be mistress of the seas, and practically the claim was almost true, the determination to send our little navy and a fleet of privateers against her was essentially carrying the war into English territory. And as this part of the contest was conducted with skill and valor, it was gloriously successful.
War with Great Britain was decided, and the first plan that stood out to the Administration was to conquer the British provinces on our northern border. This had been attempted during the Revolution without success, but confidence remained high now. It was certainly the right approach in theory, though it turned out to be disastrously executed. It's clear that in all recent wars, the side fighting on its own land has ended up losing. The Mexican War in 1846-7 took place in Mexico, and the Mexicans lost. The Crimean War was fought in Russia, and the Russians lost. The war between France and Austria in 1859 occurred in Austria, and the Austrians lost. The Schleswig-Holstein War happened in Denmark, and the Danes lost. The Prussian-Austrian War in 1866 was fought in Austria, and the Austrians lost. The Franco-German War of 1870 was fought in France, and France lost. The Russo-Turkish War of 1877 took place in Turkey, and the Turks lost. The American Civil War was fought in lands controlled by the rebels, and they lost. If a war continues long enough, we can determine where the battlefield will be, and then we can predict the outcome. The reason is clear. A nation strong enough to carry the fight into its enemy's land and maintain it there will likely win in the end, unless another power intervenes; while a nation too weak to keep the devastation of war out of its own territory will certainly be defeated unless supported by some neighboring country. The invaders may well lose more soldiers in direct battles, but their own land will remain safe from destruction. Their crops won't be trampled, their mills won't be burned, their bridges won't be destroyed, their homes won't be wrecked, and their families won't have to flee for shelter to caves and forests. Their supply lines stay intact. This principle was acknowledged by Scipio when he said that the war with Carthage "must be taken to Africa." Since England claimed to be the master of the seas — a claim that was almost true — the decision to send our small navy and a fleet of privateers against her effectively meant carrying the war into English territory. And as this part of the conflict was handled skillfully and bravely, it was wonderfully successful.
An invasion of Canada being determined upon, the first question that necessarily arose was, at what point that country should first be attacked. To any one not skilled in military science the most obvious plan would seem the best—to march as large a force as possible, without delay, into Canada at the nearest point. A young officer, Major Jesup, of Kentucky, sent a memorial to the Secretary of War, in which he set forth a totally different plan from this. He proposed that a strong expedition should be fitted out to capture and hold Halifax, which was then a city of fifteen thousand inhabitants, with the most important harbor in the Canadian provinces. As a precedent, he could refer to the capture of Louis-burg in 1748. But the Secretary, Hon. William Eustis, of Massachusetts, spoke of it contemptuously as "a very pretty plan," and set it aside. Yet it was sound in principle, and if properly carried out could hardly have failed to secure important results. In striking an enemy on the flank, it is 027always desirable, to choose that flank by which he holds communication with his base. A blow on the other flank may inflict injury, but it only drives him back toward his base. A movement that cuts him off from such communication compels him either to surrender or to fight at great disadvantage Canada's base—for many supplies, and largely for soldiers—was England. The port of Quebec was frozen up nearly half the year, and the occupation of Halifax by an American force would have gone far toward severing the connection between the provinces and the mother country. That harbor, too, was all-important for the refuge and refitting of British naval vessels on this side of the Atlantic.
With an invasion of Canada planned, the first question that came up was where to launch the attack. For someone not experienced in military strategy, the simplest approach would seem to be to quickly mobilize a large force and march into Canada at the closest point. However, a young officer named Major Jesup from Kentucky proposed a completely different strategy in a memorial to the Secretary of War. He suggested organizing a strong expedition to seize and hold Halifax, which at the time had around fifteen thousand residents and was the most critical harbor in the Canadian provinces. He referenced the successful capture of Louisburg in 1748 as a precedent. The Secretary, Hon. William Eustis from Massachusetts, dismissed it derisively as "a very pretty plan" and ignored it. Nevertheless, the plan was sound in principle, and if executed properly, it could have likely yielded significant results. When striking an enemy at their flank, it's always best to target the side through which they maintain communication with their base. Hitting the opposite flank may cause damage, but it merely forces them backward toward their base. A maneuver that cuts off their communication obligates them to either surrender or engage in battle from a disadvantage. Canada’s supply lines—and many of its soldiers—were tied to England. The port of Quebec was frozen for almost half the year, and having American forces occupy Halifax would have significantly disrupted the connection between the provinces and the home country. That harbor was also essential for the refuge and maintenance of British naval ships on this side of the Atlantic.
Looking at the matter as purely a military problem, it was a pity that this brilliant plan was not adopted. But in a larger consideration it is probably fortunate for us that it was not. It might have resulted—indeed, that was contemplated in the plan—in leaving the Americans, at the close of the war, in possession of Canada. As the structure of our government almost precludes the holding of conquered provinces as such for any length of time, the Canadas must have soon become States of the Republic. But, so far from that being desirable in 1815, it may be doubted whether even yet the time has arrived when it would be wise to incorporate 028that undesirable population, in a body as they are, with the people of the United States.
Looking at the situation purely from a military perspective, it’s unfortunate that this brilliant plan wasn’t put into action. But when considering the bigger picture, it’s probably a good thing that it wasn’t. It might have led—indeed, that was part of the plan—to the Americans ending up with Canada at the end of the war. Since the way our government is set up makes it nearly impossible to keep conquered territories for any length of time, Canada would soon have had to become states within the Republic. However, far from being desirable in 1815, it’s debatable whether the time has even come to wisely integrate that undesirable population, as a whole, with the people of the United States. 028
In planning for the invasion of Canada, the Administration counted largely upon a supposed readiness of the Canadians to throw off their allegiance to Great Britain and join with the United States. Such expectations have almost never been realized, and in this instance they were completely disappointed.
In planning for the invasion of Canada, the Administration relied heavily on the belief that Canadians were ready to shed their loyalty to Great Britain and align with the United States. These expectations have rarely been met, and in this case, they were completely unfulfilled.
In the preceding February, William Hull, Governor of the Territory of Michigan, who had rendered distinguished service in the Revolution, had been made a brigadier-general and placed in command of the forces in Ohio, with orders to march them to Detroit, to protect the Territory against the Indians, who were becoming troublesome. In June he was in command of about two thousand men, in northern Ohio, moving slowly through the wilderness. On the day when war was declared, June 18th, the Secretary of War wrote him two letters. The first, in which the declaration was not mentioned, was despatched by a special messenger, and reached General Hull on the 24th. The other informed him of the declaration of war, but was sent by mail to Cleveland, there to take its chance of reaching the General by whatever conveyance might be found. The consequence was, that he did not 029receive it till the 2d of July. But every British commander in Canada learned the news several days earlier.
In February of the previous year, William Hull, the Governor of the Territory of Michigan, who had served notably during the Revolution, was promoted to brigadier general and put in charge of the forces in Ohio. He was ordered to march them to Detroit to protect the territory from the increasingly troublesome Indians. By June, he was leading about two thousand men in northern Ohio, moving slowly through the wilderness. On the day war was declared, June 18th, the Secretary of War sent him two letters. The first letter, which didn’t mention the declaration, was sent by a special messenger and reached General Hull on the 24th. The second letter informed him of the war declaration but was mailed to Cleveland, where it was left to find its way to him by whatever means possible. As a result, he didn’t receive it until July 2nd. However, every British commander in Canada learned the news several days earlier.
Hull arrived at Detroit on the 5th of July, and set about organizing his forces. On the 9th he received from the War Department orders to begin the invasion of Canada by taking possession of Malden, fifteen miles below Detroit, on the other side of the river, if he thought he could do so with safety to his own posts.
Hull arrived in Detroit on July 5th and started organizing his troops. On the 9th, he received orders from the War Department to begin the invasion of Canada by capturing Malden, which is fifteen miles south of Detroit on the other side of the river, if he believed he could do so without putting his own positions at risk.
He crossed on the 12th, and issued a proclamation to the Canadians. In this he told them that he came to do no injury to peaceable citizens, who might remain at their homes and pursue their usual occupations in security; that he neither asked nor needed their help, but would accept the services of such as might volunteer; and that no quarter would be given to any who adopted Indian modes of warfare or were found fighting in company with the savages who were accustomed to scalp prisoners and murder non-combatants. After the campaign had resulted disastrously, General Hull was censured and ridiculed for this proclamation; but a copy had been transmitted to the Secretary of War, and approved by him; and indeed, if a proclamation was to be issued, it is difficult to find any serious fault with Hull's. The error was in issuing any at all—a 030thing which a general seldom does with any good effect.
He crossed on the 12th and issued a proclamation to the Canadians. In it, he told them that he came to do no harm to peaceful citizens, who could stay at home and go about their usual activities in safety; that he neither asked for nor needed their support, but would welcome the help of anyone who wanted to volunteer; and that no mercy would be shown to anyone who used Indian fighting tactics or fought alongside the savages who were known for scalping prisoners and killing non-combatants. After the campaign ended poorly, General Hull was criticized and mocked for this proclamation; however, a copy had been sent to the Secretary of War and approved by him. In fact, if a proclamation was to be made, it’s hard to find much fault with Hull's. The mistake was in issuing any proclamation at all—a 030thing that a general rarely does with any positive outcome.
Hull fortified his camp on the east side of the river, and while waiting for his artillery sent out reconnoitring parties toward Fort Malden, and detachments to bring in supplies. As his troops grew impatient, he called a council of war, explained the situation to his officers, and offered to lead them in an attempt to carry the fort by storm, without waiting for artillery, if they thought their men could be relied upon for such an enterprise. Colonel Miller answered that his regiment of regulars could be depended upon for anything they might be ordered to do; but the three militia colonels very wisely answered that raw militia could not be expected to storm a fortified place, unaided by artillery—one of the most hazardous of all military exploits.
Hull strengthened his camp on the east side of the river, and while he was waiting for his artillery, he sent out scouting parties toward Fort Malden and groups to gather supplies. As his troops became restless, he called a council of war, explained the situation to his officers, and offered to lead them in a charge to take the fort by storm, without waiting for the artillery, if they believed their men could handle it. Colonel Miller replied that his regiment of regulars could be counted on for anything they were ordered to do; however, the three militia colonels wisely responded that inexperienced militia could not be expected to storm a fortified position without artillery support—one of the riskiest military actions.
So it was decided to defer the attack, and in a few days came the news that on the declaration of war, a force of over six hundred—British and Indians—had promptly moved against the American post at Michilimackinac—on the rocky little island of Mackinaw, commanding the strait between Lake Huron and Lake Michigan—and the garrison of sixty-one officers and men capitulated on the 16th of July. This disaster to the Americans roused the Indians to renewed hostility against them, while it propor031tionately disheartened Hull, and seems to have been the first step in the breaking down of his courage. After a few skirmishes, he recrossed to Detroit on the 7th of August.
So it was decided to delay the attack, and a few days later came the news that at the start of the war, a force of over six hundred—British and Indians—had quickly moved against the American post at Michilimackinac—on the small rocky island of Mackinaw, which controls the strait between Lake Huron and Lake Michigan—and the garrison of sixty-one officers and men surrendered on July 16th. This blow to the Americans stirred the Indians to renewed hostility towards them, while it disproportionately discouraged Hull, and seems to have been the first step in undermining his courage. After a few skirmishes, he returned to Detroit on August 7th.
Meanwhile the British Colonel Proctor had arrived at Malden with reënforcements, and on Hull's withdrawal to Detroit he threw a force across the river to intercept his supplies. This force consisted of a small number of British regulars and a considerable number of Indians commanded by the famous Tecumseh.
Meanwhile, British Colonel Proctor arrived at Malden with reinforcements, and as Hull retreated to Detroit, he sent a group across the river to cut off his supplies. This group included a small number of British regulars and a large number of Indians led by the famous Tecumseh.
Learning that a supply train, accompanied by a few volunteers, was coming to him and had got as far as the River Raisin, about thirty-five miles south of Detroit, General Hull sent out a detachment of about two hundred men, under Major Thomas B. Van Horne, to meet it and escort it to camp. This detachment was attacked by the British and savages at Brownstown, twenty miles from Detroit. Van Horne was surprised, and retreated to the edge of a wood. His men behaved badly, and could not be got into line, another retreat was ordered, and finally they ran away in confusion, having lost eighteen killed, twelve wounded, and seventy missing.
Learning that a supply train, along with a few volunteers, was on its way to him and had reached the River Raisin, about thirty-five miles south of Detroit, General Hull sent out a group of about two hundred men, led by Major Thomas B. Van Horne, to meet it and escort it back to camp. This group was attacked by the British and Native Americans at Brownstown, twenty miles from Detroit. Van Horne was caught off guard and retreated to the edge of a woods. His men performed poorly and couldn't form a line, leading to another retreat, and eventually, they fled in confusion, suffering eighteen killed, twelve wounded, and seventy missing.
Hull sent out another detachment, of six hundred men, under Lieutenant-Colonel James Miller, to open communication with the supply train, which 032was more fortunate. At Maguaga, fourteen miles from Detroit, they came upon the enemy intrenched behind a breastwork of logs. The British were commanded by Major Muir, the savages by Tecumseh.
Hull sent out another group of six hundred men, led by Lieutenant-Colonel James Miller, to establish communication with the supply train, which 032was more successful. At Maguaga, fourteen miles from Detroit, they encountered the enemy fortified behind a barricade of logs. The British were led by Major Muir, while the Native Americans were commanded by Tecumseh.
Miller at once ordered a bayonet charge, which his men executed in gallant style. The enemy were driven from their works, after some hard fighting, and pursued for two miles. They finally reached their boats, and crossed to Malden, but nearly a hundred Indians lay dead on the field, and the English had lost fifteen killed and forty wounded. The American loss was fifteen killed and sixty wounded. Instead of pushing on to the River Raisin, and securing the supplies. Colonel Miller returned with his command to Detroit.
Miller immediately ordered a bayonet charge, which his men carried out bravely. The enemy was forced out of their positions after some intense fighting and chased for two miles. They eventually made it to their boats and crossed over to Malden, but almost a hundred Indians were left dead on the battlefield, while the English lost fifteen killed and forty wounded. The American casualties totaled fifteen killed and sixty wounded. Instead of continuing to the River Raisin to secure the supplies, Colonel Miller took his command back to Detroit.
As the direct road on which all these operations had taken place lay along the river-bank, in sight of the enemy and exposed to the fire of his gunboats, Hull now sent out a detachment under Colonels McArthur and Cass, to escort the train by a circuitous route, farther from the river.
As the main road where all these activities had occurred ran along the riverbank, visible to the enemy and vulnerable to their gunboats, Hull now sent out a team led by Colonels McArthur and Cass to escort the train along a longer route, away from the river.
During this gloomy state of things at Detroit, a bloody affair took place on ground that is now within the city of Chicago. Fort Dearborn stood at the mouth of Chicago River, and was occupied by a garrison of about fifty soldiers, with several families. Captain Nathan Heald, commanding the 033post, had been ordered by General Hull to abandon it and remove his force to Detroit. With so small a force, moving more than two hundred miles through a wilderness in time of war, it was especially desirable to retain the good will of the Indians. Captain Heald accordingly called a council of those who professed to be friendly, told them of his intended movement, and promised to give them all the property in the fort that he could not take with him, at which they were greatly pleased. But in the night, knowing their intemperance and fearing their treachery, he destroyed all the alcohol, firearms, and gunpowder which he could not take away. These were the very articles that the Indians most highly valued, and when, after his departure next morning (August 15th), they discovered the trick that had been played them, they were very much enraged, and hurried on to overtake him. He was moving slowly southward along the shore of the lake, when the crest of a low range of sand-hills on his right was suddenly lighted up with a blaze of musketry. The savages were there in ambush, mercilessly firing upon the little caravan. As quickly as possible the wagons were drawn up together, and the women and children given shelter in and behind them, while the soldiers stood their ground, and returned the fire of the Indians. It was a brave 034and bloody fight, and when some of the men had fallen the women took up their rifles and fired upon the savages with all the courage and coolness of soldiers. But after heavy losses, the survivors of the party were compelled to surrender. In the course of the fight, an Indian had made his way to the wagons, and, springing into one in which twelve children had been placed, tomahawked every one of them. The victorious savages scalped all the wounded, claiming that they had not been included in the capitulation, and the bloody trophies were sold to Colonel Proctor, who had offered a premium for American scalps.
During this dark time in Detroit, a violent incident occurred on what is now part of Chicago. Fort Dearborn was located at the mouth of the Chicago River and was garrisoned by about fifty soldiers and some families. Captain Nathan Heald, who was in charge of the post, had been ordered by General Hull to abandon it and relocate his forces to Detroit. Given such a small number of soldiers, traveling over two hundred miles through wilderness during wartime, it was crucial to maintain the goodwill of the local tribes. Therefore, Captain Heald called a meeting with the friendly Indians, informed them of his plans, and promised to leave behind all the property he couldn't take, which made them very happy. However, that night, fearing their drunkenness and potential betrayal, he destroyed all the alcohol, firearms, and gunpowder he couldn't transport. These were the items the Indians valued the most, and when they realized the deception the next morning (August 15th), they became furious and rushed to catch up with him. He was moving slowly south along the lakeshore when suddenly, from behind a low ridge of sand dunes, a volley of gunfire erupted. The Indians lay in ambush, ruthlessly shooting at the small group. The wagons were quickly gathered together, with women and children sheltered inside and behind them, while the soldiers held their position and returned fire. It was a fierce and bloody battle, and as some men fell, the women bravely picked up rifles and shot at the Indians with the same courage as the soldiers. But after sustaining heavy losses, the remaining members of the group had no choice but to surrender. During the fighting, one Indian managed to reach the wagons, jumped into one where twelve children had been placed, and killed each of them with a tomahawk. The victorious Indians scalped all the wounded, claiming they weren't part of the capitulation, and sold the bloody trophies to Colonel Proctor, who had offered a bounty for American scalps.
The fight near Fort Dearborn took place on the same day that the detachment under Colonels McArthur and Cass left Detroit. The next day, August 15th, the British General Isaac Brock, who had arrived at Malden a few days before and assumed command there, formally demanded the surrender of Detroit. This demand included a plain threat of massacre in case of refusal. Said Brock in his letter: "It is far from my intention to join in a war of extermination; but you must be aware that the numerous bodies of Indians who have attached themselves to my troops will be beyond my control the moment the contest commences." This is a fine example of the art of putting things; The reader 035would suppose from Brock's words—"the Indians who have attached themselves to my troops"—that the savages in red skins had insisted on accompanying the expedition in spite of the most strenuous efforts on the part of the savages in red coats to shake them off; whereas Brock had just held a formal council with the Indians, and regularly arranged the terms of alliance. Two years later, when peace was being negotiated, the British commissioners spoke of these Indians, not as an irresponsible force, but as regular allies, who must share in the treaty.
The fight near Fort Dearborn happened on the same day that the detachment led by Colonels McArthur and Cass left Detroit. The next day, August 15th, British General Isaac Brock, who had arrived at Malden a few days earlier and taken command, officially demanded the surrender of Detroit. This demand included a clear threat of massacre if it was refused. Brock stated in his letter: "It is far from my intention to join in a war of extermination; but you must be aware that the numerous groups of Indians who have joined my troops will be beyond my control the moment the conflict begins." This is a great example of rhetoric; the reader 035might assume from Brock's words—"the Indians who have joined my troops"—that the Native warriors in red skins had insisted on following the expedition despite the best efforts of the British soldiers in red coats to send them away; while in reality, Brock had just held a formal council with the Indians and had properly arranged the terms of their alliance. Two years later, during peace negotiations, the British commissioners referred to these Indians, not as an uncontrollable force, but as official allies who needed to be included in the treaty.
General Hull gave a defiant reply, ordered McArthur and Cass to return at once with their detachment, and made admirable arrangements to defend the place. In the afternoon there was an artillery duel between two twenty-four pounders in the fort and a British battery at Sandwich on the opposite side of the river.
General Hull gave a bold response, ordered McArthur and Cass to come back immediately with their unit, and made excellent plans to defend the area. In the afternoon, there was an artillery duel between two twenty-four pounders in the fort and a British battery at Sandwich on the other side of the river.
Brock's force, according to his own testimony, numbered 1330 men, including 600 Indians, and he had also two ships of war. Hull had present for duty about 1000 men. * Brock sent a large body of Indians across the river that night, at a point five
Brock's force, based on his own account, consisted of 1,330 men, including 600 Native Americans, and he also had two warships. Hull had around 1,000 men available for duty. * Brock sent a significant number of Native Americans across the river that night, at a point five
* It is impossible to reconcile the conflicting statements as to the numbers on either side.
* It's impossible to reconcile the conflicting statements about the numbers on either side.
036miles below the fort, and early in the morning crossed with the remainder of his troops, and at once marched on the place. Hull had posted his regulars in the fort, and his militia in the town, where the stout palings that surrounded the little kitchen gardens gave them an admirable shelter. The two twenty-four pounders were loaded heavily with grape and placed so as to command the road by which the enemy was approaching, in close order, twelve deep. Never was there a better opportunity to do wholesale execution by a single discharge. Everybody was watching in breathless expectation to see the match applied and the murderous iron go surging through those beautiful ranks, when, to the astonishment cf friend and foe alike, a white flag was hung out upon the wall of the fort. Brock himself was surprised, when, sending to know what it meant, he learned that Hull had determined to surrender. The articles of capitulation were drawn up, and the American general surrendered not merely the fort and its garrison, but the whole Territory of Michigan, of which he was Governor. Thus ended this miserable campaign.
036miles below the fort, and early in the morning crossed with the rest of his troops, then marched straight to the place. Hull had stationed his regular soldiers inside the fort and his militia in the town, where the sturdy fences around the small kitchen gardens provided excellent cover. The two twenty-four pounders were loaded heavily with grape shot and positioned to cover the road from which the enemy was approaching, in tight formation, twelve deep. Never was there a better chance to inflict heavy casualties with a single shot. Everyone was watching in tense anticipation, ready to see the fuse lit and the deadly iron surge through those beautiful ranks when, to the shock of both friends and foes, a white flag was raised on the fort's wall. Brock himself was taken aback and, upon sending a message to find out what was happening, learned that Hull had decided to surrender. The terms of surrender were drafted, and the American general gave up not just the fort and its troops but the entire Territory of Michigan, of which he was Governor. Thus concluded this unfortunate campaign.
Hull's officers were incensed at his action, and he was subsequently court-martialled, convicted of cowardice, and condemned to death; but the President pardoned him, in consideration of his 037age and his services in the Revolution. The points of his defence were: that an army in a situation like his, cut off from its supplies, must surrender sooner or later; that if he had given battle, it would have exposed all the inhabitants of the Territory to Indian barbarities; that his situation was the fault of the Administration, rather than his own; that his force was inferior to Brock's; and that his provisions were nearly exhausted. Benedict Arnold himself was hardly held in greater contempt by the American people than was General Hull for years after his trial. Many believed him to be more traitor than coward. This state of feeling was largely due to Colonel Lewis Cass—nearly forty years later a candidate for the Presidency—who hurried to Washington with the news, and greatly exaggerated the circumstances that bore against Hull. Cass's action in this matter was exceedingly discreditable. On one point, the important question of supplies, a letter written by him two days before the surrender was flatly contradicted by his testimony at the trial. Subsequent investigations, if they do not exonerate General Hull, have at least greatly modified the blame attached to him.
Hull's officers were furious about his actions, and he was later court-martialed, found guilty of cowardice, and sentenced to death; however, the President pardoned him due to his 037age and his service during the Revolution. His defense included the following points: that an army in his situation, cut off from supplies, must eventually surrender; that fighting back would have put all the local residents at risk from Indian violence; that the predicament was the fault of the Administration, not his own; that his forces were weaker than Brock's; and that his food supplies were nearly depleted. For years following his trial, General Hull was regarded with as much contempt by the American public as Benedict Arnold, with many considering him more of a traitor than a coward. This sentiment was largely fueled by Colonel Lewis Cass—who would nearly forty years later run for President—who rushed to Washington with the news and heavily exaggerated the circumstances against Hull. Cass's actions in this matter were highly discreditable. On one critical issue, the question of supplies, a letter he wrote two days before the surrender directly contradicted his testimony at the trial. Later investigations, while not fully exonerating General Hull, have at least significantly reduced the blame placed on him.
CHAPTER III. FIGHTS WITH THE INDIANS.
038
Tecumseh's Scheme—Harrison's March to Fort Wayne—Defence of Fort Harrison—Defence of Fort Madison—Ball's Fight.
Tecumseh's Plan—Harrison's Journey to Fort Wayne—Defense of Fort Harrison—Defense of Fort Madison—Ball's Battle.
The great Indian leader, Tecumseh, cherished a design similar to that of Pontiac in the previous century. He wanted to unite all the northwestern tribes in an effort to drive the white man out of the country, or at least out of the Northwestern Territory. For the prosecution of this design the disasters which the Americans had sustained in the fall of Michilimackinac, Fort Dearborn, and Detroit seemed an auspicious opening, and Tecumseh endeavored to follow it up promptly with attacks on the other frontier posts held by United States troops. The most important of these were Fort Wayne, on the present site of Fort Wayne, Indiana, and Fort Harrison, on the Wabash, above Terre Haute.
The great Indian leader, Tecumseh, had a vision similar to that of Pontiac a century earlier. He aimed to unite all the northwestern tribes to push white settlers out of the country, or at least out of the Northwestern Territory. In pursuing this goal, the setbacks that the Americans faced with the fall of Michilimackinac, Fort Dearborn, and Detroit appeared to be a promising opportunity, and Tecumseh worked quickly to launch attacks on other frontier posts occupied by U.S. troops. The most significant of these were Fort Wayne, located where Fort Wayne, Indiana, is now, and Fort Harrison, situated on the Wabash River, north of Terre Haute.
A force of Kentuckians had been gathered in August and placed under command of General William Henry Harrison, afterward President of the United States, destined for the reënforcement of 039Hull at Detroit. But after the news of his surrender, it was directed to the relief of Fort Wayne, to reach which required a long march through the wilderness of western Ohio. A journal kept by one of the soldiers on this march, Elias Darnell, is still extant. It contains many amusing and suggestive anecdotes. Under date of September 5th he says: "General Harrison, having paraded the remaining part of the army in a circle in close order, delivered a speech to them, stating that he had just received intelligence from Fort Wayne; that it was in great danger of being taken by the Indians and British; he said that we were under the necessity of making a forced march to their relief. He read some of the articles of war, and stated the absolute necessity of such regulations and restrictions in an army, and if there were any who could not feel willing to submit to those articles and go on with him, they might then return home. One man, belonging to Colonel Scott's regiment, made a choice of returning home, rather than submit to those terms. Some of his acquaintances got a permit to escort him part of the way home. Two of them got him upon a rail and carried him to the river; a crowd followed after; they ducked him several times in the water, and washed away all his patriotism." The danger from firearms in the hands of undisciplined volun040teers is shown by these passages: "One of Captain McGowen's company was accidentally shot through the body by one of the sentinels." "A man was accidentally shot through the head by one of the mounted riflemen."
A group of Kentuckians was assembled in August under the command of General William Henry Harrison, who later became President of the United States, to reinforce Hull at Detroit. However, after hearing about his surrender, they were redirected to help Fort Wayne, which required a long trek through the wilderness of western Ohio. A journal kept by one of the soldiers on this march, Elias Darnell, still exists. It includes many entertaining and thought-provoking anecdotes. On September 5th, he wrote: "General Harrison, having formed the remaining part of the army in a circle, delivered a speech stating that he had just received word from Fort Wayne; that it was in serious danger of being taken by the Indians and British; he said we needed to make a forced march to their aid. He read some of the articles of war and emphasized the absolute necessity of such rules and regulations in an army, and if anyone couldn't agree to those terms and continue with him, they could go back home. One man from Colonel Scott's regiment chose to head home instead of complying with those terms. Some of his friends got permission to escort him part of the way back. Two of them lifted him onto a rail and carried him to the river; a crowd followed them; they dunked him several times in the water, washing away all his patriotism." The risks of firearms in the hands of undisciplined volunteers are highlighted by these incidents: "One member of Captain McGowen's company was accidentally shot in the body by one of the sentinels." "A man was accidentally shot in the head by one of the mounted riflemen."
"One of the light horsemen wounded a man as he was feeding his horse, believing him to be an Indian." The privations of such an expedition are well illustrated by this: "We marched through some first-rate woodland, and through a prairie of the best quality. It is badly watered; the water in the wagon-ruts was the only drink we could get to cool our scorching thirst, and but very little of that." And the romantic incidents by this: "The tomb of a chief was discovered; it was built on the ground with timber and clay, so that no rain or air could enter. The chief was laid on his blanket, his head toward sunrise, his rifle by his side, his tin pan on his breast, with a spoon in it; he was ornamented in their style, with ear-rings, brooches, etc."
"One of the light horsemen shot a man while he was feeding his horse, thinking he was an Indian." The hardships of such a journey are clearly shown by this: "We marched through some excellent woodlands and across a top-notch prairie. It had poor water sources; the water in the wagon ruts was the only thing we could drink to quench our burning thirst, and there was hardly any of that." And the romantic moments can be seen here: "The tomb of a chief was found; it was built on the ground with wood and clay, so that no rain or air could get in. The chief was laid on his blanket, facing the sunrise, with his rifle beside him, a tin pan on his chest, and a spoon inside it; he was adorned in their traditional style, wearing earrings, brooches, and other decorations."
Fort Wayne, which was well provisioned and had a garrison of about seventy men, commanded by Captain Rhea, was besieged by the Indians for two weeks. A portion of General Harmar's expedition had been defeated by the savages on this spot twenty-two years before. The fort now had four small field-pieces, and was otherwise well equipped. 041The Indians at first professed to be friendly, and tried by all means to surprise the garrison. Then they mounted logs to look like siege guns. But the wary Captain Rhea was not to be deceived, and on the approach of Harrison's expedition, September 12th, the besiegers decamped. Their villages and cornfields in the neighborhood were destroyed.
Fort Wayne, which was well supplied and had a crew of about seventy men, led by Captain Rhea, was surrounded by the Indians for two weeks. Twenty-two years earlier, a part of General Harmar's mission had been defeated by the natives at this location. The fort was now equipped with four small cannons and was otherwise well-prepared. 041Initially, the Indians claimed to be friendly and attempted to catch the garrison by surprise. They even set up logs to look like cannons. However, the cautious Captain Rhea wasn't fooled, and when Harrison's expedition arrived on September 12th, the attackers retreated. Their nearby villages and cornfields were destroyed.
Fort Harrison was less fortunate than Fort Wayne. It was commanded by Captain Zachary Taylor, who was afterward President of the United States. His force was very small, and had been reduced by sickness to about fifteen effective men. On the 3d of September two young settlers were killed and scalped near the fort by Indians. The next day thirty or forty of the savages appeared with a white flag, asked for admission to the fort, and wanted something to eat. Taylor had been warned to expect an attack, was on his guard, and refused to open the gates. Near midnight a block-house which formed part of the outer line of fortifications was found to be on fire. The crowd of savages outside was now swelled to several hundreds, and what with their horrible yelling and the cries of nine women and children inside the fort, and the rapidly spreading flames, the little garrison was thrown into considerable confusion. The destruction of the block-house would open a gap through which the 042Indians would quickly pour in a swarm, and then woe to the little band of whites! But Captain Taylor never lost his coolness for a moment. He ordered the part of the roof of the barracks which was nearest to the fire to be thrown down, and the end of the barracks kept wet. The invalids and convalescents manned the two bastions and the other blockhouse, and kept up a fire on the Indians, to protect the men who were at work on the roof. This fight against a double foe was kept up for eight hours; and the garrison not only prevented the fire from spreading, but erected a temporary breastwork to cover the gap made by the destruction of the blockhouse, and thus completely foiled the Indians, who disappeared next day, driving off as many as possible of the cattle belonging to the neighboring farmers. Of the garrison, two men were killed and two wounded. For this skilful and gallant action, Taylor was made a major. A passage in his official report of the affair is interesting, not as having any bearing on the result, but because by detailing the experience of two individuals it gives us a vivid idea of the manner in which such contests were conducted. He says: "One man lost his life by being too anxious; he got into one of the galleys in the bastions, and fired over the pickets, and called out to his comrades that he had killed an Indian, and 043neglecting to stoop down, in an instant he was shot dead. One of the men that jumped the pickets returned an hour before day, and, running up toward the gate, begged for God's sake for it to be opened. I suspected it to be a stratagem of the Indians to get in, as I did not recollect the voice; I directed the men in the bastion, where I happened to be, to shoot him, let him be who he would; and one of them fired at him, but fortunately he ran up to the other bastion, where they knew his voice, and Dr. Clark directed him to lie down close to the pickets, behind an empty barrel that happened to be there, and at daylight I had him let in. His arm was broke in a most shocking manner, which he says was done by the Indians—which I suppose was the cause of his returning. The other they caught about one hundred and thirty yards from the garrison, and cut him all to pieces."
Fort Harrison was not as fortunate as Fort Wayne. It was led by Captain Zachary Taylor, who later became President of the United States. His force was very small and had been reduced by illness to about fifteen effective men. On September 3rd, two young settlers were killed and scalped near the fort by Native Americans. The following day, thirty or forty of the natives appeared with a white flag, asked to enter the fort, and requested food. Taylor had been warned to expect an attack, was alert, and refused to open the gates. Around midnight, a blockhouse that was part of the outer defenses was found to be on fire. The number of natives outside had swelled to several hundred, and combined with their terrifying yelling and the cries of nine women and children inside the fort, along with the quickly spreading flames, the small garrison was thrown into considerable chaos. The destruction of the blockhouse would create a gap through which the Indians could rush in, leading to disaster for the small group of white defenders. But Captain Taylor remained calm. He ordered the portion of the barracks roof nearest to the fire to be torn down, and he kept the end of the barracks wet. The sick and recovering men manned the two bastions and the other blockhouse, providing cover fire for those working on the roof. This battle against a dual threat continued for eight hours. The garrison not only stopped the fire from spreading, but also built a temporary barrier to cover the gap created by the burning blockhouse, successfully thwarting the natives, who retreated the next day, taking as many cattle as they could from local farmers. Of the garrison, two men were killed and two were wounded. For this skillful and brave action, Taylor was promoted to major. A passage in his official report about the incident is interesting, not for its impact on the outcome, but because it vividly illustrates how such confrontations unfolded through the experiences of two individuals. He wrote: "One man lost his life by being overly eager; he got into one of the galleys in the bastions, fired over the pickets, and shouted to his comrades that he had killed an Indian, and neglecting to duck down, in an instant he was shot dead. One of the men who jumped the pickets returned an hour before dawn and ran toward the gate, pleading for it to be opened for God's sake. I suspected it was an Indian trick to gain entry, since I didn’t recognize the voice; I instructed the men in the bastion, where I happened to be, to shoot him, no matter who he was; and one of them shot at him, but fortunately he ran up to the other bastion, where they recognized his voice, and Dr. Clark told him to lie down close to the pickets, behind an empty barrel that happened to be there, and at daylight I had him let in. His arm was broken in a horrific way, which he claimed was done by the Indians—this was likely why he returned. The other was captured about one hundred and thirty yards from the garrison and was brutally killed."
Fort Madison, which had been built in an exposed and badly chosen situation on the bank of the Mississippi, near the site of St. Louis, was attacked on the 5th of September by more than two hundred Indians, Winnebagos. They approached stealthily, caught one of the garrison outside of the fort, and shot and scalped him within sight of his comrades on the walls. Firing was kept up on both sides for two days, but with little effect. On the 7th the sav044ages displayed on poles the head and heart of the man they had killed, and later in the day tried to destroy the buildings by shooting upon the roofs arrows to which they had tied combustible matter and set it on fire. As at Fort Harrison, the appearance of fire created a panic among the men; but the commander, Lieutenant Hamilton, was equal to the occasion. He ordered eight old gun-barrels to be made into syringes, and small holes to be broken through the roof from the inside. Thrusting up the syringes through these holes, the men were able in a few minutes to make the roof as wet as if a heavy shower had fallen, which completely baffled the design of the enemy. On the 8th the Indians took possession of an old stable near the fort, and renewed the fight; but a few cannon-shot were sent crashing through the stable, while the gun-barrel syringes did duty as before, and the savages then withdrew.
Fort Madison, which had been poorly located on the bank of the Mississippi near St. Louis, was attacked on September 5th by over two hundred Winnebago Indians. They approached quietly, captured a member of the garrison outside the fort, and shot and scalped him in view of his comrades on the walls. Firing continued on both sides for two days, but with little impact. On the 7th, the attackers displayed the head and heart of the man they had killed on poles, and later that day attempted to burn the buildings by shooting arrows with flammable materials tied to them onto the roofs. As in Fort Harrison, seeing the fire caused panic among the men; however, the commander, Lieutenant Hamilton, rose to the challenge. He had eight old gun barrels turned into syringes and small holes made in the roof from the inside. By thrusting the syringes through these openings, the men were able to soak the roof in just a few minutes as if it had just rained heavily, which completely thwarted the enemy's plan. On the 8th, the Indians took control of an old stable near the fort and resumed the fight; however, a few cannonballs crashed through the stable, and the gun-barrel syringes were used again, causing the attackers to retreat.
Besides these actions at the forts, there were numerous encounters between small parties of white men and Indians, in which often great skill and courage were displayed. One of the most noteworthy was Colonel Ball's fight. That officer was descending the bank of Sandusky River with twenty-two mounted men, when a party of Indians about equal to their own numbers fired upon them from 045ambush. Ball and his men charged into the ambuscade, drove out the savages, and killed the chiefs. Ball was dismounted, and struggling with a gigantic chief, when one of his men came up and shot the Indian. The remaining Indians then became furious, and gave the signal for no quarter. Ball's men understood the situation, and fought without flinching, till they had killed every one of their antagonists. This affair had a wholesome effect upon the Indians of that region, and for some time the settlers were unmolested.
Besides these actions at the forts, there were many skirmishes between small groups of white men and Native Americans, where significant skill and bravery were often shown. One of the most notable was Colonel Ball's fight. He was going down the bank of the Sandusky River with twenty-two mounted men when a group of Indians, roughly equal in number, ambushed them. Ball and his men charged into the ambush, drove out the warriors, and killed the chiefs. Ball got knocked off his horse and was wrestling with a large chief when one of his men came over and shot the Indian. The remaining Indians then became enraged and signaled for no mercy. Ball's men understood what was happening and fought without hesitation until they had killed every one of their opponents. This event had a positive impact on the Native Americans in that area, and for a while, the settlers were left in peace.
CHAPTER IV. THE 'BATTLE OF QUEENSTOWN.
046
Fight at Gananoqui—Expedition against Ogdensburg—Elliott captures two War-vessels—Gathering of Forces on the Niagara—Battle of Queenstown—Death of General Brock.
Fight at Gananoque—Expedition against Ogdensburg—Elliott captures two warships—Gathering of forces on the Niagara—Battle of Queenston—Death of General Brock.
Hull's surrender by no means put an end to the design of invading Canada, but neither did it have any effect in changing the vicious plan of striking the enemy on the wrong flank.
Hull's surrender didn't stop the plan to invade Canada, but it also didn't change the reckless strategy of attacking the enemy from the wrong side.
In the night of September 20th, Captain Benjamin Forsyth embarked at Cape Vincent, New York, with about a hundred men, and in the morning landed near the village of Gananoqui, Canada. Here an engagement took place with about an equal number of British troops—regulars and militia—at the close of which the enemy fled, leaving ten men dead on the field and several wounded and prisoners. Captain Forsyth then burned the military storehouse—which was the object of his expedition—paroled the captured militia, and returned to the American shore with a few regulars as prisoners of war and a considerable quantity of arms and ammunition. One man of his party had been killed. 047In retaliation, the Canadians fitted out a much more formidable expedition against Ogdensburg. It consisted of about seven hundred and fifty men, who on the 2d of October embarked in forty boats, and under the escort of two gunboats moved up the St. Lawrence. At the same time, the British batteries at Prescott, opposite Ogdensburg, opened fire on that place, which was returned by an American battery. The next day was spent in preparations, and in the forenoon of Sunday, the 4th, the final embarkation was made from Prescott, in twenty-five boats and the two gunboats. As a blind, they proceeded up the river past Ogdensburg for some distance. Then suddenly they turned about and bore down upon that place, while at the same instant the British batteries reopened fire on the village. The American battery, together with a company of riflemen, all under command of General Jacob Brown, reserved fire till the flotilla was within point-blank range, and then opened all at once, the fire was returned, and kept up steadily for an hour. Two of the boats were so damaged that they had to be abandoned, and another, with its crew, was captured. The expedition then returned to Prescott without having effected a landing on American soil.
On the night of September 20th, Captain Benjamin Forsyth set out from Cape Vincent, New York, with around a hundred men, and in the morning, he landed near the village of Gananoqui, Canada. Here, a battle occurred with about the same number of British troops—regulars and militia—and by the end, the enemy retreated, leaving ten men dead on the field and several others wounded and captured. Captain Forsyth then burned down the military storehouse, which was the goal of his mission, paroled the captured militia, and returned to American territory with a few regulars as prisoners of war and a significant amount of arms and ammunition. One man from his party had been killed. 047In retaliation, the Canadians organized a much larger expedition against Ogdensburg. It consisted of about seven hundred and fifty men who, on October 2nd, left in forty boats, escorted by two gunboats, and moved up the St. Lawrence. At the same time, the British batteries at Prescott, across from Ogdensburg, opened fire on that location, which was met with return fire from an American battery. The next day was used for preparations, and on Sunday morning, October 4th, the final embarkation took place from Prescott in twenty-five boats and the two gunboats. To mislead, they advanced up the river past Ogdensburg for a while. Then they suddenly turned around and rushed towards the town, while at the same moment, the British batteries resumed firing on the village. The American battery, along with a company of riflemen, led by General Jacob Brown, held their fire until the flotilla was within point-blank range, then opened fire all at once. The British returned fire, and the exchange continued steadily for an hour. Two of the boats were so damaged that they had to be abandoned, and another, along with its crew, was captured. The expedition then returned to Prescott without successfully landing on American soil.
In the surrender of Detroit was included the brig-of-war Adams, which left the Americans with no 048naval force whatever on the upper lakes. Lieutenant Jesse D. Elliott, of the navy, was sent to Buffalo to organize a flotilla, and soon after a detachment of sailors to man it was ordered thither from New York. In October the Adams, which the British had renamed Detroit, and a smaller vessel, the Caledonia, which had taken part in the capture of Michilimackinac, came down Lake Erie, and cast anchor near Fort Erie. Elliott formed a plan for their capture, and with a force of fifty sailors and fifty soldiers embarked in boats at midnight of the 8th. They rowed silently across the river, and before they were discovered leaped upon the decks of the vessels, secured the crews, weighed anchor, and headed for the American shore. As the wind was too light to carry them up stream, they were obliged to run down past the British batteries. The Caledonia, which had a valuable cargo of furs, was run ashore at Black Rock and secured. The Detroit fought the enemy's batteries while unsuccessful efforts were made to tow her beyond their reach. Finally she drifted ashore at Squaw Island, where her captors abandoned her, taking away their prisoners. A party of British soldiers subsequently boarded her, but were driven off by fire from a battery. In the course of the day she underwent a heavy fire from both sides, and in the evening a British party were 049preparing to recover her, when they were anticipated by an American party who boarded her and set her on fire. For this exploit, in which half a dozen of his men were killed, Congress gave Lieutenant Elliott a vote of thanks and a sword.
In the surrender of Detroit, the brig-of-war Adams was included, which left the Americans with no 048naval force at all on the upper lakes. Lieutenant Jesse D. Elliott, from the navy, was sent to Buffalo to organize a flotilla, and shortly after, a group of sailors was ordered from New York to help man it. In October, the Adams, which the British had renamed Detroit, along with a smaller ship, the Caledonia, which had participated in the capture of Michilimackinac, came down Lake Erie and anchored near Fort Erie. Elliott devised a plan to capture them and, with fifty sailors and fifty soldiers, set out in boats at midnight on the 8th. They quietly rowed across the river and, before they were noticed, jumped onto the decks of the vessels, secured the crews, weighed anchor, and headed for the American shore. Since the wind was too light to carry them upstream, they had to drift down past the British batteries. The Caledonia, which was carrying a valuable cargo of furs, was run aground at Black Rock and secured. The Detroit engaged the enemy's batteries while futile attempts were made to tow her out of their range. Ultimately, she drifted ashore at Squaw Island, where her captors abandoned her after taking the prisoners with them. A group of British soldiers later boarded her, but they were driven off by fire from a battery. Throughout the day, she faced heavy fire from both sides, and in the evening, a British group was 049preparing to take her back when they were outpaced by an American group who boarded her and set her on fire. For this action, in which several of his men were killed, Congress awarded Lieutenant Elliott a vote of thanks and a sword.
These comparatively trifling incidents of border war were succeeded by one much more serious, though not more effective. In the summer General Dearborn had entered into an armistice with Sir George Prevost, the British commander in Canada, which set free the enemy's troops on the Niagara frontier, who were promptly moved against Hull at Detroit. That campaign being finished, a large part of them was drawn back to the line of the Niagara, and when in the autumn a movement in that quarter was contemplated by the Americans, they were confronted by a considerable force at every point where a crossing was possible, while General Brock, the victor of Detroit, was on the ground, commanding the whole, and ready to concentrate them at any point that might be attacked. He expected the crossing to take place at the mouth of the river.
These relatively minor incidents of border conflict were followed by one that was much more serious, though not necessarily more impactful. In the summer, General Dearborn had agreed to a ceasefire with Sir George Prevost, the British commander in Canada, which freed up enemy troops on the Niagara frontier, who quickly moved against Hull in Detroit. After that campaign was over, a large portion of those troops was pulled back to the Niagara line. When the Americans planned a movement in that area in the autumn, they faced a significant force at every potential crossing. General Brock, the victor of Detroit, was present, overseeing the entire operation and prepared to concentrate his troops at any point that might be attacked. He anticipated that the crossing would occur at the mouth of the river.
General Stephen Van Rensselaer, commanding all the forces on the American side of the Niagara, determined to cross from Lewiston, at the foot of the rapids, seven miles below the great Falls, and seize Queenstown. The importance of the place arose 050from the fact that it was the terminus of the portage between Lake Ontario and the upper lakes. At this point the high ground through which the great Chasm of the river below the Falls has been cut slopes down to a lower plateau, on which stands the village of Queenstown.
General Stephen Van Rensselaer, who was in charge of all the forces on the American side of Niagara, decided to cross from Lewiston, located at the base of the rapids, seven miles downstream from the great Falls, and take over Queenstown. The significance of this location stemmed 050 from the fact that it was the endpoint of the portage between Lake Ontario and the upper lakes. At this spot, the elevated area through which the river’s great Chasm below the Falls has been carved descends to a lower plateau, where the village of Queenstown is situated.
The British had one piece of artillery on the Heights, south of the village, and another on the bank of the river a mile below. It was believed by many that General Van Rensselaer, who had been a prominent Federalist, was opposed to the war and purposely delayed moving against the enemy. Whether this was true or not, the discontent with his tardiness was so loudly expressed and had begun so to demoralize his troops, that at last he acknowledged himself compelled by it to move. He had minute information as to the situation and strength of each post of the enemy on the western bank of the river, and could choose his own point for crossing. He had about six thousand troops under his command—regulars, volunteers, and militia. The immediate command of the attacking force was assigned to his cousin, Lieutenant-Colonel Solomon Van Rensselaer, which occasioned serious dissatisfaction, because he was only an officer of New York militia, while some of the officers who had been ordered to join the expedition were commissioned in 051the United States regular army, and therefore ranked him.
The British had one piece of artillery on the Heights, south of the village, and another on the riverbank a mile downstream. Many believed that General Van Rensselaer, a well-known Federalist, opposed the war and intentionally delayed taking action against the enemy. Whether that was true or not, the complaints about his delay were so loud that they began to demoralize his troops, and eventually, he felt pressured to move. He had detailed information about the enemy's positions and strength on the western bank of the river and could select his own crossing point. He commanded around six thousand troops—regulars, volunteers, and militia. The immediate command of the attacking force was given to his cousin, Lieutenant-Colonel Solomon Van Rensselaer, which caused significant dissatisfaction because he was only a New York militia officer, while some of the officers assigned to the expedition were commissioned in 051the United States regular army and therefore ranked above him.
Thirteen large boats, capable of carrying 340 men, with their equipments, were brought on wagons and launched at Lewiston on the 10th of October, and arrangements were made for crossing before daylight the next morning.
Thirteen large boats, able to carry 340 men along with their equipment, were transported on wagons and launched at Lewiston on October 10th, and plans were set for crossing before dawn the following morning.
That night a cold, northeast storm set in, and the troops, who were promptly brought to the rendezvous, stood shivering for hours in the rain and darkness, on the river-bank, waiting for the boats, which, did not come. At length day dawned, and the crossing had to be postponed. It afterward appeared that the boats had been intrusted to one Lieutenant Sims, who was said to have taken them up the river, far beyond the point at which they were wanted, and then abandoned the expedition. No sufficient motive has ever been assigned for this extraordinary conduct on the part of the lieutenant. It has been suggested that he was so incensed at seeing the command given to an officer of militia, that he was willing to destroy his own reputation, if he had any, for the sake of frustrating the movement.
That night, a cold northeast storm hit, and the troops, who were quickly gathered at the meeting point, stood shivering for hours in the rain and darkness by the riverbank, waiting for the boats, which never arrived. Eventually, day broke, and the crossing had to be postponed. It later turned out that the boats had been entrusted to a Lieutenant Sims, who took them up the river, way past the point where they were needed, and then abandoned the mission. No clear reason has ever been given for this unusual behavior from the lieutenant. Some have suggested that he was so angry about seeing command given to a militia officer that he was willing to ruin his own reputation, if he had one, just to sabotage the operation.
Two days later the attempt was renewed. Three hundred regulars under Lieutenant-Colonel John Chrystie, and an equal number of militia under 052Colonel Van Rensselaer, were to cross the river before daybreak of the 13th, and storm the Heights of Queenstown, and the remainder of the troops to follow and reenforce them. Lieutenant-Colonel Winfield Scott arrived from Buffalo on the evening of the 12th, and asked leave to join the expedition, but was refused. Yet he placed a battery on Lewiston Heights, to protect the troops while they were crossing.
Two days later, the attempt was made again. Three hundred regulars under Lieutenant-Colonel John Chrystie, along with an equal number of militia under Colonel Van Rensselaer, were set to cross the river before dawn on the 13th and attack the Heights of Queenstown, with the rest of the troops following to reinforce them. Lieutenant-Colonel Winfield Scott arrived from Buffalo on the evening of the 12th and requested to join the expedition, but his request was denied. Still, he positioned a battery on Lewiston Heights to protect the troops while they crossed.
It was still cold and stormy when the embarkation took place. All the regulars and a few of the militia crossed, and ten of the boats returned for a second load. The other three boats, in one of which was Chrystie, had missed their way in going over.
It was still cold and stormy when they set off. All the regulars and a few of the militia crossed, and ten of the boats returned for another load. The other three boats, one of which had Chrystie in it, had lost their way while crossing.
A force of the enemy, under Captain Dennis, moved down promptly to resist the landing, and some of the Americans were killed or wounded before they stepped on shore. Captain John E. Wool, being the senior officer present, assumed the command, and quickly moved his troops up the bank, where they formed in line at the foot of the Heights. The enemy was reenforced almost at the same time, and attacked the Americans in front and on the right flank with artillery and musketry. Wool stood his ground, though he had no artillery, and a short but bloody fight ensued. Of the ten officers of regulars, two were killed, and four, including Wool himself, 053severely wounded. The left wing was composed of the militia. There the fighting was less severe, but Lieutenant-Colonel Van Rensselaer was so seriously wounded that he was obliged to withdraw from the contest and recross the river. The steady and well-directed fire of Wool's men drove the enemy's left wing back into the village; but his right wing, stationed on the Heights, was unmoved. Annoyed by the fire from that quarter, the Americans fell back to the river-bank to re-form, and were soon reenforced by another company of regulars.
A group of enemy forces, led by Captain Dennis, quickly moved in to resist the landing, and some Americans were killed or injured before they even hit the shore. Captain John E. Wool, being the senior officer present, took command and swiftly positioned his troops up the bank, where they lined up at the base of the Heights. The enemy received reinforcements almost simultaneously, launching an attack on the Americans from the front and right flank using artillery and rifles. Wool held his position, even though he had no artillery, and a brief but intense battle followed. Out of the ten regular officers, two were killed, and four, including Wool himself, 053were seriously wounded. The left side consisted of militia, where the fighting was less intense, but Lieutenant-Colonel Van Rensselaer was severely wounded and had to withdraw from the battle and recross the river. The steady and precise fire from Wool's troops pushed the enemy's left wing back into the village; however, their right wing, positioned on the Heights, remained steadfast. Frustrated by the fire coming from that area, the Americans retreated to the riverbank to regroup and were soon reinforced by another company of regulars.
Receiving leave, rather than orders, from Van Rensselaer to capture the Heights, Wool placed the fresh troops on his right, and set out upon the task, while Lieutenant Lush followed in rear of the column, with orders to shoot down any man who faltered. Wool first moved his command southward along the water's edge, the bank sheltering them from the sight of the enemy, and then at the point where the gorge of the river made a sharp edge, as it were, to the Heights began the ascent, still out of sight of the battery-men. In many places the pathway was so steep and rugged that the soldiers had to use their muskets like alpenstocks, and climb by seizing the bushes, and "boost" one another. Wool was foremost in the scramble, and near the top found a fisherman's path which led to the plateau, 054and had been left unguarded because it was supposed to be impassable. By this path they gained the Summit, and silently filed out upon the plain to the rear and right of the British battery.
Receiving permission instead of orders from Van Rensselaer to take the Heights, Wool positioned the fresh troops on his right and set out to complete the task, while Lieutenant Lush followed behind the column, instructed to shoot any man who hesitated. Wool first directed his command southward along the water's edge, using the bank to keep them out of sight of the enemy. At the point where the river made a sharp turn towards the Heights, they began their climb, still hidden from the gunners. In many areas, the pathway was so steep and rough that the soldiers had to use their muskets like walking sticks, climbing by grabbing onto bushes and helping each other up. Wool was at the front of the scramble and near the top discovered a fisherman's path that led to the plateau, which had been left unguarded because it was thought to be inaccessible. By this path, they reached the summit and quietly moved onto the plain behind and to the right of the British battery.
Meanwhile General Brock, hearing the sounds of battle, had ridden up rapidly from Fort George at the mouth of the river, and now stood near this battery, watching the operations below. A sudden volley of musketry in the rear startled him, and the appearance of Wool's column rushing down upon the battery caused him to retreat down the slope without waiting to mount his horse, followed by his staff and the artillerymen, and their entire infantry support. When the sun rose, a few minutes later, it shone upon the American flag floating over the captured works.
Meanwhile, General Brock, hearing the sounds of battle, quickly rode up from Fort George at the river's mouth and stood near the battery, watching the actions below. A sudden volley of gunfire from behind startled him, and the sight of Wool's column charging toward the battery made him retreat down the slope without taking the time to mount his horse, followed by his staff, the artillerymen, and their entire infantry support. When the sun rose a few minutes later, it illuminated the American flag flying over the captured positions.
Brock sent orders to General Sheaffe at Fort George to bring up reënforcements, and at the same time to open an artillery fire on Fort Niagara, on the opposite bank; for the British commander had been all the while of opinion that the movement on Queenstown was but a feint, and that the real attack would be made at the mouth of the river. Without waiting for the reënforcements. Brock placed himself at the head of the troops that had just been driven from the Heights, and the troops in the village, and attempted to recapture the lost position. As the 055assaulting force moved up the slope, it bore to the west, to envelop the left flank of the Americans. Wool sent a detachment to check this movement; but his men were too few, and his whole command was forced back till it stood with a powerful enemy in front and a precipice behind it. At this point of time, a captain raised a white handkerchief on the point of a bayonet; but in an instant Wool tore it down with his own hands, and then, addressing a few inspiriting words to his men, he persuaded them to re-form their somewhat broken ranks, and keep up a steady and effective fire. When their ammunition was nearly exhausted, they made a gallant bayonet charge which drove the enemy down the slope.
Brock ordered General Sheaffe at Fort George to bring in reinforcements and to start firing artillery at Fort Niagara across the river. The British commander believed that the movements at Queenstown were just a distraction and that the real attack would come at the river's mouth. Without waiting for the reinforcements, Brock took charge of the troops who had just been forced from the Heights, along with the troops in the village, and tried to regain the lost position. As the 055attacking force climbed the slope, they angled to the west to surround the left flank of the Americans. Wool sent out a detachment to counter this movement, but his forces were too small, and his entire command was pushed back until they found themselves facing a strong enemy in front and a steep drop behind them. At that moment, a captain waved a white handkerchief on the end of a bayonet, but Wool quickly snatched it down with his own hands. He then rallied his men with some motivating words, urging them to regroup their somewhat disordered ranks and maintain a steady, effective fire. When their ammunition was almost gone, they launched a brave bayonet charge that pushed the enemy down the slope.
Brock rallied his troops for another assault, received a few reënforcements, and was just setting the column in motion when a bullet struck his breast and he fell mortally wounded. His troops, now under command of Lieutenant-Colonel McDonell, rushed forward with the cry of "Revenge the General!" but to no purpose. Wool's little band stood firm, and drove back the enemy once more with serious loss, McDonell being mortally wounded, and the two officers next in command disabled, while ten men and an Indian Chief remained with the Americans as prisoners. The troops who had 056accomplished this gallant feat were recruits who had never seen service before, and their leader, now but twenty-three years of age, had not received a military education, but was a bookseller and then a law-student, until commissioned as a captain.
Brock rallied his troops for another attack, got a few reinforcements, and was just getting the column moving when a bullet hit him in the chest and he fell, fatally wounded. His troops, now led by Lieutenant-Colonel McDonell, charged forward shouting "Revenge the General!" but it was in vain. Wool's small group held strong and pushed back the enemy again with significant losses, with McDonell being fatally wounded, and the two officers next in command incapacitated, while ten men and an Indian Chief were taken prisoner by the Americans. The troops who achieved this brave act were recruits who had never seen battle before, and their leader, just twenty-three years old, had not received formal military training; he was a bookseller and then a law student before being commissioned as a captain.
About ten o'clock reënforcements were sent over to Wool, and Lieutenant-Colonels Winfield Scott and John Chrystie, and General William Wadsworth, soon followed them. The last-named officer, who was in plain clothes, modestly made known his rank, but insisted that the command should be assumed by Scott, whom he heartily and efficiently supported. * Wool was now, from loss of blood, obliged to withdraw from the field. Scott had about six hundred men—three hundred and fifty regulars and two hundred and fifty militia. He placed them in position to repel any attack of the enemy, and at the same time to cover the crossing of the remaining militia, which was to be sent over to him at once.
About ten o'clock, reinforcements were sent over to Wool, and Lieutenant Colonels Winfield Scott and John Chrystie, along with General William Wadsworth, soon followed. Wadsworth, who was in civilian clothes, modestly revealed his rank but insisted that Scott take command, which he supported wholeheartedly and effectively. Wool was now forced to withdraw from the field due to blood loss. Scott had about six hundred men—three hundred and fifty regulars and two hundred and fifty militia. He positioned them to defend against any enemy attacks while also covering the crossing of the remaining militia, who were to be sent over to him immediately.
All this time General Roger H. Sheaffe was hurrying up from Fort George with troops, in obedience to the orders sent to him by Brock in the morning. He arrived on the field, and was ready for action
All this time, General Roger H. Sheaffe was rushing from Fort George with troops, following the orders sent to him by Brock in the morning. He arrived on the field and was ready for action.
* He was uncle of General James S. Wadsworth, who was killed in the battle of the Wilderness in 1864.
* He was the uncle of General James S. Wadsworth, who was killed in the Battle of the Wilderness in 1864.
The militia on the American shore could overlook the field of battle, and saw the approach of Sheaffe. But when General Van Rensselaer attempted to move them across the river to the support of their victorious but hard-pressed countrymen, they refused to stir. The law provides that militia shall not be compelled to serve beyond the bounds of the State against their will; the men fell back upon this privilege, and all entreaty was in vain. This action—or non-action—on the part of the militia has subjected them to severe censure, and has uniformly been attributed to pure cowardice. But while it was probably not altogether justifiable, there were some circumstances, not generally mentioned, which partially excuse it. For instance, they knew that, through gross mismanagement, all the boats, except one small scow, had been allowed to float off down the current or be captured by the enemy; and hence if they crossed it must be by a small boatload at a time, instead of in a body.
The militia on the American shore could see the battlefield and noticed Sheaffe approaching. But when General Van Rensselaer tried to move them across the river to support their victorious but struggling fellow soldiers, they refused to budge. The law states that militia cannot be forced to serve outside the state's boundaries against their will; the men relied on this privilege, and all pleas were in vain. This behavior—or lack of action—from the militia has drawn heavy criticism and has generally been blamed on sheer cowardice. However, while it may not have been entirely justified, there were some circumstances that aren’t usually mentioned which partially excuse it. For example, they knew that due to serious mismanagement, all the boats, except one small scow, had either drifted away downriver or been captured by the enemy; therefore, if they crossed, it would have to be done in small groups rather than as a whole.
In spite of this disappointment, Scott resolved to make the best fight he could with what troops he had. The first attack was made on his left flank by the Indians, who were commanded by John Brant, 058a son of the Joseph Brant of Revolutionary fame. This attack Scott repelled with gallant bayonet charges; but when about four o'clock Sheaffe moved up his whole force, and doubled back the right flank, the Americans were obliged to retreat. A few let themselves down the precipice, clambering from ledge to ledge and bush bush to bush, but when they reached the water's edge there were no boats to receive them. The greater part retreated a short distance along the road leading from Queenstown to the Falls; but seeing escape was impossible, they surrendered in a body. To do this, they had to send a flag of trace through the line of Indians, and it was three times fired upon before it finally reached the British commander. The last time it was borne by Scott in person.
Despite this disappointment, Scott was determined to fight as best he could with the troops he had. The first attack came from his left flank by the Indians, led by John Brant, 058the son of Joseph Brant, who was famous from the Revolutionary War. Scott pushed back this attack with brave bayonet charges; however, when Sheaffe moved his entire force and flanked the right side, the Americans had no choice but to retreat. A few managed to lower themselves down the cliff, scrambling from ledge to ledge and bush to bush, but by the time they reached the water's edge, there were no boats to take them. Most withdrew a short distance along the road from Queenstown to the Falls; but realizing that escape was impossible, they surrendered collectively. To do this, they had to send a flag of truce through the line of Indians, which was fired upon three times before it finally reached the British commander. The last time, it was carried by Scott himself.
So fended the battle of Queenstown, which was a very remarkable action, and with better management might have had a different termination. General Van Rensselaer, in his official despatches, labored to create the impression that the refusal of the militia to cross the stream was the whole cause of the final disaster, and at the same time he studiously avoided mentioning the names of the officers—Wool and Scott—to whom was due the credit for all the successes and glory of the day.
So ended the battle of Queenstown, which was a very notable event and could have turned out differently with better planning. General Van Rensselaer, in his official reports, tried to give the impression that the militia's refusal to cross the river was the sole reason for the final disaster, while at the same time he carefully avoided mentioning the names of the officers—Wool and Scott—who deserved credit for all the successes and glory of the day.
The Americans, in this series of engagements, 059lost about ninety men killed, a hundred wounded, and nearly a thousand taken prisoners. The British loss has never been determined. The American prisoners were sent to Quebec, where twenty-three Irishmen were separated from the others and sent to England to be tried for treason, on the ground that they were British subjects and had been fighting against their own flag. As soon as the American authorities had an equal number of prisoners in their possession they placed them in close confinement, and gave notice that their fate would be determined by that of the twenty-three Irishmen. People who know nothing of historical experience in such matters always cry out against any proposal of retaliation, arguing that it will simply result in the murder of all the prisoners on both sides. As a matter of fact, when retaliation is promptly and firmly threatened for violation of the laws of war, it always has the effect of stopping the outrage. And so it proved in this case; for twenty-one of the captured Irishmen lived to return to their adopted country. The other two died in prison.
The Americans, in this series of battles, 059lost about ninety men killed, one hundred wounded, and nearly a thousand taken prisoner. The British loss has never been calculated. The American prisoners were sent to Quebec, where twenty-three Irishmen were separated from the others and sent to England to be tried for treason, on the grounds that they were British subjects fighting against their own flag. As soon as the American authorities had an equal number of prisoners, they placed them in close confinement and announced that their fate would be determined by that of the twenty-three Irishmen. People who know nothing about historical experiences in such matters always protest against any proposal of retaliation, arguing that it will just lead to the killing of all the prisoners on both sides. In reality, when retaliation is quickly and firmly threatened for violations of the laws of war, it usually stops the outrage. And that’s exactly what happened in this case; twenty-one of the captured Irishmen lived to return to their adopted country. The other two died in prison.
During the funeral of General Brock, minute guns were fired by the Americans on the eastern bank of the river, "as a mark of respect to a brave enemy." There was perhaps no harm in this little bit of sentiment, though if the Americans remembered that 060two months before, in demanding the surrender of Detroit, General Brock had threatened to let loose a horde of savages upon the garrison and town, if he were compelled to capture it by force, they must have seen that their minute guns were supremely illogical, not to say silly. Brownell, in one of his best poems, expresses the true sentiment for such a case:
During General Brock's funeral, the Americans on the eastern bank of the river fired minute guns "as a sign of respect for a brave enemy." There might not have been any harm in this gesture, but if the Americans remembered that 060just two months earlier, when they demanded the surrender of Detroit, General Brock had threatened to unleash a horde of savages on the garrison and the town if he had to take it by force, they should have realized that their minute guns were pretty illogical, if not downright silly. Brownell, in one of his best poems, conveys the true sentiment for such a situation:
"The Muse would weep for the brave,
"The Muse would cry for the brave,
But how shall she chant the wrong?
But how should she express the wrong?
When, for the wrongs that were,
When, for the wrongs that were,
Hath she lilted a single stave?
Has she sung a single line?
Know, proud hearts, that, with her,
Know, proud hearts, that, with her,
'Tis not enough to be brave."
'It's not enough to be brave.'
CHAPTER V. WAR ON THE OCEAN.
061
The President and the Little Belt—The President and the Belvidera—Hull's Race—The Constitution and the Guerriere—Effect of the Victory—The Wasp and the Frolic—The United States and the Macedonian—The Constitution and the Java—Nelson's Prediction.
The President and the Little Belt—The President and the Belvidera—Hull's Race—The Constitution and the Guerriere—Impact of the Victory—The Wasp and the Frolic—The United States and the Macedonian—The Constitution and the Java—Nelson's Prediction.
While the year 1812 brought nothing but disaster to the land forces of the United States, on the ocean it was fruitful of victories that astonished the world. It is greatly to the credit of President Madison that he followed the advice of Captains Stewart and Bainbridge, in opposition to his entire Cabinet, to develop and use the navy, instead of laying it up. That was not only the wise but the appropriate thing to do. This was pre-eminently a sailors' war, entered upon chiefly for the purpose of protecting American seamen from impressment in a foreign service, and its ultimate result would be a settlement of the question whether American ships were to be at liberty to sail the high seas at all, or whether, as a poet of our day puts it, the Atlantic Ocean was to be considered merely John Bull's back yard. It was the wise thing to do, because, if a na062tion determines to go to war at all, it should do it in earnest; and the most effective war is made when the earliest and most persistent blows are directed at the enemy's vital part. Of all Great Britain's possessions that could be reached by balls or bayonets, her ships at sea were the most important to her. Canada might be overrun, or even conquered, and she would hardly feel its loss—or at least she could exist without it; but anything that weakened her navy and deranged her commerce would make every Englishman feel the penalties of war.
While the year 1812 brought nothing but disaster to the U.S. land forces, the ocean was full of victories that amazed the world. It’s a huge credit to President Madison that he followed the advice of Captains Stewart and Bainbridge, against the wishes of his entire Cabinet, to develop and use the navy instead of putting it aside. This was not only the smart choice but the right one. This was clearly a sailors' war, primarily aimed at protecting American seamen from being forced into foreign service, and its ultimate outcome would determine whether American ships could freely sail the high seas, or if, as a contemporary poet puts it, the Atlantic Ocean would be regarded as merely John Bull's backyard. It was the right move because, if a nation decides to go to war, it should commit fully; the most effective war is fought when the initial and most sustained strikes target the enemy’s vital points. Among all of Great Britain’s possessions that could be attacked, her ships at sea were the most crucial. Canada could be overrun or even conquered, and she would hardly feel its loss—or at least she could survive without it; but anything that weakened her navy and disrupted her commerce would make every Englishman feel the impact of war.
A slight foretaste of what American seamanship and gunnery might do had been afforded by an affair that took place a year before the war broke out. The American frigate President, of forty-four guns, with Commodore John Rodgers on board, was cruising off Sandy Hook in May, 1811, searching for an English frigate that had taken a sailor from an American brig, when she sighted a strange craft. In answer to her hail, the stranger fired a shotted gun, and the shot struck the mainmast. The President promptly returned the fire, and in a few minutes broadsides and musketry blazed out from both vessels. As soon as Rodgers perceived the inferiority of his antagonist, he ordered his gunners to cease firing; but no sooner were his guns silent than the stranger opened again. With another broadside or 063two the President completely crippled her, and then hailed and got an answer. As darkness now came on, Rodgers lay to for the night, keeping lights displayed, in case the stranger should need assistance. In the morning he sent an officer on board, who learned that she was the British ship Little Belt; that she was badly damaged, and had lost thirty-one men killed or wounded. But she declined receiving any assistance. On board the President one boy had been slightly wounded. Each vessel sailed for home, and each commander told his own story, the two accounts being widely different. The version here given is that of the American officers. According to the English captain, the President began the action by firing a broadside into the unoffending Little Belt. Each government accepted the statement of its own officers, and there the matter rested.
A glimpse of what American seamanship and gunnery could achieve was provided by an incident that occurred a year before the war began. In May 1811, the American frigate President, with forty-four guns and Commodore John Rodgers on board, was cruising off Sandy Hook, looking for an English frigate that had taken a sailor from an American brig when it spotted a strange vessel. In response to its hail, the stranger fired a loaded cannon, hitting the mainmast. The President quickly returned fire, and within minutes, broadsides and musket fire erupted from both ships. Once Rodgers realized his opponent was weaker, he ordered his gunners to stop firing; however, as soon as his guns fell silent, the stranger fired again. With another broadside or two, the President severely damaged her, then hailed and received a reply. As night fell, Rodgers anchored for the evening, displaying lights in case the stranger needed help. In the morning, he sent an officer aboard, who discovered that the ship was the British vessel Little Belt; it had sustained significant damage and lost thirty-one men killed or wounded. However, it refused any assistance. On the President, one boy had received a minor wound. Each ship returned home, and each commander presented his own version of events, which were very different. The account presented here is from the American officers. According to the English captain, the President started the fight by firing a broadside into the innocent Little Belt. Each government accepted the claims of its own officers, and that was the end of the issue.
It was this same vessel, the President, that fought the first action of the war. With news of the declaration came orders to Commodore Rodgers, then in New York, to sail on a cruise against the enemy. Within one hour he was ready. The Hornet, of eighteen guns, Captain Lawrence, was ready at the same time, and the Essex, of thirty-two guns, Captain Porter, a few hours later.
It was the same ship, the President, that engaged in the first battle of the war. When the declaration was made, Commodore Rodgers, who was in New York, received orders to set sail on a mission against the enemy. Within an hour, he was prepared. The Hornet, armed with eighteen guns and commanded by Captain Lawrence, was ready at the same time, and the Essex, equipped with thirty-two guns and led by Captain Porter, was ready a few hours later.
Information had been received that a large fleet of English merchantmen had left Jamaica, under 064a strong convoy, for England, and on the 21st of June, Rodgers left the port of New York with his squadron, in search of them. He did not find them; but on the morning of the 23d a sail appeared in sight, which proved to be the British frigate Belvidera, and the President gave chase. About four o'clock in the afternoon the vessels were within gunshot, and Rodgers opened fire with his bow-guns, sighting and discharging the first one himself. The ball struck the rudder-coat of the Belvidera, and passed into the gun-room. The next shot struck the muzzle of one of her stern-chasers. The third killed two men and wounded five. At the fourth shot the gun burst, blowing up the forecastle deck, on which Rodgers was standing, and hurling him into the air. The explosion also killed or wounded sixteen men. This caused a lull in the action, and the Belvidera's men went back to their guns and returned the fire with considerable effect. The President soon began to forge ahead, when the Belvidera cut loose her anchors, stove her boats and threw them overboard, started fourteen tons of water, and thus lightened, managed to escape, and a few days afterward made the port of Halifax. The total loss of the President, killed and wounded, in this action, was twenty-two; that of the Belvidera, about half as many. 065An English privateer was captured by the Hornet on the 9th of July, and subsequently seven merchantmen, and an American vessel that had been captured by the enemy was retaken.
Information was received that a large fleet of English merchant ships had left Jamaica, under a strong escort, for England. On June 21st, Rodgers departed from the port of New York with his squadron to find them. He didn’t locate them, but on the morning of the 23rd, a sail came into view, which turned out to be the British frigate Belvidera, and the President pursued it. By around four o'clock in the afternoon, the ships were within gunshot range, and Rodgers opened fire with his bow guns, personally aiming and firing the first one. The cannonball hit the rudder of the Belvidera and went into the gunroom. The next shot hit one of her stern-chaser guns. The third shot killed two men and injured five. During the fourth shot, the gun exploded, destroying the forecastle deck where Rodgers was standing and tossing him into the air. The blast also killed or injured sixteen crew members. This created a pause in the battle, allowing the crew of the Belvidera to return to their guns and fire back with significant impact. The President soon started to gain ground when the Belvidera cut her anchors, damaged her boats and discarded them, took on fourteen tons of water, and, lightened, managed to escape. A few days later, she reached the port of Halifax. The total casualties for the President in this battle were twenty-two, while the Belvidera suffered about half that number. An English privateer was captured by the Hornet on July 9th, and afterward, seven merchant ships were also taken, along with an American vessel that had been seized by the enemy and was retaken.
When the Belvidera carried into Halifax the news of the declaration of war, and that the American cruisers were out, a squadron of five vessels, under Captain Vere Broke in the Shannon, was sent out to destroy Rodgers. They did not find him, but they captured several American merchantmen off the port of New York, and also took, after a smart chase, the little brig-of-war Nautilus.
When the Belvidera arrived in Halifax with news of the declaration of war and that American cruisers were active, a squadron of five vessels, led by Captain Vere Broke on the Shannon, was sent out to take down Rodgers. They didn't locate him, but they did capture several American merchant ships off the coast of New York, and also seized, after a brisk chase, the small war brig Nautilus.
The Essex, which had left port a little later than the President and Hornet, took several prizes, one of them being a transport filled with soldiers. She was chased by the Alert, of twenty guns, and fired upon. The Essex was armed with carronades, guns not intended for work at long distances. Waiting till the enemy had come pretty near, she suddenly opened her broadside, and in eight minutes the Alert struck her colors.
The Essex, which had left port slightly later than the President and Hornet, captured several prizes, including a transport full of soldiers. She was pursued by the Alert, which had twenty guns, and came under fire. The Essex was equipped with carronades, which aren't meant for long-range engagements. Once the enemy got fairly close, she suddenly unleashed her broadside, and within eight minutes, the Alert surrendered.
The great war-game on the ocean began in earnest when Captain Isaac Hull sailed from the Chesapeake in July, in the Constitution, a frigate of forty-four guns. On the 17th he came in sight of five vessels, which proved to be Broke's squadron, and the next day he was surrounded by them. As the wind was 066very light, he resorted to "kedging" to keep out of reach of them. This consisted in sending a boat ahead for perhaps half a mile, with a kedge anchor and lines. The kedge was then dropped, and the lines carried back to the ship. These being fastened to the windlass, the crew, by turning it and winding them up, pulled the vessel up to the anchor. While this was being done, the boat was going ahead with another kedge and lines, to repeat the operation and make it continuous. The flagship of the British squadron was pretty close in chase when the American frigate was thus seen to be walking away from it. The enemy soon found out how the mysterious movement was made, and resorted to the same expedient. But it was not possible to approach very near by this means, as it would have brought his boat under the fire of the American's stern-guns. Captain Hull had cut away some of the woodwork and run two twenty-four pounders out at his cabin windows, and also mounted a long gun on his spar deck as a stern-chaser. Whenever there was a little wind, every vessel set every stitch of canvas she could carry, and all the nicest arts of seamanship were resorted to to gain the slightest advantage. Eleven ships were in sight most of the time, all participating in the contest. An American merchantman appeared to windward, and the British vessels, 067not wishing to leave the chase, displayed an American ensign to decoy her within reach of their guns. Thereupon the Constitution hoisted an English flag, to warn her off. This exciting race was kept up for three days. In the evening of the second day, it was evident that a heavy squall was coming up. Just before it struck the Constitution, all the light canvas was furled, and the ship was brought under short sail in a few minutes. When the pursuing vessels observed this, they began at once to let go and haul down without waiting for the wind. Presently the squall came, and with it a rainstorm that hid the vessels from one another. As soon as this happened, the Constitution sheeted home and hoisted her fore and main topgallant sails, and while her pursuers were steering in different directions to avoid the force of the squall, and believed her to be borne down by the pressure of the wind, she was sailing straight away from them at the rate of eleven knots an hour. When the squall was over, the nearest vessel of the British squadron was seen to be a long way astern, and to have fallen off two points to leeward, while the slowest ones were so far behind as to be almost out of sight. The chase was kept up during the night, but in the morning was found to be so hopeless that it was abandoned.
The great naval battle started in earnest when Captain Isaac Hull set sail from the Chesapeake in July on the Constitution, a frigate with forty-four guns. On the 17th, he spotted five vessels that turned out to be Broke's squadron, and the next day, he found himself surrounded by them. With the wind very light, he used "kedging" to stay out of their reach. This involved sending a boat ahead for about half a mile with a kedge anchor and lines. The anchor was then dropped, and the lines were brought back to the ship. By tying them to the windlass, the crew could turn it and pull the vessel toward the anchor. While this was happening, the boat was moving ahead with another kedge and lines to repeat the process. The flagship of the British squadron was close behind when the American frigate was seen to be moving away. The enemy soon figured out how this mysterious maneuver was done and tried to do the same. However, they couldn't get too close because it would put their boat in the line of fire from the American’s stern guns. Captain Hull had removed some woodwork and had two twenty-four pounders positioned at his cabin windows, plus a long gun mounted on his spar deck to use as a stern-chaser. Whenever there was a bit of wind, every ship set all the sails they could manage, employing every skill of seamanship to gain any advantage. Eleven ships were visible most of the time, all involved in the chase. An American merchant ship appeared to windward, and the British vessels, not wanting to lose their target, displayed an American flag to lure her within range of their guns. In response, the Constitution raised a British flag to warn her off. This thrilling chase continued for three days. By the evening of the second day, it was clear a severe squall was approaching. Just before it hit the Constitution, all the light sails were furled, and the ship was quickly brought under short sail. When the pursuing vessels noticed this, they immediately started to let go and haul down their sails without waiting for the wind. Soon, the squall arrived, bringing a rainstorm that obscured the ships from each other. As soon as this happened, the Constitution set her sails and hoisted her fore and main topgallant sails. While her pursuers were steering in different directions to dodge the squall, believing the Constitution was being overwhelmed by the wind, she was actually sailing straight away from them at eleven knots an hour. Once the squall passed, the closest British vessel was seen far behind, having fallen off two points to leeward, while the slower ships were so far back they were nearly out of sight. The chase continued through the night, but by morning, it was clear it was hopeless, and it was called off.
This contest, though a mere race, attended with 068no fighting, no damage of any kind, and only a negative result, is famous in the annals of the ocean. It was a fine instance of that superior seamanship which stood the American sailor in good stead throughout the war, and contributed quite as much as his valor to the brilliant victories that rendered Great Britain no longer the mistress of the seas.
This competition, although just a race, involved 068no fighting, no damage at all, and only a negative outcome, is well-known in the history of the ocean. It was a great example of the excellent seamanship that helped the American sailor throughout the war and contributed just as much as his bravery to the impressive victories that ensured Great Britain was no longer the dominating force at sea.
Hull made sail for Boston, and after a short stay in that port sailed again on the 2d of August. He cruised along eastward as far as the Gulf of St. Lawrence, where he captured and burned two small prizes, and then stood southward. In the afternoon of the 19th a sail was descried from the masthead, and the Constitution at once gave chase. Within an hour and a half she was near enough to the stranger to see that she was a frigate; and a little later she laid her maintopsail aback and waited for the Constitution, evidently anxious for a contest.
Hull set sail for Boston and, after a brief stop in that port, left again on August 2nd. He cruised eastward until he reached the Gulf of St. Lawrence, where he captured and burned two small ships. Then he headed south. On the afternoon of the 19th, a sail was spotted from the masthead, and the Constitution immediately pursued it. Within an hour and a half, she got close enough to see that the stranger was a frigate; shortly after, the frigate adjusted her sails and waited for the Constitution, clearly eager for a battle.
Hull immediately put his vessel in complete trim for a fight, cleared for action, and beat to quarters. At five o'clock the English frigate, which proved to be the Guerriere, of thirty-eight guns, Captain Dacres, hoisted three ensigns and opened fire. The Constitution approached cautiously, so as to avoid being raked, firing occasionally, but reserving most of her guns for close action.
Hull immediately got his ship fully ready for battle, cleared for action, and called the crew to their stations. At five o'clock, the English frigate, which turned out to be the Guerriere, carrying thirty-eight guns and commanded by Captain Dacres, raised three flags and started firing. The Constitution moved in carefully to avoid taking heavy damage, firing occasionally but holding back most of her guns for close combat.
After an hour of this, the Guerriere indicated her 069readiness for a square fight, yard-arm to yard-arm, and the Constitution set her sails to draw alongside. The fire from both ships became gradually heavier, and in ten minutes the mizzen-mast of the Guerriere was shot away. The Constitution then passed slowly ahead, keeping up a constant fire, her guns being double shotted with grape and round shot, and attempted to get a position across the bows of the enemy and rake her. But in trying to avoid being herself raked while gaining this position, she luffed short, and fell foul of her enemy. At this moment the cabin of the Constitution took fire from the flash of the Guerriere's guns, and for a while it looked as if she would fare hardly. But by the energy and skill of Lieutenant B. V. Hoffman, who commanded in the cabin, the fire was extinguished, confusion prevented, and a gun of the Guerriere that might have repeated the mischief disabled.
After an hour of this, the Guerriere signaled her 069 readiness for a close battle, yard-arm to yard-arm, and the Constitution set her sails to move alongside. The firing from both ships gradually intensified, and within ten minutes, the mizzen-mast of the Guerriere was shot away. The Constitution then moved slowly ahead, maintaining a continuous barrage, with her guns loaded with both grape and round shot, trying to position herself across the enemy's bow to rake her. However, in an attempt to avoid being raked herself while getting into position, she turned too sharply and collided with her opponent. At that moment, the cabin of the Constitution caught fire from the flash of the Guerriere's guns, and for a while, it seemed like she was going to suffer heavily. But thanks to the energy and skill of Lieutenant B. V. Hoffman, who was in charge of the cabin, the fire was put out, confusion was averted, and a gun from the Guerriere that could have caused further damage was disabled.
The instant the vessels came together, each attempted to board the other; but a close and deadly fire of musketry prevented. On the American side, Lieutenant Morris, Master Alwyn, and Mr. Bush, Lieutenant of Marines, sprang to the taffrail to lead their men, when they were all shot down. Finding it impossible to board, the Constitution filled her sails and shot ahead, and a moment later the Guerriere's foremast fell, and carried the mainmast, with it. This 070reduced her to a wreck, and as a heavy sea was on she was helpless. The Constitution hauled off a short distance, repaired damages, and at seven o'clock wore round and took a position for raking. An ensign that had been hoisted on the stump of the mizzen-mast was at once hauled down in token of surrender, and the prize was won. A lieutenant sent on board returned with the news that she was one of the squadron that had so lately chased the Constitution.
The moment the ships collided, each tried to board the other; but a fierce and deadly gunfire stopped them. On the American side, Lieutenant Morris, Master Alwyn, and Mr. Bush, the Lieutenant of Marines, rushed to the taffrail to lead their men, only to be shot down. Finding it impossible to board, the Constitution raised her sails and surged forward. A moment later, the Guerriere's foremast collapsed, taking the mainmast down with it. This 070left her a wreck, and with heavy seas, she was helpless. The Constitution pulled back a short distance, made repairs, and at seven o'clock turned around to position herself for a raking shot. An ensign that had been raised on the stump of the mizzen-mast was immediately lowered as a sign of surrender, and the prize was secured. A lieutenant sent aboard returned with the news that she was one of the ships that had recently chased the Constitution.
The victor kept near her prize through the night, and at daylight the officer in charge reported that the Guerriere had four feet of water in the hold and was in danger of sinking. Captain Hull therefore transferred the prisoners to his own vessel, recalled the prize crew, and set the wreck on fire. In fifteen minutes the flames reached the magazine, and the hulk that still remained of the proud English frigate was blown to pieces.
The winner stayed close to her prize all night, and by morning the officer in charge reported that the Guerriere had four feet of water in the hold and was at risk of sinking. Captain Hull then moved the prisoners to his own ship, called back the prize crew, and set the wreck on fire. In just fifteen minutes, the flames reached the magazine, and the remaining wreckage of the once-proud English frigate was blown apart.
In this battle the Constitution lost seven men killed and seven wounded. Her rigging suffered considerably, but her hull was only very slightly damaged. The Guerriere lost seventy-nine men killed or wounded. The location of this battle may be found by drawing a line directly east from the point of Cape Cod, and another directly south from Cape Race; the point of intersection will be very near the bat071tle-ground. It is a little south of the track of steamers between New York and Liverpool.
In this battle, the Constitution lost seven men killed and seven wounded. Her rigging took quite a hit, but her hull was only slightly damaged. The Guerriere lost seventy-nine men killed or injured. You can find the location of this battle by drawing a line straight east from the tip of Cape Cod and another line straight south from Cape Race; where those two lines intersect will be very close to the battle ground. It's just a bit south of the route taken by steamers traveling between New York and Liverpool.
The news of this victory was a startling revelation, on both sides of the Atlantic. In expressing their contempt for the American navy, the English journals had especially ridiculed the Constitution, as "a bunch of pine boards, under a bit of striped bunting." This bunch of boards had now outsailed a squadron of eleven British war-vessels, and in a fight of half an hour had reduced one of their frigates to a wreck and made her strike her colors. It was true that the American ship was slightly superior in number of men and guns; but this would not account for the superiority of seamanship, the better gun-practice, and the enormous difference in losses. Captain Dacres, who was afterward put on trial for losing his ship, asserted that he had sent away a considerable number of his men in prizes; that he had several Americans in his crew who refused to fight against their countrymen, and that he permitted them to go below. But all allowances that could be made did not change the essential character of the victory. Only a short time before, the London Courier had said, "There is not a frigate in the American navy able to cope with the Guerriere."
The news of this victory was a shocking revelation on both sides of the Atlantic. While expressing their disdain for the American navy, English newspapers had particularly mocked the Constitution, calling it "a bunch of pine boards under a bit of striped bunting." This collection of boards had now outsailed a fleet of eleven British warships and, in a half-hour battle, had turned one of their frigates into a wreck and forced it to surrender. It was true that the American ship had a slight advantage in terms of crew and firepower, but that didn't explain the superiority in seamanship, better gunnery, and the vast difference in casualties. Captain Dacres, who was later put on trial for losing his ship, claimed that he had sent a significant portion of his crew away on prizes, that he had several Americans in his crew who refused to fight against their countrymen, and that he allowed them to go below decks. But any considerations that could be made did not change the fundamental nature of the victory. Just a short time earlier, the London Courier had said, "There is not a frigate in the American navy able to cope with the Guerriere."
Captain Hull, who was now in his thirty-eighth year, had entered the navy at the age of twenty072three, and had gained distinction in the war with Tripoli. When he landed in Boston with his prisoners, nearly the whole population of the town turned out to greet him. Flags and streamers were displayed on every hand, decorated arches spanned the streets, and a banquet was spread for him and his crew. He made a sort of triumphal progress to New York and Philadelphia, where similar honors were paid him, and handsome swords and snuffboxes presented to him. Congress voted him a gold medal, to each of his commissioned officers a silver medal, and fifty thousand dollars to the crew as prize money.
Captain Hull, now thirty-eight years old, had joined the navy at the age of twenty-three and had made a name for himself during the war with Tripoli. When he arrived in Boston with his prisoners, almost everyone in the town came out to welcome him. Flags and streamers were everywhere, decorated arches stretched across the streets, and a feast was laid out for him and his crew. He made a kind of celebratory journey to New York and Philadelphia, where he received similar honors and was presented with beautiful swords and snuffboxes. Congress awarded him a gold medal, each of his commissioned officers a silver medal, and fifty thousand dollars to the crew as prize money.
In his official report the Captain said: "It gives me great pleasure to say that, from the smallest boy in the ship to the oldest seaman, not a look of fear was seen. They all went into action giving three cheers, and requesting to be laid close alongside the enemy." The London Times said: "It is not merely that an English frigate has been taken, after what we are free to confess may be called a brave resistance, but that it has been taken by a new enemy, an enemy unaccustomed to such triumphs, and likely to be rendered insolent and confident by them. He must be a weak politician who does not see how important the first triumph is, in giving a tone and character to the war. Never before in the 073history of the world did an English frigate strike to an American; and though we cannot say that Captain Dacres, under all circumstances, is punishable for this act, yet we do say there are commanders in the English navy who would a thousand times have rather gone down with their colors flying than have set their brother officers so fatal an example."
In his official report, the Captain said: "I’m really pleased to state that from the youngest boy on the ship to the oldest sailor, there wasn’t a hint of fear. They all sprang into action, cheering three times and asking to be positioned close alongside the enemy." The London Times stated: "It’s not only that an English frigate has been captured, after what we must admit could be called a brave resistance, but that it has been taken by a new enemy, one that isn't used to such victories and is likely to become arrogant and overconfident because of them. It would take a weak politician not to recognize how crucial the first victory is in setting the tone and character for the war. Never before in the 073history of the world has an English frigate surrendered to an American; and while we can’t definitively say that Captain Dacres deserves punishment for this, we assert that there are commanders in the English navy who would have preferred to go down with their flags flying rather than set such a disastrous example for their fellow officers."
The next naval contest, in the order of time, was that of the Wasp and the Frolic, one of the bloodiest of the war. The Wasp, an American sloop-of-war, of eighteen guns, commanded by Captain Jacob Jones, was a very fast sailer, and had gone to Europe with despatches, when the war broke out. On her return she was refitted with all haste and sent out on a cruise. In the night of October 17th, about five hundred miles off Cape Hatteras, she sighted a fleet of six English merchantmen under convoy of the Frolic, a brig, of twenty-two guns, Captain Whinyates. Four of the merchantmen were armed.
The next naval battle in chronological order was between the Wasp and the Frolic, one of the bloodiest of the war. The Wasp, an American sloop-of-war with eighteen guns, was commanded by Captain Jacob Jones and was a very fast ship. She had traveled to Europe with important documents when the war broke out. After her return, she was quickly refitted and sent out on a cruise. On the night of October 17th, about five hundred miles off Cape Hatteras, she spotted a fleet of six English merchant ships being escorted by the Frolic, a brig with twenty-two guns, commanded by Captain Whinyates. Four of the merchant ships were armed.
The next morning, the sea being somewhat rough, the Wasp was put under short canvas and got into fighting trim, and then bore down upon the Frolic, which kept herself between her convoy and the enemy. She also was under short canvas, and her main-yard was on deck. About half past eleven o'clock the Wasp came up close on the starboard side of the Frolic, and broadsides were exchanged at 074the distance of only sixty yards. The fire of the Englishman was the more rapid, but that of the American was the more deliberate and effective. In a little over four minutes the Wasp's maintopmast was shot off and with the maintopsail-yard fell across the braces, rendering the head-yards unmanageable. A few minutes later her gaff and mizzen-topgallant-mast were shot down; and before the action was over, every brace and most of the rigging was carried away. The shot of the Wasp was directed mainly at her enemy's hull, and the firing on both sides was kept up with great spirit, little or no attempt being made to manoeuvre, and the vessels gradually approaching each other. At last they were so near that the American gunners touched the side of the Frolic with their rammers, her bowsprit passed over the Wasp's quarterdeck, and the latter was brought directly across the Englishman's bows, in position for raking. Captain Jones ordered a broadside; and when it was fired, the muzzles of two of the guns were actually in the bow ports of the Frolic, and the discharge swept her from stem to stern.
The next morning, with the sea a bit rough, the Wasp was rigged with a small amount of sail and prepared for battle, then moved in on the Frolic, which positioned itself between its convoy and the enemy. The Frolic was also rigged with a small amount of sail, and its main yard was on deck. Around half past eleven, the Wasp drew close on the starboard side of the Frolic, and they exchanged broadsides at a distance of only sixty yards. The English fired faster, but the Americans were more methodical and effective. In just over four minutes, the Wasp's maintopmast was shot off, and with it, the maintopsail yard fell across the braces, making the head yards unmanageable. A few minutes later, her gaff and mizzen-topgallant-mast were taken down; by the end of the fight, every brace and most of the rigging was lost. The Wasp mainly targeted her enemy's hull, and both sides kept firing with great enthusiasm, making little to no effort to maneuver as the ships gradually closed in on each other. Eventually, they got so close that the American gunners could touch the side of the Frolic with their rammer, her bowsprit passed over the Wasp's quarterdeck, and the Wasp positioned directly across the Englishman's bows, set up for a raking shot. Captain Jones ordered a broadside; when it was fired, the muzzles of two guns were actually in the bow ports of the Frolic, and the blast swept through it from stem to stern.
As no sign of submission had come from the enemy, Captain Jones was about to repeat the raking, but was prevented by the impetuosity of his crew. A sailor named John Lang, who had once 075been impressed on a British man-of-war, hot for revenge, sprang upon the bowsprit of the Frolic, cutlass in hand, and was followed by Lieutenant Biddle and an impromptu boarding-party. They met no opposition. Two or three officers, wounded and bleeding, were standing on the after-part of the deck; there was a cool-headed old seaman at the wheel; and dead and wounded sailors were lying about in all directions. The officers threw down their swords, and Lieutenant Biddle sprang into the rigging and hauled down the British flag. The battle had lasted forty-three minutes. On board the Wasp, five men had been killed and five wounded. The loss on the Frolic has never been ascertained, it was at least seventy-five. Captain Whinyates, in his official report, said that not twenty of his men escaped injury.
As there was no sign of surrender from the enemy, Captain Jones was about to order another attack, but his eager crew wouldn’t wait. A sailor named John Lang, who had once been forced into service on a British warship and was eager for revenge, jumped onto the bowsprit of the Frolic with a cutlass in hand, followed by Lieutenant Biddle and a makeshift boarding party. They faced no resistance. A couple of injured officers were bleeding and standing at the back of the deck; there was a calm old sailor at the wheel; and dead and injured sailors lay scattered everywhere. The officers dropped their swords, and Lieutenant Biddle climbed into the rigging and pulled down the British flag. The battle had lasted forty-three minutes. On the Wasp, five men were killed and five were wounded. The casualties on the Frolic have never been determined, but it was at least seventy-five. Captain Whinyates, in his official report, noted that fewer than twenty of his men escaped without injury.
The two vessels were separated, and in a few minutes both masts of the Frolic fell. Arrangements were made for sending her into Charleston with a prize crew, while the Wasp should repair damages and continue her cruise. But before this plan could even be fairly entered upon, the British ship-of-the-line Poictiers, carrying seventy-four guns, hove in sight, and speedily made prize of both vessels and took them to Bermuda.
The two ships were separated, and within a few minutes, both masts of the Frolic fell. Plans were made to send her to Charleston with a prize crew, while the Wasp would fix her damages and keep cruising. But before this plan could really get going, the British ship-of-the-line Poictiers, armed with seventy-four guns, appeared on the horizon and quickly captured both vessels, taking them to Bermuda.
On the same day when this action took place. 076Commodore Stephen Decatur, cruising in the frigate United States, captured the British packet Swallow, which had on board a large quantity of specie. He continued his cruise eastward, and only a week later (October 25th), at a point about midway between the Azores and the Cape Verd Islands, sighted a large vessel to windward, which proved to be the English frigate Macedonian, carrying forty-nine guns, Captain Carden. She was somewhat smaller than the United States, and had fewer men. Decatur made up to the stranger; but she had the advantage of the wind, and for some time managed to keep out of reach. At length, after considerable manoeuvring, the distance was shortened, and both vessels opened fire with their long guns. The gunnery of the American was superior, and while sustaining little injury herself she inflicted serious damage upon her antagonist. At the end of half an hour, the distance had been still more diminished, so that the carronades were brought into use. A carronade is a short gun, throwing a comparatively large ball with not very great velocity. The size of the ball and its slower motion cause it to splinter and tear a ragged hole in the side of a ship, where a smaller shot with a greater velocity would pass through and make a smooth round hole, which could easily be plugged up again. 077As the Macedonian became disabled, she fell off to leeward, while the United States passed ahead and to windward, and then tacked and came up under her lee. The firing, which had been entirely with artillery, now ceased on both sides. The Macedonian's mizzen-mast was gone, her main and foretopmasts carried away, her main-yard cut in two, and her ensign had disappeared. The United States hailed her, and was answered that she had struck her colors. She had received a hundred shot in her hull, most of them in the waist. She went into the action with three hundred men, of whom she lost thirty-six killed and sixty-eight wounded. On board were seven impressed American sailors, two of whom were killed. On the United States five men were killed and seven wounded. Her rigging was considerably cut, but otherwise she received very little injury.
On the same day that this action took place, 076Commodore Stephen Decatur, sailing in the frigate United States, captured the British packet Swallow, which was carrying a large amount of cash. He continued his cruise eastward, and just a week later (October 25th), about halfway between the Azores and the Cape Verde Islands, he spotted a large ship to windward, which turned out to be the English frigate Macedonian, armed with forty-nine guns, commanded by Captain Carden. She was slightly smaller than the United States and had fewer crew members. Decatur approached the stranger, but she had the wind advantage and managed to stay out of reach for a while. Eventually, after significant maneuvering, the distance closed, and both ships opened fire with their long guns. The American gunners outperformed their opponents, sustaining minimal damage while inflicting serious injuries on the Macedonian. After about thirty minutes, the gap between the ships had decreased further, allowing the use of carronades. A carronade is a short gun that fires a relatively large projectile at a slower speed. The size and slower speed of the projectile cause it to splinter and create a ragged hole in a ship's side, whereas a smaller, faster shot would pass through, making a smooth round hole that could be easily plugged. 077As the Macedonian became disabled, she drifted downwind, while the United States moved ahead and to windward, then tacked and came up under her lee. The artillery fire, which had been the only form of combat, now ceased from both sides. The Macedonian's mizzen-mast was lost, her main and foretopmasts were destroyed, her main-yard was cut in two, and her flag was gone. The United States hailed her, and the response was that she had struck her colors. The Macedonian had taken a hundred shots to her hull, mostly around the waist. She entered the battle with three hundred men, losing thirty-six killed and sixty-eight wounded. There were seven impressed American sailors on board, two of whom were killed. On the United States, five men were killed and seven wounded. Her rigging was significantly damaged, but she suffered little other injury.
Decatur took his prize to New York, going in by way of Long Island Sound, where he arrived on New Year's day, 1813. He was received with a great ovation, and there were banquets, orations; and public rejoicings unlimited. Congress, following the precedent set in the case of Hull, voted a gold medal to the commander, and a silver one to each of his commissioned officers.
Decatur brought his prize to New York, entering through Long Island Sound, where he arrived on New Year's Day, 1813. He was greeted with a huge celebration, including banquets, speeches, and endless public festivities. Congress, following the example set with Hull, awarded a gold medal to the commander and a silver one to each of his commissioned officers.
A member of the British Parliament, making a 078speech concerning this affair, said he "lamented that, with the navy of Great Britain against that of America, which consisted of only four frigates and two sloops, two of our finest frigates were now in their possession, captured by only two of theirs. This was a reverse which English officers and English sailors had not before been used to, and from such a contemptible navy as that of America had always been held, no one could suppose such an event could have taken place."
A British Parliament member, during a 078speech about this issue, expressed that he "regretted that, with Great Britain's navy facing America's, which had only four frigates and two sloops, two of our best frigates were now in their hands, captured by just two of theirs. This was a setback that English officers and sailors had never experienced before, and given the low regard in which America's navy had always been held, no one could have imagined that such an event could actually happen."
And the London Independent Whig was constrained to say: "A powerful and rival nation is now rapidly rising in the west, whose remonstrances we have hitherto derided, but whose resentment we shall soon be taught to feel; who for our follies or our crimes seems destined to retaliate on us the miseries we have inflicted on defenceless and oppressed states, to share with us the fertile products of the ocean, and snatch from our feeble and decrepit hands the imperial trident of the main."
And the London Independent Whig had to admit: "A strong rival nation is quickly emerging in the west, whose complaints we've previously laughed off, but whose anger we'll soon learn to experience; a nation that seems destined to pay us back for the suffering we've caused defenseless and oppressed states, to share with us the rich bounty of the ocean, and to take from our weak and worn-out hands the imperial control of the seas."
But the cup of English humiliation was not yet full. The Americans had another able commander, with a stanch ship and a fearless crew, who now came in for his turn. This was Commodore William Bainbridge, who sailed from Boston late in October, on board the Constitution, the same vessel with which Hull had conquered the Guerriere. In com079pany with her sailed the brig Hornet, of eighteen guns, commanded by Captain James Lawrence.
But the cup of English humiliation was not yet full. The Americans had another skilled commander, with a sturdy ship and a courageous crew, who was now ready to take action. This was Commodore William Bainbridge, who set sail from Boston late in October, aboard the Constitution, the same ship with which Hull had defeated the Guerriere. Accompanying her was the brig Hornet, armed with eighteen guns and commanded by Captain James Lawrence.
They cruised southward, and in December the Hornet was left at San Salvador, or Bahia, Brazil, to blockade an English brig that was on the point of sailing with a large amount of specie on board. Lawrence had sent in a challenge to fight the two brigs, on even terms, just outside the harbor, but the English captain declined.
They headed south, and in December, the Hornet stayed at San Salvador, or Bahia, Brazil, to block an English brig that was about to set sail with a large amount of cash on board. Lawrence had issued a challenge to fight the two brigs, on fair terms, just outside the harbor, but the English captain refused.
The Constitution continued her cruise, and on the 29th, off the Brazilian coast, sighted the English frigate Java, carrying thirty-eight guns, Captain Lambert. Bainbridge tacked and drew the stranger off the land, which was not more than thirty miles distant, and when far enough away stood toward him. The enemy seemed quite as anxious for a contest, and about two o'clock it began. The firing was heavy and continuous. The Java had the advantage of the wind, and attempted to cross the Constitution's bow, to rake her. But the latter wore, and avoided it. This manoeuvre was repeated several times, and at length the Constitution, though her wheel had been shot away, making it difficult to manage the steering-gear, succeeded in getting the coveted position, and raked her antagonist.
The Constitution continued her voyage, and on the 29th, off the coast of Brazil, spotted the British frigate Java, which had thirty-eight guns and was captained by Lambert. Bainbridge changed course to draw the stranger away from the land, which was no more than thirty miles away, and once far enough out, headed toward him. The enemy seemed just as eager for a fight, and around two o'clock, it began. The firing was heavy and ongoing. The Java had the wind on her side and tried to cross the Constitution's front to hit her from the side. But the Constitution turned and avoided it. This maneuver occurred several times, and eventually, despite having lost her wheel and struggling with the steering, the Constitution managed to gain the desired position and hit her opponent.
The two vessels now separated, and after considerable manoeuvring came together again, yard-arm and yard-arm, and reopened their broadsides. Now the Java's mizzen-mast tumbled, and her main-mast was the only stick left standing. The Constitution then hauled off, and spent an hour in repairing damages, at the end of which time she wore round and stood across her antagonist's bow, when the English colors were struck.
The two ships pulled apart, and after a lot of maneuvering they came back together, side by side, and opened fire again. The Java's mizzen-mast fell, leaving only her main-mast standing. The Constitution then backed off and spent an hour fixing the damage. Once that was done, she turned and headed across her opponent's bow, at which point the English colors were lowered.
The action had lasted an hour and fifty-five minutes. The Constitution had lost nine men killed and twenty-five wounded, Commodore Bainbridge being slightly wounded. The loss on board the Java was variously stated; the lowest estimate made it twenty-two killed and one hundred and one wounded. Bainbridge said that sixty were killed. Captain Lambert was mortally wounded. The whole number on board was four hundred, including General Hislop and his staff and other officers, who were on their way to the East Indies.
The battle lasted an hour and fifty-five minutes. The Constitution lost nine men killed and twenty-five injured, with Commodore Bainbridge being slightly hurt. The reported losses on the Java varied; the lowest estimate put it at twenty-two killed and one hundred and one injured. Bainbridge reported sixty killed. Captain Lambert was fatally wounded. There were four hundred people onboard, including General Hislop, his staff, and other officers who were traveling to the East Indies.
The Java was a complete wreck, and after a day or two it was determined to blow her up, which was done after all the prisoners and wounded had been 081carefully removed. She might have been towed into Bahia; but Brazil was friendly to Great Britain, and Bainbridge did not want to trust his prize in a Brazilian harbor. He, however, landed his prisoners there, and paroled them.
The Java was totally wrecked, and after a day or two, it was decided to blow her up, which happened after all the prisoners and wounded had been 081carefully taken off. She could have been towed into Bahia, but Brazil was friendly toward Great Britain, and Bainbridge didn’t want to risk his prize in a Brazilian harbor. However, he did land his prisoners there and paroled them.
The Constitution—which received the name of "Old Ironsides," on account of escaping serious damage in this action—arrived at Boston in February. Here the same welcome that had been given to Hull and Decatur was extended to Bainbridge. The cities of New York and Albany gave him gold snuff-boxes, Philadelphia gave him a service of silver, and Congress voted the usual medals, with fifty thousand dollars of prize money for the crew.
The Constitution—nicknamed "Old Ironsides" because it avoided major damage in this battle—arrived in Boston in February. There, the same warm welcome given to Hull and Decatur was extended to Bainbridge. New York and Albany presented him with gold snuff-boxes, Philadelphia gifted him a silver service, and Congress awarded the usual medals along with fifty thousand dollars in prize money for the crew.
In the first six months of the war, the little American navy, for which Congress had done nothing, and from which nothing had been expected, had six encounters with English cruisers, and in every one was victorious. These defeats were a sore trouble to English naval historians, who have ever since been laboring to explain them away. They have invented all sorts of ingenious theories to account for them; but it has never occurred to them to adopt the simple explanation that they were defeats, brought about by superior seamanship and gunnery, backed up by the consciousness of a just cause, on the part of the Americans. The favorite explanation 082has been, that the American so-called frigates were seventy-four-gun ships in disguise; that the English crews were all green hands, and their numbers were not full at that. A few years later, General Scott met at a dinner in London a young British naval officer, who superciliously inquired, "whether the Americans continued to build line-of-battle ships, and to call them frigates."
In the first six months of the war, the small American navy, which Congress had done nothing for and from which nothing had been expected, had six encounters with British cruisers and won every single one. These defeats were a significant concern for British naval historians, who have since been trying to explain them away. They've come up with all kinds of clever theories to justify them, but it never crossed their minds to consider the simple explanation that they were indeed defeats, caused by better seamanship and gunnery, combined with a strong belief in their just cause on the part of the Americans. The popular explanation has been that the American so-called frigates were actually seventy-four-gun ships in disguise, with inexperienced British crews and not even at full strength. A few years later, General Scott met a young British naval officer at a dinner in London, who arrogantly asked, "Do the Americans still build line-of-battle ships and call them frigates?"
"We have borrowed a great many excellent things from the mother country," answered Scott, "and some that discredit both parties. Among the latter is the practice in question. Thus when you took from France the Guerrière, she mounted forty-nine guns, and you instantly rated her on your list a thirty-six-gun frigate; but when we captured her from you, we found on board the same number, forty-nine guns!"
"We've borrowed a lot of great things from the mother country," Scott replied, "and some that reflect poorly on both sides. One of those is the practice in question. When you took the Guerrière from France, she had forty-nine guns, and you immediately classified her as a thirty-six-gun frigate; but when we captured her from you, we found she still had the same number—forty-nine guns!"
During this same half year, nearly three hundred British merchantmen had been captured and brought into American ports. In this work the little navy had been assisted by a large number of privateers, which had sailed from our ports, under letters of marque, and had not only helped themselves to the rich spoils of British commerce, but had occasionally fought with armed cruisers.
During this same six-month period, nearly three hundred British merchant ships were captured and brought into American ports. In this effort, the small navy was supported by many privateers that set sail from our ports with letters of marque, and they not only took advantage of the wealth in British trade but also occasionally engaged in battles with armed cruisers.
These disasters were no more than had been predicted by Lord Nelson, the greatest of English admirals. After watching the evolutions of an Ameri083can squadron commanded by Commodore Richard Dale, in the bay of Gibraltar, he is reported to have said to an American gentleman who was on board his flagship that "there was in those transatlantic ships a nucleus of trouble for the maritime power of Great Britain. We have nothing to fear from anything on this side of the Atlantic; but the manner in which those ships are handled makes me think that there may be a time when we shall have trouble from the other."
These disasters were exactly what Lord Nelson, the greatest English admiral, had predicted. After observing the maneuvers of an American squadron led by Commodore Richard Dale in the bay of Gibraltar, he reportedly told an American gentleman on his flagship that "there's a core of trouble for Great Britain's maritime power in those transatlantic ships. We have nothing to worry about on this side of the Atlantic, but the way those ships are managed makes me think there could be a time when we will face issues from the other side."
CHAPTER VI. MINOR BATTLES IN THE WEST.
084
Winchester's Expedition—Fight at Frenchtown—Massacre at the Raisin—Siege of Fort Meigs.
Winchester's Expedition—Battle at Frenchtown—Massacre at the Raisin—Siege of Fort Meigs.
At the opening of the year 1813, General William Henry Harrison, who had won a high reputation by his victory over the Indians at Tippecanoe in 1811, being now in command of the forces in the West, endeavored to concentrate them for a movement against the British and savages at Detroit and Malden. An expedition composed mainly of Kentucky troops, under General James Winchester, was making its way northward through Ohio to join him; and Leslie Coombs, of Kentucky, accompanied by a single guide, went through the woods more than a hundred miles on foot to inform Harrison of their approach.
At the start of 1813, General William Henry Harrison, who had gained a strong reputation for his victory over the Native Americans at Tippecanoe in 1811, was now in charge of the forces in the West. He aimed to gather them for an attack on the British and Native Americans in Detroit and Malden. An expedition mainly made up of Kentucky troops, led by General James Winchester, was heading north through Ohio to meet him. Leslie Coombs from Kentucky, along with just one guide, traveled over a hundred miles on foot through the woods to let Harrison know they were coming.
When Winchester's expedition reached the rapids of the Miami, he was met by messengers from the pioneers about the River Raisin, informing him that the enemy was organizing a movement against the settlements there, and imploring him to protect them. A detachment of six hundred and sixty men, 085under Colonels Lewis and Allen, was sent forward, and pushing on with the greatest possible rapidity, marching a part of the way over the frozen surface of Lake Erie, reached Frenchtown, on the Raisin, where Monroe, Michigan, now stands, on the 18th of January.
When Winchester's expedition arrived at the Miami rapids, messengers from the pioneers near the River Raisin approached him, letting him know that the enemy was planning an attack on the settlements and pleading for his protection. A group of six hundred and sixty men, 085led by Colonels Lewis and Allen, was dispatched quickly. They moved as fast as possible, partially marching across the frozen surface of Lake Erie, and reached Frenchtown, where Monroe, Michigan, is located today, on January 18th.
That place had been occupied a few days before by a hundred English and four hundred Indians, who now took the alarm and prepared to resist the advancing expedition. As he approached the village, Colonel Lewis formed his command in columns, and moved forward in the face of a heavy fire of musketry and artillery. The enemy was posted behind the houses and garden fences of the village, which stood on the north side of the river; and the Americans, who had no artillery, crossed over on the ice and at once made a charge. Finding themselves attacked vigorously in front and on the left flank at the same time, the British retreated about half a mile, and took a new position in the woods, where they were partly protected by fallen timber. Colonel Lewis sent a detachment to strike this position on its right flank; and as soon as he heard the firing there, Colonel Allen attacked it in front. The enemy retreated slowly, fighting at every step, and the Americans steadily pressed their advantage till dark, when they returned to the village and en086camped. They had lost twelve men killed and fifty-five wounded. The loss of the enemy was not ascertained, but they left fifteen men dead on the field where the first engagement took place.
That place had been occupied a few days earlier by a hundred English and four hundred Indians, who were now on high alert and ready to confront the advancing expedition. As he got closer to the village, Colonel Lewis organized his troops into columns and moved forward despite heavy gunfire from muskets and cannons. The enemy was positioned behind the houses and fences in the village, which was located on the north side of the river; the Americans, lacking artillery, crossed over the ice and immediately launched an attack. Facing strong resistance from both the front and the left flank simultaneously, the British retreated about half a mile and took a new position in the woods, partly shielded by fallen trees. Colonel Lewis dispatched a team to hit this position on its right flank; as soon as he heard gunfire there, Colonel Allen attacked from the front. The enemy retreated slowly, fighting every step of the way, while the Americans pressed their advantage steadily until nightfall, when they returned to the village and set up camp. They had lost twelve men killed and fifty-five wounded. The enemy's losses were not confirmed, but they left fifteen dead on the battlefield where the initial conflict occurred.
The news of this victory was sent at once to General Winchester, who came up promptly with a reënforcement of two hundred and fifty men. It was expected that the place would be attacked by a heavier British force from Malden, which was but eighteen miles distant, and preparations were made for constructing a fortified camp. But the enemy came before this could be completed. In the night of January 21st, Colonel Henry Proctor, with a force of about eleven hundred, British and savages, moved from Malden, and early in the morning of the 22d the American sentries were surprised. No pickets had been thrown out, and the troops were hardly brought into line when a heavy fire of artillery and small arms was opened, both in front and on the flanks, the yells of the savages being heard in the intervals of the discharges.
The news of this victory was immediately sent to General Winchester, who quickly arrived with an extra two hundred and fifty men. It was anticipated that the location would be attacked by a larger British force from Malden, which was only eighteen miles away, so preparations were made to set up a fortified camp. However, the enemy arrived before this could be finished. On the night of January 21st, Colonel Henry Proctor, leading a force of about eleven hundred British troops and Native Americans, moved from Malden, and early on the morning of the 22nd, the American sentries were caught off guard. No pickets had been deployed, and the troops were barely organized when a heavy barrage of artillery and small arms fire was unleashed from the front and flanks, with the war cries of the Native Americans heard between the gunfire.
The attack in front was met and repelled by a steady fire, the Americans being considerably sheltered by the stout garden fences. On the right flank the attack was not so well resisted, and that wing was soon broken. It was rallied by Winchester, and reenforced by Lewis; but the enemy, seeing his ad087vantage, followed it up, and the whole wing, reenforcements and all, was swept away, the remnant retreating in disorder across the river.
The frontal assault was met with strong gunfire, with the Americans taking good cover behind the sturdy garden fences. The attack on the right side faced less resistance, and that part quickly fell apart. Winchester rallied the troops and was joined by Lewis; however, the enemy, noticing their advantage, pressed forward, and the entire right side, including the reinforcements, was overwhelmed, with the remaining soldiers retreating chaotically across the river.
All efforts to rally the fugitives were vain, and in a little while the Indians overwhelmed the left wing also. The disorganized troops of this wing attempted to escape by a road that led to the rapids of the Raisin; but the savages were posted all along behind the fences, and shot down great numbers of them. They then took to the woods directly west of the village; but here also were savages lying in wait, and it is said that nearly a hundred were tomahawked and scalped before they had gone as many yards. One party of nearly twenty men surrendered, but all except the lieutenant in command were at once massacred by their treacherous captors. Another party of forty were overtaken after they had retreated three miles, and compelled to surrender, when more than half of them were murdered in cold blood. General Winchester and Colonel Lewis were captured by the Indians, but Proctor, with some difficulty, got them under his protection. Colonel Allen, after trying without success to rally his men, retreated alone nearly two miles, and there sat down on a log, being too much enfeebled by wounds to go farther. An Indian chief came up and demanded his surrender, promising protection; but 088almost immediately followed two others, who evidently intended to scalp him. Allen killed one of them with a single blow of his sword, and was immediately shot by the other.
All attempts to gather the fleeing soldiers were pointless, and soon the Indians overwhelmed the left flank as well. The disorganized troops from this flank tried to escape along a road leading to the rapids of the Raisin, but the Native Americans were positioned behind the fences and shot many of them down. They then fled into the woods directly west of the village, but there were more Indians lying in wait, and it's said that nearly a hundred were killed and scalped before they could move even a few yards. One group of nearly twenty men surrendered, but all except the lieutenant in charge were quickly massacred by their deceitful captors. Another group of forty was caught after retreating three miles and forced to surrender, with more than half of them murdered in cold blood. General Winchester and Colonel Lewis were captured by the Indians, but Proctor managed to secure their protection with some difficulty. Colonel Allen, after unsuccessfully trying to rally his men, retreated alone for nearly two miles, where he sat down on a log, too weak from his wounds to go any farther. An Indian chief approached and demanded his surrender, promising protection; however, 088two others immediately followed, clearly intending to scalp him. Allen killed one of them with a single strike of his sword but was shot by the other right afterward.
Meanwhile the centre of the American line could not be dislodged from its position behind the fences. It was composed of Kentucky sharpshooters, and some idea of the havoc they made among the British regulars may be gained from the fact that out of sixteen men in charge of one gun thirteen were killed. Appalled at such losses, Proctor bethought him of a cheaper method than continued fighting. He represented to General Winchester, now a prisoner in his hands, that unless an immediate surrender were made, the result would be a complete massacre of the Americans. Winchester's fears were so wrought upon that he sent, by a flag of truce, orders to Major Madison to surrender. As he had no right to give orders of any kind while a prisoner in the hands of the enemy, Madison refused to obey, but offered to surrender on condition that safety and protection should be guaranteed to him and his men. When Proctor found he could not get the place in any other way without a great sacrifice of his troops, he agreed to the terms proposed, and the surrender took place.
Meanwhile, the center of the American line couldn’t be moved from its position behind the fences. It was made up of Kentucky sharpshooters, and you can get a sense of the damage they caused among the British regulars from the fact that out of sixteen men operating one gun, thirteen were killed. Shocked by such losses, Proctor considered a cheaper option than continuing to fight. He told General Winchester, who was now a prisoner, that unless there was an immediate surrender, the outcome would be a complete massacre of the Americans. Winchester, overwhelmed with fear, sent a flag of truce with orders to Major Madison to surrender. Since he had no right to give orders while being held captive, Madison refused to obey but offered to surrender on the condition that safety and protection would be guaranteed for him and his men. When Proctor realized he couldn’t take the position any other way without risking a huge loss of his troops, he agreed to the proposed terms, and the surrender happened.
But no sooner had the gallant little band become 089prisoners, than Proctor, like many other British officers of that day, forgot his promise, and the savages began to plunder the prisoners, unhindered by their English allies. Thereupon the Americans resumed their arms, and by a vigorous bayonet charge drove off the Indians.
But as soon as the brave little group became 089prisoners, Proctor, like many other British officers of that time, broke his promise, and the Native Americans started to loot the prisoners, with no interference from their English allies. Then the Americans picked up their weapons again and launched a fierce bayonet charge that chased the Indians away.
The next day the British force started for Malden, taking with it all the prisoners who were able to march. The badly-wounded were left at French-town, with no guard but a British major and the interpreters. The injured men were taken into the houses, and attended by two American surgeons. On the morning of the 23d, about two hundred Indians who had accompanied Proctor as far as Stony Creek, and there had a carouse, returned to French-town, held a council, and resolved to kill all the prisoners who could not march away with them. They then proceeded at once to plunder the whole village, tomahawk the wounded men, and set fire to the houses. They perpetrated such outrages and cruelties that most of the historians have shrunk from detailing them. Many prisoners who managed to crawl out of the burning buildings were thrown back into the flames. A few of the strongest were marched off with the savages toward Malden; but as one by one they became exhausted, they were mercilessly tomahawked and scalped. These scalps 090were carried to the British headquarters, where the savages received the premium for them.
The next day, the British force set out for Malden, taking all the prisoners who could walk. The severely injured were left at French-town, with only a British major and the interpreters to guard them. The injured men were brought into the houses and cared for by two American surgeons. On the morning of the 23rd, about two hundred Indians who had followed Proctor to Stony Creek, where they celebrated, returned to French-town, held a meeting, and decided to kill all the prisoners who couldn’t walk with them. They then immediately began to loot the entire village, attack the wounded men, and set the houses on fire. They committed such brutal acts that most historians have shied away from describing them. Many prisoners who managed to crawl out of the burning buildings were thrown back into the flames. A few of the strongest were marched off with the savages toward Malden; but as they became exhausted one by one, they were brutally killed and scalped. These scalps 090were taken to the British headquarters, where the savages were rewarded for them.
Of the American force engaged in this affair, three hundred and ninety-seven were killed, five hundred and thirty-seven were prisoners, and but thirty-three escaped. The British are said to have lost twenty-four killed and a hundred and fifty-eight wounded. The loss of the Indians is unknown.
Of the American troops involved in this conflict, three hundred and ninety-seven were killed, five hundred and thirty-seven were taken prisoner, and only thirty-three managed to escape. The British reportedly lost twenty-four men killed and one hundred and fifty-eight wounded. The casualties among the Indians are unknown.
After the disaster at the River Raisin, General Harrison concentrated his remaining troops—twelve hundred men—and built Fort Meigs, at the foot of the rapids of the Maumee. This work was on the right bank of the stream, on high ground, and enclosed about eight acres. There were several strong block-houses, and considerable artillery.
After the disaster at the River Raisin, General Harrison focused his remaining troops—twelve hundred men—and constructed Fort Meigs at the base of the Maumee rapids. This fort was located on high ground on the right bank of the river and covered about eight acres. It featured several sturdy blockhouses and a significant amount of artillery.
General Proctor, with a force of about one thousand British and twelve hundred Indians, and two gunboats, set out on an expedition against this post in April. He crossed the lake, ascended the river, and on the 28th landed about two miles below the fort, but on the opposite bank. Here he erected a battery, and subsequently he planted two others, above the fort but on the left bank, and one below and very near it on the right bank. The Indians, commanded by the famous Tecumseh, were landed on the right bank, to invest the fort in the rear. The batteries opened fire on the 1st of May, and 091kept it up steadily four days; but it had very little effect, owing largely to a traverse twelve feet high and twenty feet thick which the garrison had constructed while the batteries were being erected. Proctor on the third day demanded a surrender, with the usual threat of massacre.
General Proctor, leading a force of about a thousand British soldiers and twelve hundred Indians, along with two gunboats, launched an expedition against this post in April. He crossed the lake, traveled up the river, and on the 28th landed about two miles downstream from the fort, but on the opposite bank. Here, he set up a battery and later added two more, one above the fort on the left bank and one below it, very close on the right bank. The Indians, led by the renowned Tecumseh, were positioned on the right bank to surround the fort from the back. The batteries began firing on May 1st and continued steadily for four days; however, it had minimal impact, mostly due to a twelve-foot high and twenty-foot thick earthwork that the garrison had built while the batteries were being established. On the third day, Proctor demanded a surrender, threatening massacre as usual.
Learning that General Green Clay was coming to him with a reënforcement of eleven hundred Kentuckians, Harrison had sent word to him to hurry forward as fast as possible. At midnight on the 4th of May, two officers and fifteen men from this force descended the river and entered the fort, with the news that Clay was but eighteen miles distant. Harrison sent orders to him to send eight hundred of his men across the river at a point a mile and a half above the fort, thence to march down the left bank and capture and destroy the enemy's batteries; the remaining three hundred to march down the right bank and fight their way through the Indians to the fort.
Learning that General Green Clay was on his way with a reinforcement of eleven hundred Kentuckians, Harrison quickly sent him a message to hurry as much as possible. At midnight on May 4th, two officers and fifteen men from this group came down the river and entered the fort, bringing news that Clay was only eighteen miles away. Harrison instructed him to send eight hundred of his men across the river at a spot a mile and a half above the fort, then march down the left bank to capture and destroy the enemy's batteries; the remaining three hundred were to march down the right bank and fight their way through the Indians to the fort.
The detachment landed on the left bank, commanded by Colonel Dudley, moved silently down upon the British batteries, and then, raising a terrific yell, were upon them before the enemy could realize that he was attacked. The guns were spiked and their carriages destroyed; but instead of crossing to the fort at once, as Harrison's orders direct092ed, the victors, flushed with their success, were drawn into a running fight with some Indians, and finally fell into an ambush, and all but about a hundred and fifty were either captured or killed. That number reached their boats and crossed.
The detachment landed on the left bank, led by Colonel Dudley, moved quietly towards the British batteries, and then, letting out a fierce shout, attacked before the enemy even realized they were under attack. The guns were spiked and their carriages destroyed; however, instead of crossing to the fort immediately as Harrison had ordered092ed, the victors, exhilarated by their success, got caught up in a pursuit with some Indians, eventually falling into an ambush, and nearly all of them, except about a hundred and fifty, were either captured or killed. That number managed to reach their boats and made the crossing.
The detachment on the right bank, under General Clay himself, had some difficulty in landing, and lost a few men in fighting its way through the Indians, but ultimately reached the fort. While these movements were going on, three hundred and fifty men of the garrison, under Colonel John Miller, made a sortie against the battery on the right bank, captured it, spiked the guns, and returned with forty-three prisoners.
The group on the right bank, led by General Clay himself, had some trouble landing and lost a few men while fighting their way through the Indians, but eventually made it to the fort. While this was happening, three hundred and fifty men from the garrison, under Colonel John Miller, launched an attack against the battery on the right bank, captured it, disabled the guns, and returned with forty-three prisoners.
When Clay's troops reached the fort, they were joined by another sallying party, and the combined force moved against the Indians, whom Tecumseh commanded in person, and drove them through the woods at the point of the bayonet. Tecumseh attempted to move a force of British and Indians upon their left flank and rear, to cut off their return to the fort, but this movement was frustrated by Harrison, who understood Indian warfare quite as well as the great chief himself.
When Clay's troops arrived at the fort, they were joined by another attacking group, and the united force advanced against the Indians, who were led by Tecumseh himself, pushing them through the woods at the end of their bayonets. Tecumseh tried to maneuver a force of British and Indians to hit their left side and rear to block their return to the fort, but this plan was stopped by Harrison, who was just as knowledgeable about Indian warfare as the great chief was.
Proctor's savage allies, disgusted at his want of success, now began to desert him, and he was obliged to raise the siege and retreat. This he did 093not do, however, without keeping up his reputation for treachery and cold-blooded cruelty. His prisoners were taken to old Fort Miami, a short distance down stream, where the savages were allowed to murder more than twenty of them. Captain Wood, an eye-witness, says: "The Indians were permitted to garnish the surrounding rampart, and to amuse themselves by loading and firing at the crowd, or at any particular individual. Those who preferred to inflict a still more cruel and savage death selected their victims, led them to the gateway, and there, under the eye of General Proctor, and in the presence of the whole British army, tomahawked and scalped them." It is said that the horrible work was stopped by Tecumseh, who, coming up when it was at its height, buried his hatchet in the head of a chief engaged in the massacre, crying: "For shame!—it is a disgrace to kill a defenceless prisoner!" "In this single act," says the witness who narrates it," Tecumseh displayed more humanity, magnanimity, and civilization than Proctor, with all his British associates in command, displayed through the whole war on the northwestern frontiers."
Proctor's brutal allies, frustrated with his lack of success, began to abandon him, forcing him to lift the siege and retreat. Yet he did this 093without losing his reputation for betrayal and cold-blooded cruelty. His prisoners were taken to old Fort Miami, not far downstream, where the savages were allowed to kill more than twenty of them. Captain Wood, an eyewitness, says: "The Indians were allowed to decorate the surrounding rampart and entertain themselves by shooting at the crowd or targeting specific individuals. Those who wanted to inflict a more brutal death chose their victims, brought them to the gateway, and there, in front of General Proctor and the entire British army, they tomahawked and scalped them." It is said that the horrific acts were halted by Tecumseh, who arrived when it was at its worst, buried his hatchet in the head of a chief involved in the massacre, exclaiming, "For shame!—it's a disgrace to kill a defenseless prisoner!" "In this single act," says the witness recounting it, "Tecumseh showed more humanity, nobility, and civilization than Proctor, along with all his British officers in charge, displayed throughout the entire war on the northwestern frontiers."
In July, Proctor and Tecumseh, with a combined English and savage force of about five thousand, returned to Fort Meigs and attempted to draw out the garrison by strategy; but Harrison was, as usual, too shrewd for them, and they turned their attention to Fort Stephenson. This was an oblong stockade fort, about a hundred yards long and fifty yards wide, with high pickets, surrounded by a deep ditch or moat. There was a strong block-house at each corner. It was on the Sandusky, where the town of Fremont, Ohio, now stands. The garrison consisted of one hundred and sixty men, commanded by Major George Croghan.
In July, Proctor and Tecumseh, leading a combined force of around five thousand British troops and Native Americans, returned to Fort Meigs and tried to lure out the garrison using tactics; however, Harrison was, as always, too clever for them, so they shifted their focus to Fort Stephenson. This was a rectangular stockade fort, about a hundred yards long and fifty yards wide, featuring tall pickets and surrounded by a deep ditch or moat. There was a strong blockhouse at each corner. It was located on the Sandusky River, where the town of Fremont, Ohio, now is. The garrison had one hundred sixty men, led by Major George Croghan.
The British sailed around into Sandusky Bay, and up the river, while their savage allies marched overland and invested the fort in the rear, to prevent the approach of reënforcements. Harrison believed the fort to be untenable, and had sent orders to Croghan to abandon and destroy it; but these orders did not reach the Major till retreat had become impossible.
The British sailed into Sandusky Bay and up the river, while their Native American allies marched overland and surrounded the fort from behind to block any reinforcements. Harrison thought the fort was no longer defendable and had sent orders to Croghan to abandon and destroy it; however, these orders didn’t reach the Major until it was too late to retreat.
On the 1st of August Proctor sent in a flag of truce, and demanded an immediate surrender, accompanied with the usual threat that if it were refused the Indians would massacre the entire garrison as 095soon as the place was taken. The ensign who met the flag made answer that Major Croghan and his men had determined "to defend the fort, or be buried in it." Proctor opened fire from his gunboats and four guns which he had placed in battery on shore, and bombarded the fort continuously for two days and nights. As this fire was directed mainly against the northwest angle, Croghan expected the main attack to be made at that point, and prepared for it. Besides strengthening the walls with bags of sand and bags of flour, he placed his only gun, a six-pounder, where it would enfilade the ditch on that side, loaded it with a double charge of slugs, and masked it.
On August 1st, Proctor sent up a flag of truce and demanded an immediate surrender, along with the usual threat that if it was refused, the Indians would massacre the entire garrison as 095soon as the place was taken. The ensign who met the flag replied that Major Croghan and his men had decided "to defend the fort or be buried in it." Proctor began firing from his gunboats and four cannons he had set up onshore, bombarding the fort nonstop for two days and nights. Since this fire was mainly aimed at the northwest corner, Croghan expected the main attack to happen there and got ready for it. Along with reinforcing the walls with bags of sand and flour, he positioned his only cannon, a six-pounder, in a spot where it could cover the ditch on that side, loaded it with a double charge of slugs, and concealed it.
It was after sunset on the 3d when the storming parties approached. Two columns passed around the western side of the fort, to threaten the southern face, while a third, commanded by a Lieutenant-Colonel Short, approached the northwest angle. When it was within twenty yards, the Kentucky riflemen gave it a volley that thinned the ranks, but did not stop its progress. The Lieutenant-Colonel and a large number of his men scaled the outer line of pickets, and poured into the ditch. "Now, then," he shouted, "scale the pickets, and show the d——d Yankee rascals no quarter!"
It was after sunset on the 3rd when the attacking groups moved in. Two columns went around the west side of the fort to threaten the south side, while a third column, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Short, approached the northwest corner. When they got within twenty yards, the Kentucky riflemen fired a volley that reduced their numbers, but it didn’t stop them. The Lieutenant-Colonel and many of his men climbed over the outer line of pickets and jumped into the ditch. "Now, let's go," he shouted, "scale the pickets, and show those damn Yankee rascals no mercy!"
The next moment, Croghan's single piece of artil096lery was unmasked and fired. It completely swept the ditch, cutting down nearly every soldier in it, while a volley of rifle-balls finished the bloody work. Lieutenant-Colonel Short, who was mortally wounded, immediately raised his handkerchief on the point of his sword, to ask for quarter.
The next moment, Croghan's lone piece of artillery was revealed and fired. It completely cleared the ditch, taking down almost every soldier in it, while a barrage of rifle bullets did the rest. Lieutenant-Colonel Short, who was fatally injured, immediately raised his handkerchief on the tip of his sword to request mercy.
Another column of red-coats attempted the task at which the first had so wofully failed, and the deadly performance of the howitzer and the rifles was repeated. The columns that approached the fort on the south were driven off by a single volley, and the battle was ended. In the night the British gathered up their dead and wounded, and the next morning they were seen to sail away, leaving behind a quantity of military stores. They acknowledged a loss of twenty-seven killed and seventy wounded; but it was probably much larger. One American was killed, and seven wounded.
Another group of redcoats tried to do what the first had so poorly managed, and the deadly fire from the howitzer and rifles happened again. The columns that came toward the fort from the south were pushed back by a single volley, and the battle ended. During the night, the British collected their dead and wounded, and by the next morning, they were seen leaving, taking with them a lot of military supplies. They reported a loss of twenty-seven killed and seventy wounded, but it was likely much higher. One American was killed, and seven were wounded.
CHAPTER VII. WAR ON THE LAKES.
097
The Armaments—Preliminary Operations—Expedition against York —Death of General Pike—Capture of Fort George—Attack on Sackett's Harbor—Battle of Stony Creek.
The Armaments—Preliminary Operations—Expedition against York—Death of General Pike—Capture of Fort George—Attack on Sackett's Harbor—Battle of Stony Creek.
The importance of the great navigable lakes lying between the United States and Canada had not been overlooked by either party to this war. As soon as it broke out, both began preparations to secure the ascendency on those waters—which, besides its direct advantages, would be almost necessary to either in making invasions around the coasts. A large portion of the shores on both sides—more especially, perhaps, on the American side—was at that time a wilderness, and the few open ports would naturally hold out strong temptations to the enemy.
The significance of the major navigable lakes between the United States and Canada wasn’t missed by either side in this war. As soon as it started, both began making plans to gain control over those waters—which, in addition to its immediate benefits, would be almost essential for launching invasions along the coasts. A large part of the shores on both sides—especially on the American side—was largely uninhabited at that time, and the few open ports would naturally be highly appealing to the enemy.
The chief advantage was with the British, both because the oldest and largest settlements were on their side of the lakes, and because they had possession of the St. Lawrence River, which made it easy for them to bring up supplies from the seaboard. The Americans, however, had regularly trained naval officers in command of their few vessels on 098lakes Ontario and Champlain, while the English had not. The largest American vessel on the lower lakes was the Oneida, of sixteen guns; the largest British vessel, the Royal George, of twenty-two. The enemy also had several other vessels, carrying from a dozen to sixteen guns each, which it would be useless to specify, as their names and character were several times changed during the war. As soon as hostilities were declared, both sides began building new ships and arming merchant schooners.
The main advantage was with the British, mainly because the oldest and biggest settlements were on their side of the lakes, and they controlled the St. Lawrence River, which made it easy for them to bring in supplies from the coast. However, the Americans had trained naval officers regularly in charge of their few ships on 098lakes Ontario and Champlain, while the British did not. The largest American ship on the lower lakes was the Oneida, equipped with sixteen guns; the largest British ship, the Royal George, had twenty-two. The enemy also had several other ships, each carrying between a dozen and sixteen guns, but it’s pointless to name them since their names and types changed several times during the war. As soon as fighting started, both sides began constructing new ships and arming merchant schooners.
In July, 1812, the British fleet had made an attempt to capture the Oneida and a prize schooner, both of which were at Sackett's Harbor. Lieutenant-Commander Woolsey anchored the Oneida in the harbor, where she could command the entrance, placed half of her guns in a battery on shore, and easily drove off the enemy's fleet, whose performance exhibited very little of the character of serious warfare.
In July 1812, the British fleet tried to capture the Oneida and a prize schooner, both of which were at Sackett's Harbor. Lieutenant-Commander Woolsey anchored the Oneida in the harbor to control the entrance, set up half of her guns in a battery onshore, and easily repelled the enemy fleet, which showed very little of what we would call serious warfare.
In October, of that year, Captain Isaac Chauncey arrived at Sackett's Harbor, with authority to organize a fleet. He brought from New York forty ship-carpenters and a hundred officers and seamen, and a supply of naval stores. He bought ten or a dozen schooners, armed them—generally with long swivel guns—and fitted them up for naval service as well as their character would admit. These, with the 099Oneida, carried forty guns and four hundred and thirty men.
In October of that year, Captain Isaac Chauncey arrived at Sackett's Harbor with the authority to organize a fleet. He brought from New York forty ship carpenters, one hundred officers, and seamen, along with a supply of naval supplies. He purchased ten or a dozen schooners, armed them—typically with long swivel guns—and equipped them for naval service as much as their design allowed. Together with the 099Oneida, they carried forty guns and four hundred thirty men.
Chauncey's first exploit with this fleet was to chase the Royal George into the harbor of Kingston, and attack the batteries there; but nothing was accomplished by it save the capture of two small prizes. He lost one man killed and eight wounded—five by the bursting of a gun. About the same time (November, 1812), an expedition was made to clear the Canadian shore of batteries at the head of Niagara River. Four hundred soldiers and sailors, commanded by Lieutenant-Colonel Boerstler and Captain King, crossed from Black Rock in twenty boats, assaulted the batteries, and after desperate fighting captured them. They then spiked all the guns, burned the barracks, and retreated to the shore. The usual bad management seems to have entered into this, as into all the other enterprises of the sort, and the boats were not at hand for the recrossing; in consequence of which Captain King and sixty of his men were made prisoners.
Chauncey's first mission with this fleet was to chase the Royal George into Kingston Harbor and attack the batteries there, but the only outcome was the capture of two small prizes. He lost one man killed and eight wounded—five due to a gun bursting. Around the same time (November 1812), there was an expedition to eliminate the batteries on the Canadian shore at the head of the Niagara River. Four hundred soldiers and sailors, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Boerstler and Captain King, crossed from Black Rock in twenty boats, assaulted the batteries, and after fierce fighting, captured them. They then spiked all the guns, burned the barracks, and retreated to the shore. As with other similar operations, poor management plagued this one; the boats weren't available for the return trip, leading to Captain King and sixty of his men being taken prisoner.
Nothing can be done on the lakes in winter, as the harbors are closed by ice; but the building of vessels went on, and with the opening of spring General Dearborn and Commodore Chauncey began operations which showed no lack of activity and energy, however well or ill judged they may have been. 100York (now Toronto) was at this time the capital ===of Upper Canada. It was a place of about twelve hundred inhabitants, situated on a beautiful landlocked bay, about two by three miles in extent. The British were known to have a large vessel there, the Prince Regent, and to be building another. Mainly for the purpose of seizing this vessel, and destroying the one on the stocks, General Dearborn planned an expedition against York. He had seventeen hundred men available for the purpose, and Commodore Chauncey had fourteen vessels.
Nothing can be done on the lakes in winter because the harbors are frozen over, but shipbuilding continued, and with the arrival of spring, General Dearborn and Commodore Chauncey launched operations that were full of activity and energy, regardless of how smart or foolish they might have been. 100York (now Toronto) was then the capital of Upper Canada. It had about twelve hundred residents and was located on a stunning landlocked bay that spanned roughly two by three miles. The British had a large ship there, the Prince Regent, and were constructing another. To capture this vessel and destroy the one being built, General Dearborn organized an expedition against York. He had seventeen hundred men available for this mission, and Commodore Chauncey commanded fourteen ships.
The expedition was organized, and sailed from Sackett's Harbor on the 25th of April. The winds were unfavorable, and the passage was somewhat tedious; but the fleet arrived off the harbor of York on the 27th. The intention was to land the troops by means of boats, at a point about two and a half miles west of the town, the guns of the fleet covering the landing, and march at once on the defences of the place, where General Roger H. Sheaffe was in command. But the water was rough, and the boats were driven half a mile farther westward, where they were compelled to land with but little protection from the vessels.
The expedition was organized and set sail from Sackett's Harbor on April 25th. The winds were not in their favor, making the journey a bit slow, but the fleet reached the harbor of York on the 27th. The plan was to land the troops using boats about two and a half miles west of the town, with the fleet's guns providing cover for the landing, and then march directly onto the defenses where General Roger H. Sheaffe was in charge. However, the water was rough, and the boats were pushed half a mile further west, forcing them to land with minimal protection from the ships.
Here a body of British and Indians, concealed in the edge of a wood, were ready to receive them.
Here, a group of British and Indians, hidden at the edge of a forest, were prepared to welcome them.
A column of riflemen, under Major Forsyth, were 101in the first boats, and as they approached the shore the enemy opened upon them with a destructive fire. Forsyth lost a considerable number of men before he could land. But his riflemen stood up in the boats and returned the fire with some effect, and he was followed quickly by a battalion of infantry under Major King, and this by the main body under General Zebulon M. Pike, who was in immediate command of the entire military force. The fleet at the same time contrived to throw a few effective shots into the woods, and the landing was effected without confusion.
A group of riflemen, led by Major Forsyth, were 101in the first boats, and as they got closer to the shore, the enemy opened fire on them with deadly accuracy. Forsyth lost a significant number of men before he was able to land. However, his riflemen stood up in the boats and returned fire effectively. They were quickly followed by a battalion of infantry under Major King and then by the main force under General Zebulon M. Pike, who was in command of the entire military unit. At the same time, the fleet managed to fire a few effective shots into the woods, and the landing happened without any confusion.
The skirmishing party of British and Indians had been gradually strengthened till, by the time General Pike's forces were on shore, they had an almost equal force to dispute their passage toward the town. The enemy were still in the woods, and as soon as the Americans had been formed in battle order they advanced. The nature of the ground made it almost impossible to move or use their artillery; but the enemy had three pieces, with which they attacked the flanks of the column. The fighting soon became hot and deadly. There were charges and counter-charges, one and another part of either line alternately giving way and rallying again; but on the whole the advantage was with the Americans, and the British were gradually forced 102back into the outer defences. The Indians are said to have fled from the field early in the action.
The skirmishing group of British and Indians had been gradually reinforced until, by the time General Pike's forces landed, they had nearly equal strength to contest their advance toward the town. The enemy remained hidden in the woods, and as soon as the Americans formed in battle order, they moved forward. The terrain made it nearly impossible to maneuver or use their artillery; however, the enemy had three cannons, which they used to attack the flanks of the column. The fighting quickly turned fierce and deadly. There were charges and countercharges, with parts of either line alternating between giving way and regrouping; but overall, the Americans had the upper hand, forcing the British slowly 102back into their outer defenses. It is said that the Indians fled the battlefield early in the fight.
The approach to the town, along the shore, was crossed by numerous streams and ravines, and the enemy destroyed the bridges behind them as they retired. Two pieces of artillery were with great difficulty taken across one of these ravines and placed where they could be brought to bear on the enemy.
The way to the town, along the shore, was filled with many streams and valleys, and the enemy destroyed the bridges behind them as they pulled back. Two pieces of artillery were taken across one of these valleys with a lot of effort and positioned where they could target the enemy.
The orders to the infantry were, to advance with unloaded muskets and carry the first battery at the point of the bayonet. This was easily done, as the enemy only remained long enough to discharge two or three cannon-shots hastily, and then fell back to his second battery, nearer the town.
The orders to the infantry were to advance with unloaded muskets and take the first battery with the bayonet. This was easily accomplished, as the enemy only stayed long enough to fire off a couple of cannon shots quickly before retreating to their second battery, closer to the town.
General Pike led the column forward at once to the second battery, which the enemy also abandoned, after spiking the guns. Here he discovered that the barracks, three hundred yards still nearer to the town, appeared to be evacuated. Suspecting that there might be some scheme on the part of the enemy for drawing him into a disadvantageous position, where a stand would be made, he halted at the second battery, and sent forward Lieutenant Riddle with a few men to find out the true state of affairs.
General Pike immediately moved the column to the second battery, which the enemy also left behind after damaging the guns. Here, he found that the barracks, which were still three hundred yards closer to the town, seemed to be empty. Thinking that the enemy might have a plan to lure him into a bad position where they could make a stand, he stopped at the second battery and sent Lieutenant Riddle with a few men to discover what was really happening.
The Lieutenant found the barracks deserted, and was about to return with the information, when sud103denly the ground was shaken by a terrific explosion, and in a moment the air was darkened by flying boards, timbers, and stones, bars of iron, shells, and shot. The magazine, containing five hundred barrels of powder, had been blown up. It was situated in a little ravine, the bank of which protected Lieutenant Riddle's party, all of whom escaped. But a considerable number of the beams and masses of masonry, passing over their heads, fell within the battery. General Pike, who had just been removing a wounded prisoner to a place of safety, at the moment was seated on a stump, questioning a British sergeant who had been captured in the woods. As the shower of débris came down within the battery, the General was crushed to the earth by a section of stone wall, and two of his aides and the wounded sergeant were also struck down—all of them being fatally injured. By this explosion, fifty-two Americans were killed outright, and one hundred and eighty wounded. About forty British soldiers also, who were near the magazine, were killed.
The Lieutenant found the barracks empty and was about to head back with the update when suddenly the ground shook from a massive explosion, and in an instant, the air filled with flying boards, timber, stones, iron bars, shells, and cannonballs. The magazine, containing five hundred barrels of gunpowder, had exploded. It was located in a small ravine, which protected Lieutenant Riddle's team, and they all managed to escape. However, a significant number of beams and chunks of masonry fell overhead, landing within the battery. General Pike, who had just moved a wounded prisoner to safety, was sitting on a stump at that moment, questioning a British sergeant captured in the woods. As the shower of debris rained down within the battery, the General was knocked to the ground by a piece of stone wall, and two of his aides and the wounded sergeant were also struck—everyone sustaining fatal injuries. The explosion resulted in the immediate deaths of fifty-two Americans and left one hundred and eighty wounded. Approximately forty British soldiers nearby the magazine were also killed.
General Pike being disabled, the command devolved upon Colonel Cromwell Pearce, who pushed on with his troops as soon as possible, though not in time to prevent the escape of the British General Sheaffe and all his regulars who remained unharmed. Sheaffe drew up terms of capitulation, and left 104them in the hands of the officer who commanded the militia. As the Americans approached the town, they were met by this officer with the offer to surrender, the capitulation to include the town and all government stores therein. While the parley was going on, Sheaffe destroyed most of the military stores, set fire to the war-vessel that was on the stocks, and made off, but his baggage and private papers were captured. Two hundred and ninety officers and men—of the British navy and militia—became prisoners and were paroled. General Pike had enjoined upon his soldiers the duty of protecting private property in the town, and given orders that marauding should be punished with death. His wishes were carefully observed; but the government buildings were burned.
General Pike was injured, so command passed to Colonel Cromwell Pearce, who moved his troops forward as quickly as he could, but not in time to stop British General Sheaffe and all his regulars from escaping unharmed. Sheaffe prepared the terms of surrender and left 104them with the officer in charge of the militia. As the Americans neared the town, this officer offered to surrender, with the terms including the town and all government supplies in it. While the negotiations were happening, Sheaffe destroyed most of the military supplies, set fire to the warship that was being built, and fled, but his baggage and personal documents were captured. Two hundred and ninety officers and men from the British navy and militia were taken prisoner and released on parole. General Pike had instructed his soldiers to protect private property in the town and ordered that looting should be punishable by death. His orders were strictly followed, but the government buildings were still burned.
General Pike, when his wound was found to be mortal, was borne off to the fleet. A little while afterward the British flag that had floated over York was brought to him. He asked to have it placed under his head, and in a few minutes calmly expired. He was but thirty-four years of age, but had performed valuable services for his country, especially in the command of two exploring expeditions, one about the headwaters of the Mississippi, and the other in what is now western Louisiana and Texas—of both of which he published accounts. 105The war-vessel that the Americans expected to capture at York had left the harbor two days before their arrival. The troops abandoned the place, and on the 1st of May were taken again on board the fleet, which as soon as the weather would permit, on the 8th, sailed away. In this expedition the loss of the American land forces was fourteen killed and twenty-three wounded, besides those who suffered from the explosion of the magazine. In the fleet, seventeen men were killed or wounded. The British regulars lost sixty-two killed and ninety wounded; the loss of the Indians and militia was unknown.
General Pike, when it was discovered that his wound was fatal, was taken to the fleet. Shortly afterward, the British flag that had flown over York was brought to him. He requested it to be placed under his head, and within minutes, he passed away peacefully. He was only thirty-four years old, but he had made significant contributions to his country, especially in leading two exploration missions—one near the headwaters of the Mississippi and the other in what is now western Louisiana and Texas—both of which he documented. 105The warship the Americans had hoped to capture at York had left the harbor two days before they arrived. The troops abandoned the area, and on May 1st, they were taken back aboard the fleet, which set sail as soon as the weather permitted, on the 8th. In this mission, the American ground forces suffered fourteen killed and twenty-three wounded, in addition to those hurt by the magazine explosion. In the fleet, seventeen men were either killed or injured. The British regulars had sixty-two killed and ninety wounded, while the losses among the Indians and militia remain unknown.
Two episodes of this battle have been discussed with considerable warmth. The first is the explosion of the magazine. It is not certain that this was done purposely. General Sheaffe, in his report, attributed it to "an unfortunate accident," but two English historians speak of it with commendation as a regularly laid plan. American writers who condemn it have done so on the ground that, as the commanding General had made arrangements for a surrender, the place was virtually surrendered already, and he therefore had no farther right to destroy life or even property. Commodore Chauncey probably gave the correct view of the matter when he wrote: "I'm much inclined to believe that General Sheaffe was correct when he stated that it was accidental. 106Nor could I condemn the enemy, even if a train had been laid. It is a perfectly legitimate mode of defence, as every student of history knows; and why should we censure the garrison for thus employing an acknowledged means of defence, to check the progress of an invader?" If the surrender had not virtually taken place, it is difficult to see why the defenders of the town are to be any more blamed for firing a stone wall at their enemy than they would have been for firing a thousand bullets.
Two parts of this battle have been talked about with a lot of enthusiasm. The first is the explosion of the magazine. It’s unclear whether this was intentional. General Sheaffe, in his report, called it “an unfortunate accident,” but two English historians praise it as a well-planned strategy. American writers who criticize it argue that since the commanding General had arranged for a surrender, the location was effectively already surrendered, so he had no further right to take lives or destroy property. Commodore Chauncey likely had the right take on the situation when he wrote: “I’m quite inclined to believe that General Sheaffe was right when he claimed it was accidental. 106I also can’t fault the enemy, even if a trap had been set. It’s a perfectly valid method of defense, as any history student knows; and why should we blame the garrison for using a recognized means of defense to slow down an invader?” If a surrender hadn’t basically happened, it’s hard to understand why the town’s defenders would be any more blamed for shooting at their enemy with a stone wall than if they had fired a thousand bullets.
The other point discussed is the burning of the government buildings. They were undoubtedly set on fire, though without orders from headquarters. It was said that the soldiers were incensed at finding a human scalp—presumably that of an American, taken by some Indian, and sold to the British authorities for the proffered premium—hanging on the wall of the legislative chamber. This scalp and the Speaker's mace were sent to Washington, where the British troops found them when they, in turn, burned our government buildings a little more than a year later.
The other point discussed is the burning of the government buildings. They were definitely set on fire, but not by orders from headquarters. It was reported that the soldiers were furious after finding a human scalp—presumably that of an American, taken by some Indian, and sold to the British authorities for the promised reward—hanging on the wall of the legislative chamber. This scalp and the Speaker's mace were sent to Washington, where the British troops discovered them when they, in turn, burned our government buildings a little over a year later.
When Chauncey's fleet left the harbor of York, it sailed due south, and landed the troops at a point four miles east from the mouth of Niagara River, where they went into camp. From here a small expedition was fitted out under Lieutenant Petti107grew, of the navy, who with a hundred men sailed in two schooners to the head of Lake Ontario, to capture a large quantity of stores deposited there. They landed on the 10th of May, drove off the guard, burned the buildings, and brought away the stores. Chauncey himself, with the remainder of the fleet, carried the wounded to Sackett's Harbor, whence he returned on the 25th with provisions, guns, and a reënforcement of about three hundred and fifty men.
When Chauncey's fleet left the York harbor, it sailed straight south and landed the troops at a spot four miles east of the Niagara River's mouth, where they set up camp. From there, a small mission was organized under Lieutenant Petti107grew of the navy, who, with a hundred men, sailed in two schooners to the top of Lake Ontario to seize a large stockpile of supplies stored there. They landed on May 10th, drove off the guards, burned down the buildings, and took the supplies. Chauncey himself, along with the rest of the fleet, transported the wounded to Sackett's Harbor, and returned on the 25th with provisions, weapons, and a reinforcement of about three hundred and fifty men.
General Dearborn immediately planned the capture of Fort George, just above the village of Newark, on the western side of the Niagara, two miles from its mouth. It was arranged that the troops should be landed on the lake shore, and, marching southward and eastward, attack the British works from the land side. The enterprise was admirably planned, and brilliantly executed. The water at the proposed landing-place was carefully sounded, and the stations marked with buoys. A considerable number of boats, to be used in landing the forces, had been built on the shore of the river, were launched on May 26th, and immediately drew the fire of the enemy's batteries.
General Dearborn quickly organized the capture of Fort George, located just above the village of Newark, on the western side of the Niagara River, two miles from its mouth. The plan was to land the troops on the lakeshore, and then march south and east to attack the British positions from land. The operation was well-planned and executed flawlessly. The water at the chosen landing site was thoroughly surveyed, and markers were placed with buoys. A significant number of boats, built on the riverbank for landing the forces, were launched on May 26th, immediately coming under fire from the enemy's batteries.
Before daylight on the morning of the 27th, the fleet weighed anchor. Five of the vessels took positions where they could annoy with a cross-fire the 108batteries that were within gunshot of the landing-place. Others took position for the immediate protection of the troops, and at the same time Fort Niagara opened fire on Fort George, which was returned with spirit. All the batteries on the river joined in the contest, and there was a grand chorus of artillery firing. The battery immediately opposite Fort George was the most effective, and considerably damaged that work.
Before dawn on the 27th, the fleet lifted anchor. Five of the ships positioned themselves to create a cross-fire that could disrupt the 108batteries within range of the landing site. Other vessels took up positions for the direct protection of the troops, while Fort Niagara began firing on Fort George, which responded vigorously. All the batteries along the river joined in the fight, creating a powerful chorus of cannon fire. The battery directly across from Fort George was the most effective and caused significant damage to that fortification.
The troops were under the personal command of General Boyd, who had succeeded General Pike. With him were many most skilful and efficient officers, some of whom afterward became famous. The gallant Major Forsyth was there, with his riflemen, and Colonel Macomb with his artillery. Winfield Scott, then a colonel, was there, and Captain Oliver Hazard Perry had hurried down from Lake Erie, to offer his services and take part in the enterprise.
The troops were under the direct command of General Boyd, who had taken over from General Pike. Alongside him were many skilled and effective officers, some of whom later became well-known. The brave Major Forsyth was present with his riflemen, and Colonel Macomb brought his artillery. Winfield Scott, who was a colonel at the time, was there, and Captain Oliver Hazard Perry had rushed down from Lake Erie to offer his services and participate in the mission.
The preparations for the defence had been quite as well made as those for the attack. When the boats loaded with troops approached the shore, a column of two hundred men, posted in a ravine, opened a sharp fire on them. The fire was returned from the boats, which moved on without stopping for a moment or being thrown into any confusion. Captain Hindman, of the artillery, was the first man to land on the enemy's coast; and many of the 109officers and men were so eager to follow him that they leaped into the water and waded ashore.
The preparations for the defense were as thorough as those for the attack. When the boats filled with troops got close to the shore, a group of two hundred men, stationed in a ravine, opened fire on them. The boats returned fire but kept moving forward without stopping or losing their composure. Captain Hindman from the artillery was the first to step onto enemy territory, and many of the 109officers and soldiers were so eager to follow him that they jumped into the water and waded ashore.
The fire of some of the vessels was brought to bear upon the enemy in the ravine; and as soon as the advance column landed, it formed in battle order and moved forward to the charge. The enemy soon gave way, but retired slowly, and at the same time a second and stronger column, which had been posted in another ravine, half a mile in the rear, moved forward to protect the retreat of the advance guard and oppose the progress of the Americans.
The fire from some of the ships was directed at the enemy in the ravine; and as soon as the leading group landed, it lined up in battle formation and advanced to attack. The enemy quickly retreated, but did so slowly, while at the same time, a second and larger group that had been positioned in another ravine half a mile behind moved up to cover the retreat of the leading guard and block the Americans' advance.
Every step thus far had been contested, and the roar of cannon and rattle of small arms, both on the water and on shore, had been almost incessant from the beginning of the engagement. But the bloodiest work was to come. The combined columns of British troops, numbering eight hundred or more, took a strong position at the top of a steep bank. The advance, under Colonel Scott, moved directly against this position; but as his men attempted to climb the bank in the face of the enemy, they were mercilessly cut down by a sharp and steady fire. Three times they tried to reach the top, and three times were driven back. But when Colonel Moses Porter's light artillery and a portion of Boyd's brigade had come up to his assistance, Scott was at length enabled to carry the height. 110The victory at this point decided the day. The flying enemy were pursued as far as the village of Newark, at which point Scott detached a force to cut off the retreat westward toward Burlington, while with the remainder of his troops he pressed on at once to Fort George. This work had been so much damaged by the bombardment, and the garrison now left in it was so small, that it was easily captured. As Scott approached it, one of the magazines was exploded, and a heavy stick of timber struck him and knocked him from his horse. Hurrying forward, the soldiers in the advance discovered that trains had been laid for the explosion of two other magazines, and they were just in time to put out the matches. When the gates of the fort were broken open, Scott was the first man to enter, and with his own hands he hauled down the British flag. Close behind him was Colonel Moses Porter, who could not help exclaiming, "Confound your long legs, Scott, you have got in before me!"
Every step so far had been challenged, and the sound of cannon fire and gunshots, both on the water and on land, had been nearly nonstop from the start of the battle. But the worst was yet to come. The combined forces of British troops, numbering over eight hundred, took a strong position at the top of a steep bank. The advance, led by Colonel Scott, moved directly toward this position; but as his men tried to climb the bank in the face of the enemy, they were ruthlessly cut down by a sharp and steady fire. They attempted to reach the top three times, and each time they were pushed back. But when Colonel Moses Porter's light artillery and part of Boyd's brigade arrived to assist him, Scott was finally able to take the height. 110The victory at this point decided the outcome of the day. The retreating enemy was chased all the way to the village of Newark, where Scott sent a force to cut off their retreat west toward Burlington, while he led the rest of his troops directly to Fort George. This fort had been heavily damaged by the bombardment, and the small garrison left inside was easily captured. As Scott approached, one of the magazines exploded, sending a heavy piece of timber crashing down and knocking him off his horse. Rushing forward, the soldiers in the lead discovered that there were trains set for the explosion of two more magazines, and they managed to extinguish the fuses just in time. When the gates of the fort were broken open, Scott was the first to enter, and he personally took down the British flag. Right behind him was Colonel Moses Porter, who couldn’t help but shout, "Damn your long legs, Scott, you got in before me!"
A few prisoners were taken with the fort; but Scott, bent upon making his victory complete, made but a brief halt there, and then hurried on his forces in pursuit of the retreating enemy. Twice orders were sent to him to turn back, and both times he refused to obey them. "Your General does not know," said he to a lieutenant who brought one of 111these orders, "that I have the enemy within my power; in seventy minutes I shall capture his whole force." Colonel Burn, who ranked Scott, but had consented to serve under him, had crossed the river with a troop of cavalry, and was waiting for another now in midstream, to land, when with his whole force he was to join the pursuit. But the fifteen minutes thus lost in waiting enabled General Boyd to ride up in person and peremptorily order the pursuit discontinued, which of course put an end to it. Just why the General did this—whether he feared the victory might be turned into a disaster, or was only apprehensive that Colonel Scott was getting too much glory—has never been explained.
A few prisoners were taken along with the fort, but Scott, determined to make his victory complete, only paused briefly there before quickly moving his troops to chase the retreating enemy. He received orders twice to turn back, and both times he refused. "Your General doesn’t understand," he told a lieutenant who delivered one of these orders, "that I have the enemy at my mercy; in seventy minutes, I will capture his entire force." Colonel Burn, who outranked Scott but had agreed to serve under him, had crossed the river with a cavalry troop and was waiting for another troop still in midstream to land, so they could join the pursuit. However, the fifteen minutes spent waiting allowed General Boyd to ride up in person and firmly order the pursuit to be called off, effectively ending it. The reasons behind the General's decision—whether he feared that the victory could turn into a disaster or was simply concerned that Colonel Scott was getting too much recognition—have never been explained.
In this action, which was over by noon, the Americans lost one hundred and fifty-three men, killed or wounded. The British loss, as nearly as can be ascertained, was two hundred and seventy-one killed or wounded, and over six hundred unwounded prisoners, five hundred of whom were militia and were paroled.
In this event, which wrapped up by noon, the Americans lost one hundred and fifty-three men, either killed or injured. The British loss, as closely as can be determined, was two hundred and seventy-one killed or wounded, and over six hundred unharmed prisoners, with five hundred of them being militia who were released.
The British seized the opportunity while Dearborn and his forces were absent on this expedition near the western end of Lake Ontario, to make an attack on Sackett's Harbor, at the eastern. The importance of that place to the Americans consisted mainly in the fact that they had established there a 112large depot of naval and military stores, and were building ships.
The British took advantage of the fact that Dearborn and his troops were away on an expedition near the western end of Lake Ontario to launch an attack on Sackett's Harbor in the east. The strategic importance of that location for the Americans was mainly because they had set up a 112large depot for naval and military supplies and were in the process of building ships.
The expedition sailed from Kingston in four war-vessels, a brig, two schooners, and two gunboats, all under command of Sir James Lucas Yeo. The land forces, commanded by General Prevost, numbered about a thousand, besides a party of Indians, said to have numbered three hundred.
The expedition set sail from Kingston in four warships: a brig, two schooners, and two gunboats, all led by Sir James Lucas Yeo. The ground troops, under General Prevost, counted around a thousand, along with a group of Indians that was said to be three hundred strong.
About noon of the 28th the squadron appeared off Sackett's Harbor, and preparations for landing were made. But after the troops had been in the boats about half an hour, an order was issued—for some mysterious reason, which has never been explained—commanding them all to return to the ships, which then stood off for Kingston. But while this was going on, a fleet of nineteen boats was observed near the south shore, bringing American reenforcements from Oswego to the Harbor. The Indians; who thought they were there to fight, and could not understand why they should return to the ships without firing a gun, disobeyed the order, and paddled off to attack the Americans in the boats. The squadron then wore round again, and sent out boatloads of troops to the assistance of the Indians, who drove ashore and captured twelve of the American boats, after their occupants had escaped to the woods. The other seven reached the Harbor. 113This little affair inspired the British General with new courage, and he resumed the purpose of landing his whole force for an attack on the village.
About noon on the 28th, the squadron showed up near Sackett's Harbor, and preparations for landing began. But after the troops had been in the boats for about half an hour, an order was issued—for some unknown reason, which has never been explained—telling them all to return to the ships, which then pulled back to Kingston. Meanwhile, a fleet of nineteen boats was spotted near the south shore, bringing American reinforcements from Oswego to the Harbor. The Indians, who thought they were there to fight and couldn’t understand why they should return to the ships without firing a shot, disobeyed the order and paddled off to attack the Americans in the boats. The squadron then turned around again and sent out boatloads of troops to assist the Indians, who managed to drive ashore and capture twelve of the American boats, after their occupants had fled to the woods. The other seven reached the Harbor. 113This little incident inspired the British General with renewed courage, and he resumed his plan of landing his entire force to attack the village.
But meanwhile the Americans were busily preparing for defence. Lieutenant-Colonel Electus Backus, who commanded the remnant of regular troops left at the post, had sent word the evening before to General Jacob Brown, of the militia, who had been requested by General Dearborn to take command in case of an attack during his absence. A militia force numbering about five hundred was hastily gathered from the surrounding country, and added to the small body of regulars and volunteers, The militia were posted behind a ridge of sand which had been thrown up west of the village, where their fire would sweep that part of the shore which offered the only good landing-place for the enemy. On their right were posted the volunteers, with a single piece of artillery. The regulars were formed near their camp about a mile distant.
But in the meantime, the Americans were hard at work preparing for defense. Lieutenant-Colonel Electus Backus, who led the remaining regular troops at the post, had sent a message the evening before to General Jacob Brown of the militia, who had been asked by General Dearborn to take charge in case of an attack during his absence. A militia force of about five hundred was quickly assembled from the surrounding area and joined the small group of regulars and volunteers. The militia positioned themselves behind a sand ridge that had been built up west of the village, where their fire could cover the part of the shore that was the only decent landing spot for the enemy. On their right were the volunteers, along with a single piece of artillery. The regulars were organized near their camp, about a mile away.
Early in the morning of the 29th the enemy landed. As their boats approached the shore, the militia and volunteers rose and fired into them, and were fired upon in return by two gunboats that had been sent to cover the landing. The enemy's boats then pulled around to the other side of Horse Island, which is near the mouth of the harbor, landed, and 114marched steadily across the narrow causeway that connects it with the mainland. As they approached the ridge, the militia gave them another volley, and then fled to the woods, abandoning the piece of artillery. Colonel Mills was killed while trying to hold them to their work. General Brown, who was borne away with the fugitives, succeeded in rallying about eighty of them, whom he posted behind a huge fallen tree, at the edge of a small open field. From this cover they gave the still advancing enemy three or four volleys, and then retreated.
Early in the morning of the 29th, the enemy landed. As their boats drew near to the shore, the militia and volunteers stood up and fired at them, while two gunboats sent to support the landing returned fire. The enemy's boats then moved around to the other side of Horse Island, which is close to the harbor entrance, disembarked, and 114marched steadily across the narrow causeway connecting it to the mainland. As they neared the ridge, the militia fired another round at them before fleeing into the woods, leaving behind a piece of artillery. Colonel Mills was killed while trying to keep them in position. General Brown, who was swept away with the fleeing troops, managed to gather about eighty of them, positioning them behind a large fallen tree at the edge of a small open field. From this cover, they fired three or four volleys at the advancing enemy before retreating.
Thus the left of the American line was completely swept away. The right, composed of volunteers, gave way more slowly, and retired in good order along the shore, skirmishing all the way with the enemy's advance, till they reached and formed in line with the regulars. They were annoyed on the way by the enemy's gunboats, which swept portions of the road with grapeshot; but on the other hand the enemy suffered considerably from the fire of their rifles and from parties of regulars sent out by Colonel Backus to join in the skirmishing.
Thus, the left side of the American line was completely wiped out. The right side, made up of volunteers, retreated more slowly and kept their formation along the shore, firing back at the enemy as they fell back until they reached and aligned with the regular troops. They were harassed along the way by the enemy's gunboats, which targeted parts of the road with grapeshot; however, the enemy took significant losses from rifle fire and from groups of regulars sent out by Colonel Backus to engage in the skirmishing.
The volunteers took position on the left of the second line of defence. The right was occupied by dismounted light dragoons, and the centre by regular infantry and artillery. The enemy, elated, as he had cause to be, at his first success, came steadily 115on to attack this line, and as he approached was subjected to an artillery fire from a small work called Fort Tompkins. He struck the right flank of the Americans, but found it made of different stuff from militia. Again and again the attempt was made to force this part of the line; but the dragoons, commanded by Backus in person, stood firm, delivered their fire with coolness, and drove back the assailants. The fight was kept up for an hour, and at length the weight of numbers told, and the Americans fell back.
The volunteers took their position on the left of the second line of defense. The right was held by dismounted light dragoons, and the center was occupied by regular infantry and artillery. The enemy, feeling confident after his initial success, advanced steadily 115to attack this line, and as he got closer, he came under artillery fire from a small fort called Fort Tompkins. He hit the right flank of the Americans, but discovered it was made of stronger material than militia. Again and again, he tried to force this part of the line; however, the dragoons, led by Backus himself, remained steadfast, fired with composure, and pushed back the attackers. The fighting continued for an hour, but eventually, the sheer number of enemies took its toll, and the Americans retreated.
A portion of them next took possession of the log barracks, and here made a third stand. The enemy came on as gallantly as ever, intent upon driving everything before him. Colonel Gray, Quartermaster-General, led the red-coats, and as they came up to the attack, an American drummer-boy picked up a musket, levelled it at the Colonel, and shot him down. Lieutenant Fanning, who had been severely wounded at York, and was not expected to be on duty, took charge of a gun. As the enemy approached, he carefully sighted the piece, and gave them three rounds of grapeshot in quick succession, which broke the force of their onset, and they began to fall back in some disorder. At this moment Colonel Backus fell mortally wounded.
A group of them then took over the log barracks and set up a third defense. The enemy charged forward just as bravely as before, determined to push everything aside. Colonel Gray, the Quartermaster-General, led the redcoats, and as they moved in for the attack, an American drummer boy grabbed a musket, aimed it at the Colonel, and shot him down. Lieutenant Fanning, who had been badly injured at York and wasn’t expected to be on duty, took control of a cannon. As the enemy advanced, he carefully aimed the cannon and fired three rounds of grapeshot in quick succession, which weakened their assault, causing them to start retreating in some confusion. At that moment, Colonel Backus was mortally wounded.
The officer in charge of the stores had been in116structed to set fire to them in case the enemy seemed likely to capture the place. Seeing the probability of this, he now applied the torch, not only to the storehouses but also to a new vessel that was almost ready to be launched, and to one that had been recently captured from the enemy.
The officer in charge of the supplies had been instructed to set them on fire if it looked like the enemy might capture the area. Realizing that this was likely, he now used a torch not just on the storehouses but also on a new ship that was almost ready for launch and on another ship that had recently been captured from the enemy.
With the Americans driven to their last stronghold, and the smoke from their burning stores rolling over their heads, the day appeared to be irretrievably lost. But though the enemy was strong in good troops, gallantly led, he had a weak spot in the constitutional timidity of the commander, Sir George Prevost. And General Brown at this point of time made a fortunate movement which struck that weak spot in a most effective way. He had succeeded in rallying about three hundred of the militia, with whom he suddenly emerged from the woods, and made a feint of marching for the boats by which the expedition had landed. Sir George took the alarm at once, imagining he was to be surrounded by a superior force and entrapped. He therefore issued an order for retreat, and his victorious forces withdrew to their ships without securing any result of their victory, or even bearing off their wounded. A reënforcement of six hundred men, under Lieutenant-Colonel Tuttle, who had inarched forty miles in one day, reached the vil 117lage just as the enemy were pushing off in their boats.
With the Americans pushed back to their last stronghold and the smoke from their burning supplies hanging over them, it seemed like the day was hopelessly lost. However, despite the enemy having strong, well-led troops, they had a vulnerability in their commander's cautious nature, Sir George Prevost. At this moment, General Brown made a timely move that targeted that vulnerability effectively. He managed to rally about three hundred militia and suddenly emerged from the woods, pretending to march towards the boats where the expedition had landed. Sir George instantly panicked, fearing he was about to be surrounded by a larger force and trapped. Consequently, he ordered a retreat, causing his victorious forces to withdraw to their ships without achieving anything from their victory or even taking their wounded. A reinforcement of six hundred men, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Tuttle, who had marched forty miles in a single day, arrived at the village just as the enemy was leaving in their boats.
The Americans succeeded in putting out the fires, but not till half a million dollars' worth of stores had been destroyed. The new ship was but little injured, as her timbers were so green they would not burn readily. The prize vessel was on fire, and she had considerable powder in her hold; but Lieutenant Talman, at the risk of his life, boarded her, suppressed the flames, and brought her off to a place of safety at a distance from the burning buildings.
The Americans managed to extinguish the fires, but not before half a million dollars' worth of goods were lost. The new ship was only slightly damaged, as its timbers were so green that they didn’t catch fire easily. The captured vessel was ablaze and had a significant amount of gunpowder in its hold; however, Lieutenant Talman, risking his life, boarded it, put out the flames, and moved it to a safe location away from the burning buildings.
Sir George, not content with making a needless fiasco of his expedition, made himself ridiculous by sending a flag of true to demand the surrender of the village and the military post, which of course was refused. He then sent another flag, asking that his dead and wounded might be properly cared for, and on receiving assurances that they would, sailed away with the whole fleet.
Sir George, not satisfied with turning his expedition into a pointless disaster, embarrassed himself by sending a flag of truce to demand the surrender of the village and the military post, which was naturally denied. He then sent another flag, asking for proper care for his dead and wounded, and after getting assurances that they would be taken care of, he sailed away with the entire fleet.
The loss of the Americans in this action was about one hundred and seventy, killed, wounded, or missing; that of the British, about two hundred and sixty.
The Americans lost around one hundred and seventy in this battle, either killed, wounded, or missing; while the British lost about two hundred and sixty.
A few days after the loss of Fort George, General Vincent concentrated the British forces at Beaver Dams, and retreated westward to Burlington Bay, the head of Lake Ontario, where he intrenched him118self on the heights. General Dearborn, after being baffled for some time by false information which Vincent had caused to be conveyed to him, at length found out where he had gone, and sent the brigades of Winder and Chandler after him. The Americans, following the "ridge road" that skirts the whole shore of the lake, came up with the enemy's pickets at Stony Creek, a small stream that crosses the road at right angles, on the 5th of June. There was considerable skirmishing, and the enemy's pickets were driven in.
A few days after the loss of Fort George, General Vincent gathered the British forces at Beaver Dams and retreated westward to Burlington Bay, at the north end of Lake Ontario, where he fortified himself on the heights. General Dearborn, after being misled for a while by false information that Vincent had sent to him, eventually figured out where he had gone and dispatched the brigades of Winder and Chandler after him. The Americans, following the "ridge road" that runs along the entire lake shore, encountered the enemy's pickets at Stony Creek, a small stream that intersects the road at a right angle, on June 5th. There was a significant amount of skirmishing, and the enemy's pickets were pushed back.
General Chandler, with a wise caution thus far seldom displayed, placed a company of artillery at the mouth of the creek, three miles from the road, to cover a landing of boats expected there, with the rest of his forces took a strong position on the high eastern bank of the creek, where the road crosses it, threw out pickets in all directions, gave orders how the line should be formed in case of an attack, and ordered that the artillery horses be kept harnessed.
General Chandler, showing a careful wisdom that was rare until now, stationed a company of artillery at the mouth of the creek, three miles from the road, to secure a landing for the expected boats. With the rest of his forces, he took a strong position on the high eastern bank of the creek, where the road crosses. He set up pickets in every direction, issued orders on how to form the line in case of an attack, and instructed that the artillery horses remain harnessed.
One regiment at first encamped in the low meadows on the western bank, but after nightfall it withdrew to the heights, leaving its camp-fires burning, A picket guard that had been posted at a little chapel a quarter of a mile in advance was left there.
One regiment initially set up camp in the low meadows on the western bank, but after night fell, it moved up to the heights, leaving its campfires burning. A picket guard that had been stationed at a small chapel a quarter of a mile ahead was left behind.
The officer in command of the enemy's rear guard had sent word to General Vincent that the Ameri119cans were in straggling detachments, and if the first were attacked at once it could easily be defeated before the others came up to its support. The General therefore, as he had little chance of further retreat, planned a night attack. A little before midnight of the 5th he left his camp, at the head of about a thousand men, and marched stealthily back by the road he had come, to surprise his foe. The night was absolutely dark, and the sentinels at the little chapel were suddenly seized and silently bayoneted before they could fire their muskets or make any outcry. The assassination of pickets is one of the sickening incidents of war that seldom find mention in the reports of the general or the pages of the romantic historian, but that cost many a poor fellow his life without even the pitiful compensation of what is called glory.
The officer in charge of the enemy's rear guard informed General Vincent that the Americans were in scattered groups, and if the first group was attacked immediately, it could be easily defeated before the others could come to help. Therefore, with little chance of further retreat, the General planned a night attack. Just before midnight on the 5th, he left his camp with about a thousand men and quietly retraced the path he had taken to surprise his enemy. The night was completely dark, and the sentries at the small chapel were suddenly taken and quietly killed before they could fire their muskets or raise an alarm. The assassination of sentries is one of the grim realities of war that rarely appears in the reports of generals or in the narratives of romantic historians, but it costs many a poor soldier his life without even the small consolation of what is called glory.
Seeing the camp-fires in the meadow, with no signs of life among them, the British forces imagined that the Americans were all asleep and would fall an easy prey to massacre. They advanced confidently, and as they reached the deserted fires sprang among them with a hideous yell—in which part of the performance they were materially assisted by a few score Indian allies—expecting to see their foes arise from the ground, and rub their eyes open just in time to catch the gleam of the British bayonets and 120savage tomahawks before they were buried in American flesh.
Seeing the campfires in the meadow, with no signs of life around them, the British forces thought the Americans were all asleep and would be easy targets for a massacre. They moved forward confidently, and as they reached the empty fires, they erupted with a horrifying yell—helped along by a few dozen Native allies—expecting to see their enemies rise from the ground and wake up just in time to catch a glimpse of the British bayonets and 120savage tomahawks before being overwhelmed.
Instead of this, while they stood dazed among the waning camp-fires, looking about in vain for somebody to massacre, the line on the heights blazed out with musketry and artillery, and the shot tore its way through the ranks of the red-coats. But the English soldier has always been good at obeying orders, and as soon as this volley revealed the whereabouts of the Americans, their enemy pressed on in the face of the fire, climbed the bank, entered the lines in the darkness, and captured several guns, the artillerists not being able to distinguish friend from foe.
Instead of this, while they stood stunned among the fading campfires, looking around uselessly for someone to attack, the line on the heights erupted with gunfire and cannon blasts, and the shots tore through the ranks of the redcoats. But the English soldier has always been good at following orders, and as soon as this volley revealed the location of the Americans, their enemy pushed forward despite the gunfire, climbed the bank, entered the lines in the darkness, and captured several cannons, as the artillerymen couldn’t tell friend from foe.
Then began a horrible mêlée, in which nearly every man fought on his own account, and many of them could not tell whether they were striking at comrades or enemies. Hearing a few shots fired in the rear of his camp, General Chandler imagined he was attacked from that direction also, and faced about a portion of his line, which increased the dreadful confusion. After this wild work in the darkness and tumult, the British managed somehow to retreat, carrying off with them two pieces of artillery, which, however, were afterward recovered.
Then a chaotic fight broke out, where almost every man was fighting for himself, and many couldn’t tell if they were hitting friends or foes. Hearing some gunfire behind his camp, General Chandler thought he was being attacked from that side as well, and he turned part of his line, which only added to the terrible confusion. After this wild chaos in the dark and noise, the British somehow managed to retreat, taking two pieces of artillery with them, which were later recovered.
When the morning dawned, it was found that the American commanders, Chandler and Winder, were 121both prisoners in the hands of the enemy; while the British commander, Vincent, had been thrown from his horse, lost his way in the woods, and after floundering about all night was discovered in a most pitiful and ridiculous plight. Chandler was taken while trying to manoeuvre a British regiment, which he had stumbled upon in the darkness and mistaken for one of his own.
When morning came, it turned out that the American commanders, Chandler and Winder, were 121both captured by the enemy; meanwhile, the British commander, Vincent, had been thrown off his horse, got lost in the woods, and after struggling all night, was found in a very sad and embarrassing situation. Chandler was captured while trying to maneuver a British regiment that he had run into in the dark, thinking it was one of his own.
In this affair the Americans lost one hundred and fifty-four men, killed, wounded, or missing; the British, two hundred and fourteen. The victory, so far as there was any, must be accorded to the British, since it broke the advance of the Americans and caused them to turn back. When they had retreated as far as Forty-Mile Creek, they were attacked simultaneously on both flanks—on the land side by a band of Indians, and on the water side by the fleet under Sir James Yeo. But they succeeded in repelling both enemies, and returned to Fort George with the loss only of a part of their baggage, which was conveyed in boats.
In this event, the Americans lost one hundred and fifty-four men, either killed, wounded, or missing; the British lost two hundred and fourteen. The victory, if it can be called that, went to the British, as it halted the Americans' advance and forced them to retreat. After falling back to Forty-Mile Creek, they were attacked on both sides—by a group of Indians on land and by the fleet led by Sir James Yeo on the water. However, they managed to fend off both attackers and made their way back to Fort George, losing only part of their supplies, which were transported in boats.
After this, Yeo coasted along the shore and captured stores in Charlotte, at the mouth of the Genesee, and in Sodus, on the bay of that name. As he met with some resistance at Sodus, and had difficulty in finding the stores, which were hidden, he burned the buildings there. 122There was a British depot of supplies at Beaver Dams, about seven miles southwest of Queenstown and the same distance northwest of the Falls. General Dearborn planned its capture, and on the 23d of June sent against it, from Fort George, an expedition of five hundred and seventy men, commanded by Lieutenant-Colonel Charles G. Boerstler. The enemy had strong works at Beaver Dams, but at this time they were not very well manned.
After this, Yeo sailed along the shoreline and seized supplies in Charlotte, at the mouth of the Genesee, and in Sodus, on the bay of that name. He encountered some resistance at Sodus and struggled to locate the hidden supplies, so he burned the buildings there. 122There was a British supply depot at Beaver Dams, about seven miles southwest of Queenstown and the same distance northwest of the Falls. General Dearborn planned to capture it and on June 23rd sent an expedition of five hundred and seventy men from Fort George, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Charles G. Boerstler. The enemy had strong fortifications at Beaver Dams, but at that time, they were not very well manned.
The Americans, who had about fifteen miles to march, started in the evening, with the intention of surprising and capturing the post in the morning. But the enemy had been apprised of the movement, and when the Americans reached the present site of Thorold they fell into an ambush, where they were suddenly attacked by four hundred and fifty Indians, commanded by John Brant (son of the celebrated Mohawk chief, Joseph Brant) and Captain Kerr. Though surprised, Boerstler was not confused. He coolly but quickly formed his men in battle order, and charged through the woods in the direction of the attack. To little purpose, however, as the wily savages, following their usual tactics, fled before the line of bayonets, and soon attacked the Americans from another direction, firing from the thickets and other hiding-places. After keeping up a desultory contest of this sort for three hours, with 123no prospect of any termination, Boerstler fell back to a position in an open field, encountering on the way a body of Canadian militia. Scarcely had he taken this new position, to wait for reënforcements which he had asked General Dearborn to send, when a small detachment of British regulars approached to reconnoitre. They were commanded by a Lieutenant Fitzgibbon, who had been warned of the ap proach of the Americans by a woman who had walked nineteen miles to tell him.
The Americans, who had about fifteen miles to march, set out in the evening, planning to surprise and capture the post by morning. But the enemy had been alerted to their movement, and when the Americans reached what is now Thorold, they fell into an ambush, suddenly attacked by four hundred and fifty Indians led by John Brant (son of the famous Mohawk chief, Joseph Brant) and Captain Kerr. Although taken by surprise, Boerstler stayed calm. He quickly organized his men into a battle formation and charged through the woods towards the source of the attack. However, it was largely futile, as the crafty natives, following their usual tactics, fled before the line of bayonets and then attacked the Americans from a different direction, shooting from thickets and other hiding spots. After three hours of this sporadic fighting, with no sign of it ending, Boerstler fell back to an open field, encountering a group of Canadian militia along the way. Just as he took this new position to wait for reinforcements he had requested from General Dearborn, a small detachment of British regulars approached to scout the area. They were led by Lieutenant Fitzgibbon, who had been warned about the Americans' approach by a woman who had walked nineteen miles to inform him.
Seeing that his enemy was somewhat disordered, and not disposed, to take the offensive, Fitzgibbon, though he had but forty-seven men, conceived the idea of capturing the whole force by one of those tricks which are generally supposed to be peculiarly Yankee. Displaying his little detachment in such a way as to make it appear to be the advance of a much larger body of troops, he sent a flag of truce to Boerstler and boldly demanded an immediate surrender, saying that fifteen hundred regulars and seven hundred Indians were but a short distance in the rear, and would soon come up. For the truth of this he gave his word, "on the honor of a British soldier." Boerstler, supposing escape would be impossible, surrendered, on condition that his men should be paroled and permitted to return to the United States. A Major De Haren, who had been 124sent for in all haste by Fitzgibbon, now came up with two hundred additional troops, and received the surrender, which included five hundred and forty-two men, two guns, and a stand of colors. Major Chapin, who was present, says: "The articles of capitulation were no sooner signed than they were violated. The Indians immediately commenced their depredations, and plundered the officers of their side arms. The soldiers, too, were stripped of every article of clothing to which the savages took a fancy, such as hats, coats, shoes, etc." The British commander also violated the articles by refusing to permit the militia to be paroled, whereupon many of them rose upon the guards, overpowered them, and escaped, taking some of the guards along as prisoners.
Seeing that his enemy was somewhat disorganized and not inclined to go on the attack, Fitzgibbon, even with just forty-seven men, came up with a plan to capture the entire force using one of those tricks that are often thought to be uniquely American. He arranged his small detachment in a way that made it look like the advance of a much larger army, sent a flag of truce to Boerstler, and boldly demanded an immediate surrender, claiming that fifteen hundred regulars and seven hundred Native Americans were not far behind and would arrive soon. He assured them of this "on the honor of a British soldier." Believing escape was impossible, Boerstler surrendered on the condition that his men would be paroled and allowed to return to the United States. Major De Haren, who had been quickly summoned by Fitzgibbon, soon arrived with two hundred more troops and accepted the surrender, which included five hundred and forty-two men, two cannons, and a set of colors. Major Chapin, who was present, noted: "The articles of capitulation were no sooner signed than they were violated. The Indians immediately began their plundering and took the officers' side arms. The soldiers were also stripped of any clothing items that caught the savages' fancy, such as hats, coats, shoes, etc." The British commander also broke the agreement by refusing to allow the militia to be paroled. As a result, many of them turned on the guards, overwhelmed them, and escaped, taking some of the guards as prisoners.
This ridiculous affair excited the deepest indignation throughout the country; and, in obedience to public sentiment, the President soon removed General Dearborn from command.
This absurd situation sparked deep outrage across the country, and in response to public sentiment, the President quickly dismissed General Dearborn from his command.
It was hardly more than a fortnight later, July 11th, when Lieutenant-Colonel Bisshopp planned an attack on Black Rock, a few miles north of Buffalo, where the Americans had a dockyard and large storehouses. With about three hundred men, before daylight of July 11th, he crossed the river in boats, surprised and took possession of the place. 125and proceeded to burn and plunder as rapidly as possible. He set fire to the block-houses, the barracks, the navy-yard buildings, and a schooner that lay at the wharf, and carried off a considerable quantity of stores. But before he could accomplish all this, General Peter B. Porter had got together a small force, consisting of regulars, volunteers, militia, and a few friendly Indians, and vigorously attacked the invaders. A fight of twenty minutes' duration ended in the precipitate retreat of the British, who left behind them a captain and nine men killed or wounded, and fifteen prisoners. After the boats had pushed off, the Americans renewed their fire, by which Bisshopp, commander of the expedition, was killed, and many of his men were either killed or wounded. The loss of the Americans was three men killed and three wounded. That of the enemy is supposed to have been about seventy. They had carried off four guns, besides spiking all they left. Bisshopp, who had proved himself an energetic and skilful officer, was a serious loss.
It was barely two weeks later, on July 11th, when Lieutenant-Colonel Bisshopp planned an attack on Black Rock, just a few miles north of Buffalo, where the Americans had a dockyard and large storage facilities. With about three hundred men, before dawn on July 11th, he crossed the river in boats, surprised the area, and took control. 125He quickly began to burn and loot as much as he could. He set fire to the blockhouses, the barracks, the navy yard buildings, and a schooner that was docked, and he took a significant amount of supplies. But before he could finish, General Peter B. Porter gathered a small force made up of regulars, volunteers, militia, and a few friendly Indians, and he launched a strong counterattack against the invaders. A twenty-minute fight resulted in a hasty retreat by the British, who left behind a captain and nine men either killed or wounded, along with fifteen prisoners. After the boats had rowed away, the Americans resumed firing, during which Bisshopp, the commander of the expedition, was killed, along with many of his men, who were either killed or wounded. The Americans suffered three men killed and three wounded. The enemy's losses are estimated to be around seventy. They took four guns with them and spiked all the ones they left behind. Bisshopp, who had shown himself to be an active and skilled officer, was a significant loss.
Commodore Chauncey, who was a most meritorious naval commander, though he never made a very brilliant reputation, was all this summer trying to bring Sir James Yeo to a decisive battle on Lake Ontario; but Sir James had a genius for not fighting, and could only be chased to shelter under the 126guns of the British forts. It was said also that his instructions forbade his fighting except under the most favorable circumstances. Once there seemed to be a prospect of a square battle near the mouth of the Niagara, in August; but Chauncey's plan was frustrated by the captains of two of his schooners, who in disobedience of orders tried to get to windward of the British line, and were captured. On the 28th of September there was a partial engagement between the two squadrons; but from their unequal sailing, it was only possible to bring three of the American vessels into action. One of these was badly crippled, but another handled the British flagship so severely that she crowded on all canvas and made off, followed by the entire fleet, which the Americans could not overtake. On the 5th of October Chauncey gave chase to a squadron which proved to be seven British gunboats used as transports. One of them was burned, one escaped, and the other five were captured, together with more than two hundred and sixty men. Two of the prizes were those taken from Chauncey near the Niagara.
Commodore Chauncey, a respected naval commander, although he never gained a particularly impressive reputation, spent the entire summer trying to draw Sir James Yeo into a decisive battle on Lake Ontario. However, Sir James had a knack for avoiding combat and could only be forced to seek shelter under the 126guns of the British forts. It was also said that his orders prevented him from engaging unless the conditions were highly favorable. In August, there was a chance for a straightforward battle near the mouth of the Niagara, but Chauncey's strategy was sabotaged by the captains of two of his schooners, who disobeyed orders and attempted to position themselves against the British line, resulting in their capture. On September 28th, there was a partial clash between the two fleets; however, due to their unequal sailing capabilities, only three of the American ships could engage. One of these was badly damaged, but another inflicted significant damage on the British flagship, forcing it to retreat with all its sails up, followed by the entire fleet, which the Americans couldn't catch. On October 5th, Chauncey pursued a squadron that turned out to be seven British gunboats repurposed as transports. One was destroyed, one got away, and the other five were captured, along with more than two hundred sixty men. Two of the captured vessels were those taken from Chauncey near the Niagara.
These successes left Lake Ontario virtually in the possession of the Americans; and meanwhile the command of Lake Erie had been gained by a most brilliant and memorable battle. During the winter 127of 1812-13 two large brigs, intended to carry twenty guns each, and several gunboats and schooners were built at Presque Isle (now Erie, Pa.), where there was a fine harbor. For this work a force of carpenters was sent from New York. The timber of which they were to construct the vessels was growing in the woods, and the trees had to be felled and worked up at once; there was no time to wait for the wood to season. All the ironwork, canvas, cordage, and stores had to be brought from New York or Philadelphia, and as there was neither railroad nor canal, and much of the intervening country was a wilderness, the difficulties of transportation were very great. A bar at the mouth of the harbor, on which there was but seven feet of water, prevented the British cruisers from sailing in and destroying the vessels before they were launched.
These victories left Lake Ontario practically in American control, and at the same time, Lake Erie was secured through a remarkable and unforgettable battle. During the winter of 1812-13, two large brigs, each meant to carry twenty guns, along with several gunboats and schooners, were built at Presque Isle (now Erie, Pa.), where there was a good harbor. A group of carpenters was sent from New York to carry out this work. The timber needed for the vessels was available in the nearby woods, and the trees had to be cut and processed immediately; there was no time to let the wood season. All the ironwork, canvas, rigging, and supplies had to be transported from New York or Philadelphia, and since there were no railroads or canals, and much of the surrounding area was wilderness, the transportation challenges were significant. A sandbar at the harbor's entrance, with only seven feet of water, stopped the British cruisers from entering and destroying the ships before they were launched.
Captain Oliver Hazard Perry, who, though quite young, had seen considerable service afloat, was ordered from the seaboard to take command on Lake Erie, and arrived at Buffalo in March. His volunteer service in the attack on Fort George has been already mentioned. The fall of that work was followed by the abandonment of Fort Erie, which released the vessels that had been blockaded by its guns in the upper part of the Niagara, and early in June they rendezvoused at Presque Isle. 128Perry now had his entire force in one harbor, and pushed on his equipment with the greatest possible speed. One of the new brigs was made his flagship, and was named the Lawrence. The bar that had thus far protected the fleet was now a hindrance to its sailing, for it could be passed by the larger vessels only in calm weather, and even then they must be lightened of their guns and heavy stores. The British commander, Captain R. H. Barclay, was watching with his entire fleet for Perry to come out. If, as is supposed, he intended to attack him while crossing the bar, when he could probably have won a victory, he lost his opportunity by attending to pleasure before duty. A gentleman living on the northern shore of the lake invited him to dinner one Sunday, and he crossed over with his whole squadron. At the same time the water became smooth, and Perry, who had been eagerly watching for such a chance, proceeded to take out his fleet at once.
Captain Oliver Hazard Perry, who, although quite young, had gained significant experience at sea, was ordered from the coast to take command on Lake Erie and arrived in Buffalo in March. His volunteer service in the attack on Fort George has already been noted. After the fall of that fort, Fort Erie was abandoned, which allowed the ships that had been blockaded by its guns in the upper Niagara to move freely, and by early June, they gathered at Presque Isle. 128Perry now had his entire force in one harbor and rushed to outfit his ships as quickly as possible. One of the new brigs was designated as his flagship and named the Lawrence. The sandbar that had previously protected the fleet was now an obstacle to sailing, as the larger vessels could only pass over it in calm weather, and even then, they had to be unloaded of their guns and heavy supplies. The British commander, Captain R. H. Barclay, was watching with his entire fleet for Perry to emerge. If, as is believed, he planned to attack him while he was crossing the bar—when he likely could have secured a victory—he missed his chance by prioritizing leisure over duty. A gentleman living on the northern shore of the lake invited him to dinner one Sunday, and he crossed over with his entire squadron. Meanwhile, the water became calm, and Perry, who had been eagerly waiting for such an opportunity, quickly took his fleet out.
The Lawrence, which was his heaviest vessel, was provided with a large scow on each side, and on her arrival at the bar these scows were nearly filled with water, and sunk very low. Great beams were then passed through her port-holes, the ends projecting over the scows. Piles of blocks were provided for these ends to rest upon, and then the holes in the scows were plugged up, and the water pumped out. 129As the scows rose, they lifted the brig with them. But though her guns had been taken out and left on the beach, as well as all other heavy articles that could be removed, she still drew too much water to pass the bar. Another lift was made, which occupied the night, and finally she floated across. The other brig, the Niagara, was not quite so large, and was taken over with less difficulty. The lighter vessels had crossed the bar without assistance; and on the approach of the English squadron at eight o'clock the next morning, it was received with a cannonade, which, though it did no harm, prevented Barclay from running in close and seizing the prey he had been so long watching for. The Lawrence's guns were taken on board as soon as she was afloat outside, and the broadside was trained to bear on the enemy.
The Lawrence, which was his largest ship, was equipped with a large scow on each side, and when it arrived at the bar, these scows were almost completely filled with water and sitting very low. Huge beams were then passed through her port-holes, with the ends sticking out over the scows. Piles of blocks were set up for these ends to rest on, after which the holes in the scows were plugged, and the water was pumped out. 129As the scows rose, they lifted the brig along with them. However, even though her cannons had been removed and left on the beach, along with all other heavy items that could be taken away, she still drew too much water to get past the bar. Another lift was done, which took all night, and finally she floated across. The other brig, the Niagara, was slightly smaller and crossed over with less trouble. The lighter vessels had made it across the bar without help; and when the English squadron approached at eight o'clock the next morning, they were met with cannon fire, which, although it caused no damage, stopped Barclay from getting in close and capturing the prize he had been watching for so long. The Lawrence's guns were put back on board as soon as she was afloat outside, and the broadside was aimed at the enemy.
This was Monday, the 5th of August, and Perry was now afloat on Lake Erie with ten vessels, carrying fifty-five guns and—after he had received several reënforcements—about four hundred men. Captain Barclay had about the same number of men, in six vessels, carrying sixty-five guns, his flagship being the Detroit. As soon as the American fleet was fairly over the bar, the British sailed away up the lake, and it took Perry a month to find them and bring them to action. He was at Put-in-Bay; in 130one of the islands near the western end of the lake, when at sunrise on the morning of September 10th the British fleet was sighted from the masthead, bearing down from the northwest, apparently bent on having a fight.
This was Monday, August 5th, and Perry was now out on Lake Erie with ten ships, carrying fifty-five guns and—after receiving several reinforcements—about four hundred men. Captain Barclay had about the same number of men on six ships, carrying sixty-five guns, with his flagship being the Detroit. As soon as the American fleet was clear of the bar, the British sailed up the lake, and it took Perry a month to find them and engage them in battle. He was at Put-in-Bay; in 130one of the islands near the western end of the lake when, at sunrise on the morning of September 10th, the British fleet was spotted from the masthead, approaching from the northwest, clearly ready for a fight.
Perry had given the commanders of his several vessels careful instructions what to do in case of an engagement, ending with the remark that "they could not be out of their proper places if they laid their enemy close alongside." Within an hour after the enemy was sighted, the squadron was beating out of the bay. The wind was from the southwest, which made it impossible for the Americans to get the weather-gage, unless by circumnavigating some of the islands. As there was apparently no time for this, Perry determined to accept the chances of battle without that advantage, and accordingly passed to leeward of the islands. But fortune favored him unexpectedly, for the wind soon shifted to the southeast, giving him the weather-gage, which for vessels armed as his were was very important.
Perry had given the commanders of his ships clear instructions on what to do in case of a battle, concluding with the comment that "they could not be out of their proper positions if they brought their enemy in close." Within an hour of spotting the enemy, the squadron was leaving the bay. The wind was blowing from the southwest, making it impossible for the Americans to gain the wind advantage unless they went around some of the islands. Since there didn't seem to be enough time for that, Perry decided to take the risk of battle without that advantage and passed to the leeward side of the islands. However, luck was on his side, as the wind soon changed to the southeast, giving him the wind advantage, which was very important for ships like his.
At ten o'clock the British squadron, having failed in manoeuvres for the weather-gage, hove to, in line of battle, with their bows to the west and south, and awaited the approach of their enemy, now about nine miles distant. One of the smaller vessels was at the head of the line, and the Detroit, Barclay's 131flagship, next; then came another small vessel, and then the Queen Charlotte, a large one, and then the two remaining small ones. The British vessels were all freshly painted, and had new canvas, presenting a handsome appearance to the eye of a sailor.
At ten o'clock, the British squadron, after failing to gain the upper hand in maneuvering for the wind, stopped in a battle formation with their bows facing west and south, waiting for their enemy, who was now about nine miles away. One of the smaller ships was at the front of the line, followed by the Detroit, Barclay's flagship, then another small vessel, the Queen Charlotte, a larger ship, and finally the two remaining small ships. The British vessels were all freshly painted and had new sails, looking impressive to any sailor.
As Perry approached and observed this order, he formed his own line to correspond with it. He placed two schooners in the van, one carrying four guns and the other two; then his flagship, the Lawrence; then the Caledonia, of three guns; then the Niagara, of twenty; and then the other vessels, which, however, as the wind was light, did not come up very promptly. The orders were, that the vessels should be but half a cable's length apart.
As Perry got closer and watched the formation, he set up his own line to match it. He positioned two schooners at the front, one with four guns and the other with two; then came his flagship, the Lawrence; next was the Caledonia, with three guns; followed by the Niagara, which had twenty; and then the other ships, which, since the wind was light, didn’t arrive very quickly. The orders specified that the vessels should be only half a cable's length apart.
As he approached the enemy. Perry displayed a blue flag bearing the words, "Don't give up the ship." * A few minutes before twelve o'clock, a bugle was sounded on the British flagship, which was answered by cheers from all the other vessels in the line, and followed by the discharge of one of her long guns, pointed at the Lawrence. As the American was still a mile and a half distant, the shot fell short; but this space was being gradually lessened, and the battle was soon fairly opened. One of the two schooners in the van replied with a
As he got closer to the enemy, Perry showed a blue flag that said, "Don't give up the ship." * A few minutes before noon, a bugle sounded on the British flagship, which was met with cheers from all the other ships in line, followed by a shot from one of her long guns aimed at the Lawrence. Since the American ship was still a mile and a half away, the shot fell short, but that distance was quickly closing, and the battle was about to begin. One of the two schooners in the front responded with a
* For the origin of this motto, see page 199.
* For the origin of this motto, see page 199.
132long gun, while the Lawrence, being armed with carronades, bore down upon the British flagship, to engage her at short range. This she succeeded in doing, but not without suffering considerably, and the three largest of the British vessels concentrated their fire on her. The two foremost schooners fought their long guns well; but as they had been ordered to keep to windward of the flagship (that is, a little farther from the enemy) they did not draw off any of the fire from her. But, after two hours of this, the Niagara drew ahead of the Caledonia, thus assuming the place in the line next to the Lawrence, and fought most gallantly; still, this hardly lessened the fire that was poured into the flagship, which the enemy seemed determined to sink. Many of her spars were shot away, all of her guns on the starboard side, but one, were rendered useless, and of a hundred men on board, twenty-two were killed and sixty-one wounded—a proportion of casualties that had never been equalled in any similar battle.
132long gun, while the Lawrence, equipped with carronades, charged towards the British flagship to engage at close range. She managed to do this, but not without taking heavy damage, as the three largest British ships focused their fire on her. The two leading schooners handled their long guns well; however, since they were instructed to stay upwind of the flagship (meaning, a bit farther from the enemy), they didn’t draw any fire away from her. After two hours, the Niagara moved ahead of the Caledonia, taking the position next to the Lawrence and fighting bravely; still, this hardly reduced the barrage aimed at the flagship, which the enemy was intent on sinking. Many of her masts were shot away, all but one of her starboard guns were destroyed, and out of a hundred men on board, twenty-two were killed and sixty-one were wounded—a casualty rate that had never been matched in any similar battle.
The Lawrence dropped out of the fight, and Perry transferred his flag to the Niagara, which pulled ahead to a position for engaging the Detroit. When the enemy saw the flag come down, they supposed they had gained a victory, stopped firing, and cheered. But the decisive struggle was yet to come. Captain Elliott, of the Niagara, passed down 133the line in a small boat, delivering to the commander of each vessel Perry's order to close up and attack the enemy at half pistol-shot with grape and canister. He then remained with and commanded one of the last vessels in the line, leaving the Niagara to Perry.
The Lawrence dropped out of the fight, and Perry moved his flag to the Niagara, which advanced to a position to engage the Detroit. When the enemy saw the flag come down, they thought they had won, stopped firing, and cheered. But the decisive battle was still ahead. Captain Elliott of the Niagara rowed down the line in a small boat, delivering Perry's order to the commanders of each ship to close in and attack the enemy at half pistol-shot with grape and canister. He then stayed with and commanded one of the last ships in the line, leaving the Niagara to Perry.
At this time the wind freshened, Perry showed the signal for close action, an answering cheer passed along his line, and once more the whole squadron bore down upon the enemy. Barclay attempted to manoeuvre his vessels so as to bring his uninjured broadsides to bear; but his line got into confusion, and two of the vessels fouled.
At that moment, the wind picked up, Perry signaled for close action, and his crew cheered in response. Once again, the entire squadron charged toward the enemy. Barclay tried to maneuver his ships to bring his undamaged sides to bear, but his line became disorganized, and two of the ships collided.
Perry took prompt advantage of this. The Niagara sailed right through the confused British line, having two of their vessels on one side, and three on the other—all within short range—and delivered her deadly broadsides in both directions as she passed. Then she luffed across their bows, and raked them, and the cries that came from the Detroit told that this merciless operation had had its usual deadly effect. At the same time, the other American vessels came into close action, and their guns were served with great rapidity. This destructive work had lasted about twenty minutes when an officer of the Queen Charlotte displayed a white handkerchief on the point of a pike, and four of the 134British vessels struck their colors. The other two attempted to escape, but were overtaken in about an hour and compelled to surrender.
Perry quickly took advantage of this. The Niagara sailed straight through the disorganized British line, with two of their ships on one side and three on the other—all within short range—and unleashed deadly broadsides in both directions as she passed. Then she turned across their bows and raked them, and the screams coming from the Detroit showed that this ruthless tactic had its usual deadly impact. At the same time, the other American ships engaged closely, and their guns were fired rapidly. This destructive action lasted about twenty minutes when an officer from the Queen Charlotte waved a white handkerchief on a pike, and four of the 134British ships lowered their flags. The other two tried to escape but were caught about an hour later and forced to surrender.
In this battle, the entire loss of the Americans was twenty-seven killed and ninety-six wounded. Twelve of these were quarterdeck officers. As more than a hundred out of four hundred on board had previously been rendered unfit for duty by dysentery and cholera, the proportion of casualties to effective men was more than one in three. The British lost forty-one killed and ninety-four wounded, including twelve officers. Captain Barclay, who had lost his left arm in a previous engagement, in this one lost the use of his right.
In this battle, the total American casualties were twenty-seven killed and ninety-six wounded. Twelve of those were quarterdeck officers. Since more than a hundred out of four hundred on board had already been made unfit for duty due to dysentery and cholera, the casualty rate compared to effective men was over one in three. The British lost forty-one killed and ninety-four wounded, including twelve officers. Captain Barclay, who had lost his left arm in a previous fight, lost the use of his right arm in this one.
The masts of the Detroit and Queen Charlotte were so injured that they snapped off two days later, from the rolling of the vessels in the bay, while riding at anchor during a gale.
The masts of the Detroit and Queen Charlotte were damaged so badly that they broke off two days later from the rocking of the ships in the bay while they were anchored during a storm.
In a despatch to General Harrison, Perry announced his victory in words that have become famous: "We have met the enemy, and they are ours: two ships, two brigs, one schooner, and one sloop." Congress voted him a gold medal for his achievement. As the question of the fighting qualities of the black man has since been considerably discussed, it is worth noting that in this bloody and brilliant battle a large number of Perry's men were 135Negroes. Much of the credit of the victory has been claimed for Captain Jesse D. Elliott, who undoubtedly deserved it, and his services were generously acknowledged in Perry's official report.
In a message to General Harrison, Perry announced his victory with words that have become famous: "We have met the enemy, and they are ours: two ships, two brigs, one schooner, and one sloop." Congress awarded him a gold medal for his achievement. As the discussion around the fighting capabilities of black soldiers has been significant since then, it's important to note that a large number of Perry's men were 135Black. Much of the credit for the victory has been attributed to Captain Jesse D. Elliott, who certainly earned it, and his contributions were generously recognized in Perry's official report.
Many interesting incidents of this famous action have been related by different participants. At the opening of the battle, the English musicians played the well-known air of "Rule, Britannia!—Britannia, rule the waves!"—on which the result of the fight was a ludicrous comment, proving that an exception must be made in favor of the waves of Lake Erie.
Many fascinating events from this famous battle have been recounted by various participants. At the start of the fight, the English musicians played the familiar tune of "Rule, Britannia!—Britannia, rule the waves!"—to which the outcome of the battle provided a humorous commentary, showing that an exception should be made for the waves of Lake Erie.
On the British flagship there was a pet bear, and when the victors stepped on board they found it eagerly lapping up the blood from the deck.
On the British flagship, there was a pet bear, and when the victors boarded, they found it eagerly lapping up the blood from the deck.
The British commander had repeated the silly performance of nailing his colors to the mast, which never has any other effect than to sacrifice lives that might have been saved if the signal of surrender, when surrender became necessary, could have been displayed instantly.
The British commander had repeated the pointless act of nailing his colors to the mast, which only serves to waste lives that could have been spared if the signal of surrender, when surrender was needed, could have been shown immediately.
On Captain Barclay's vessel were three Indians, whom he placed in the tops, or cross-trees, with rifles in their hands, to pick off the American officers, that kind of work being exactly suited to their taste. But as the first part of the action was fought at long cannon-range, beyond the reach of rifle-shot, they found themselves in danger from numerous 136large balls that went tearing through the rigging, and at the same time totally unable to murder anybody on the distant vessels. Indians have always stood in mortal terror of artillery. So they descended to the deck; but here they found it still more dangerous, and finally the disgusted braves retreated down the hatchway. When the Americans came on board, they found them hidden in the hold. This is probably the only instance of Indians taking part, or attempting to take part, in modern naval warfare. But they have a legend of a great Indian naval battle that took place on the waters of this same lake two hundred years before.
On Captain Barclay's ship were three Native Americans, whom he placed in the rigging with rifles in their hands, to target the American officers, as this kind of work was right up their alley. However, since the initial part of the battle was fought at long cannon range, beyond the range of their rifles, they found themselves in danger from numerous large cannonballs that were ripping through the rigging, while being utterly unable to hit anyone on the distant ships. Native Americans have always been terrified of artillery. So they climbed down to the deck; but it was even more dangerous down there, and ultimately, the frustrated warriors retreated down the hatch. When the Americans boarded, they found them hiding in the hold. This is likely the only instance of Native Americans participating, or attempting to participate, in modern naval warfare. But they have a legend of a great Native American naval battle that occurred on the waters of this same lake two hundred years earlier.
The Senecas—so runs the story—who inhabited the southern and eastern shores of Ontario and the St. Lawrence, had declared war against the Wyandots, who inhabited the northern and western shores. A Wyandot chief, gambling with a Seneca, had won his wife; but the Seneca refused to give her up. Shortly afterward she eloped with the Wyandot, and they escaped to the country of the Pottawatomies, in Michigan. This was the cause of the war, which the Senecas began by crossing the St. Lawrence, surprising a Wyandot village, and cruelly murdering a large number of the inhabitants.
The Senecas—so the story goes—who lived on the southern and eastern shores of Ontario and the St. Lawrence, declared war on the Wyandots, who occupied the northern and western shores. A Wyandot chief, while gambling with a Seneca, won his wife; however, the Seneca wouldn’t let her go. Shortly after, she ran away with the Wyandot, and they fled to the land of the Pottawatomies in Michigan. This was the spark that ignited the war, which the Senecas started by crossing the St. Lawrence, surprising a Wyandot village, and brutally killing many of the residents.
The next summer the Senecas planned a naval expedition against the Wyandots, to be fitted out at the eastern end of Lake Erie, near the present site of Buffalo, pass up the lake and through Detroit River, and rescue the stolen squaw and exterminate the tribe. But the Wyandots had early information of this design, and several of the tribes inhabiting the peninsula of Michigan joined with them in preparations to repel the threatened invasion.
The next summer, the Senecas planned a naval mission against the Wyandots, to be launched from the eastern end of Lake Erie, near what is now Buffalo. They intended to navigate up the lake and through the Detroit River, rescue the kidnapped woman, and wipe out the tribe. However, the Wyandots got wind of this plan early on, and several tribes living in the Michigan peninsula banded together with them to prepare for the incoming invasion.
The war-canoes built by the Senecas were "dug-outs," hewn from the trunks of large trees. The Wyandots and their allies prepared a fleet of birch-bark canoes, which were much lighter, swifter, and more easily manoeuvred, and went down the lake to meet their enemy. They coasted along the northern shore as far as North Point, where they waited to make a reconnoissance. The Wyandot who had carried off the woman crossed the lake alone, climbed a tall tree overlooking the rendezvous of the Senecas, and counted their craft and noted their preparations. Then he passed by a wide circuit around their encampment, swam the Niagara below the Falls, and the next day rejoined the fleet of the allies, to whom he was able to give all necessary in138formation as to the number and equipment of their enemy.
The war canoes made by the Senecas were "dug-outs," carved from the trunks of large trees. The Wyandots and their allies prepared a fleet of birch-bark canoes, which were much lighter, faster, and easier to maneuver, and headed down the lake to confront their enemy. They coasted along the northern shore as far as North Point, where they paused to scout. The Wyandot who had taken the woman crossed the lake alone, climbed a tall tree overlooking the Senecas' meeting point, counted their canoes, and observed their preparations. Then he made a wide detour around their camp, swam the Niagara River below the Falls, and the next day rejoined the allied fleet, where he was able to provide all the necessary information about the number and equipment of their enemy.
They set sail—or rather pulled paddles—at once. But when in full sight of the Senecas, pretended to be frightened, and retreated. The Senecas gave a war whoop, launched their heavy canoes, and pad-died after them as fast as possible. When the allies had thus drawn their antagonists far away from the shore, they suddenly turned upon them, and a bloody and merciless battle ensued, which lasted for several hours. Indian after Indian was cut down, or gradually hacked to pieces, or knocked overboard. Some of the canoes were run down; others were grappled together while their occupants fought hand-to-hand. The lighter boats of the allies were a great advantage, and finally the Senecas were defeated. The dead and the badly wounded were then thrown overboard, while the prisoners were reserved for torture. One Seneca was found to have concealed himself in the bottom of a canoe, feigning death that he might escape captivity. The victors cut off his nose and ears, and knocked out his teeth, and in that disgraceful plight sent him home to bear the news of the disaster to his tribe. On the bank of Niagara River the captured canoes were piled up for a funeral pyre, and a hundred of the wounded Senecas were tied and laid upon it, Fire was set to it. 139and as one and another escaped when his shackles were burned off, he was shot down with arrows or brained with a war-club. When the victims were all reduced to ashes, the allies celebrated their victory with a feast and dance, and then returned home. Such was the legend told by Walk-in-the-Water, a Wyandot chief, when he heard of Perry's victory, which he thought was a small affair in comparison with the exploit of his ancestors.
They set sail—or rather paddled—immediately. But when they saw the Senecas, they pretended to be scared and pulled back. The Senecas let out a war whoop, launched their heavy canoes, and paddled after them as fast as they could. Once the allies had drawn their enemies far from the shore, they suddenly attacked, and a brutal, relentless battle broke out that lasted for several hours. Indian after Indian was cut down, sliced to pieces, or knocked overboard. Some canoes were sunk; others were locked together while their occupants fought up close. The allies’ lighter boats gave them a significant advantage, and eventually, the Senecas were defeated. The dead and badly wounded were thrown overboard, while the prisoners were kept for torture. One Seneca was found hiding in the bottom of a canoe, pretending to be dead to escape capture. The victors cut off his nose and ears, knocked out his teeth, and sent him back home in that humiliating state to deliver the news of the defeat to his tribe. On the bank of the Niagara River, the captured canoes were stacked up for a funeral pyre, and a hundred of the wounded Senecas were tied to it and laid on top. Fire was set to it. 139and as one after another escaped when their shackles burned off, they were shot with arrows or clubbed to death. Once the victims were reduced to ashes, the allies celebrated their victory with a feast and dance before returning home. This was the story told by Walk-in-the-Water, a Wyandot chief, when he heard of Perry's victory, which he believed was minor compared to the achievements of his ancestors.
By the capture of the British fleet, the lakes were cleared of the enemy, and but one more movement was necessary in order to restore to the United States all that had been lost by Hull's surrender. How successfully that movement was executed will be shown in the next chapter.
By capturing the British fleet, the lakes were cleared of the enemy, and only one more action was needed to return to the United States everything that had been lost due to Hull's surrender. The success of that action will be detailed in the next chapter.
CHAPTER VIII. BATTLE OF THE THAMES.
140
Harrison's Advance—Proctor's Retreat—Nature of the Ground—Disposition of the Indians—The Battle—Death of Tecumseh—Flight of Proctor—Results of the Campaign.
Harrison’s Advance—Proctor’s Retreat—Nature of the Ground—Disposition of the Indians—The Battle—Death of Tecumseh—Flight of Proctor—Results of the Campaign.
The opportunity which General Harrison had been waiting for had now arrived. He had been joined by Governor Shelby, of Kentucky, who brought three thousand five hundred mounted men, and also by two hundred Indians. His preparations for an invasion of Canada were complete; and Perry's victory not only gave him the necessary means of transportation, but removed a hostile fleet that might have prevented his landing an army on Canadian soil. His troops rendezvoused on the peninsula near Sandusky; the total force, including a few regulars, numbering about five thousand men.
The opportunity that General Harrison had been waiting for had finally arrived. He was joined by Governor Shelby from Kentucky, who brought three thousand five hundred mounted men, along with two hundred Indians. His plans for an invasion of Canada were all set; Perry's victory not only provided the necessary means of transportation but also eliminated a hostile fleet that could have blocked his army from landing on Canadian soil. His troops gathered on the peninsula near Sandusky, totaling around five thousand men, including a few regulars.
Colonel Richard M. Johnson, with his regiment of cavalry, was sent to Detroit by land, there to cross the river. All the other troops, with their equipments, were taken on board Perry's vessels and carried up Detroit River, and landed, on the 27th of September, at a point three miles below Amherstburg.
Colonel Richard M. Johnson, along with his cavalry regiment, was sent to Detroit by land to cross the river. All the other troops, with their gear, boarded Perry's ships and were transported up the Detroit River, landing on September 27th at a spot three miles below Amherstburg.
They marched at once on Malden, and took 141possession of that post without opposition. The British General Proctor had abandoned it, but not till he had destroyed the barracks, the stores, and as much of the fortifications as was possible. Harrison expected a fight, and had his forces formed in battle order as they advanced; but Proctor's purpose was simply to get out of the way of his enemy, and escape if possible to Niagara. He had about six hundred white soldiers who were fit for duty, and a force of Indians variously estimated at from eight hundred to fifteen hundred.
They immediately marched on Malden and took 141control of the area without any resistance. British General Proctor had abandoned it, but not before he destroyed the barracks, the supplies, and as much of the fortifications as he could. Harrison was expecting a fight and had his troops arranged in battle formation as they moved forward; however, Proctor's goal was simply to get away from his enemy and, if possible, escape to Niagara. He had around six hundred white soldiers ready for duty and a force of Native Americans estimated to number between eight hundred and fifteen hundred.
Harrison left detachments at Detroit, Amherstburg, and Sandwich, and with the remainder of his force—about three thousand five hundred men—set out, on the 2d of October, in pursuit of Proctor. The enemy had retreated along the southern shore of Lake St. Clair, and thence up the river Thames, which flows into that lake. Proctor's baggage and artillery were carried by water, in small vessels; and Harrison in his pursuit was materially aided by Captain Perry, whose boats carried the baggage and supplies the whole length of the lake and fifteen miles up the river. At that point Perry left the water, and served on Harrison's staff.
Harrison left detachments in Detroit, Amherstburg, and Sandwich, and with the rest of his force—about three thousand five hundred men—set out on October 2nd in pursuit of Proctor. The enemy had retreated along the southern shore of Lake St. Clair and then up the Thames River, which flows into the lake. Proctor's baggage and artillery were transported by water in small vessels, and Harrison's pursuit was significantly supported by Captain Perry, whose boats carried the baggage and supplies the entire length of the lake and fifteen miles up the river. At that point, Perry left the water and served on Harrison's staff.
Four considerable streams crossed the line of retreat, and Proctor might have seriously delayed the pursuit, and perhaps entirely stopped it, by destroy142ing the bridge over any one of them. He seems not to have thought of this at the first stream, where the Americans found the bridge intact. At the second, a lieutenant and eleven men had been left with orders to destroy the bridge; but before they had accomplished their task, Harrison's advance guard came up and captured them. The third bridge, partially destroyed, was defended by a considerable body of Indians; but a few shots from two six-pounders dispersed them, and the structure was soon repaired. The fourth bridge was likewise partly destroyed, and guarded by Indians, who were not so easily driven away. The mounted Kentuckians pushed forward, and had a brisk skirmish with the savages, in which half a dozen of the whites were killed or wounded, and thirteen of the Indians were killed. The enemy then set fire to a large house, near the bridge, a distillery, and three vessels that were loaded with military stores, and continued his retreat. As soon as the bridge could be repaired, Harrison's troops crossed it, extinguished the fire in the house, and found in it two thousand stand of arms. Early on the 5th the pursuit was renewed. The route was still along the Thames, and in the course of the day the Americans captured two gunboats and several batteaux, all laden with provisions and ammunition. 143By this time, Proctor's Indians were tired of retreating, and were determined either to have a fight of some sort or leave him. About sixty of them actually deserted, and offered their services to Harrison, who declined them—not because he disbelieved in the employment of Indians, for he had some in his own force, but probably because he thought it unwise to employ troops of any sort who recognized no principle and were ready to go from one side to the other as the fortunes of war might fluctuate.
Four major rivers crossed the retreat path, and Proctor could have seriously slowed down the pursuit, maybe even completely halted it, by destroying the bridge over any one of them. At the first river, he didn’t seem to think of this, and the Americans found the bridge intact. At the second, a lieutenant and eleven men were left with orders to destroy the bridge, but before they could finish the job, Harrison's advance guard arrived and captured them. The third bridge was partially ruined and defended by a significant group of Indians, but a few shots from two six-pound cannons scattered them, and the bridge was quickly repaired. The fourth bridge was also partly destroyed and guarded by Indians, who were harder to drive away. The mounted Kentuckians charged in and had a fierce skirmish with the natives, resulting in about six white soldiers being killed or wounded, while thirteen Indians were killed. The enemy then set fire to a large house near the bridge, a distillery, and three boats loaded with military supplies before continuing their retreat. Once the bridge was repaired, Harrison's troops crossed it, put out the fire in the house, and discovered two thousand firearms inside. Early on the 5th, the pursuit resumed. The route still followed the Thames, and during the day, the Americans captured two gunboats and several bateaux, all loaded with food and ammunition. By this time, Proctor's Indians were fed up with retreating and wanted either to fight or leave him. About sixty of them actually deserted and offered to join Harrison, who declined their help—not because he doubted the use of Indians since he had some in his own force, but probably because he thought it was unwise to use troops who had no loyalty and would switch sides as the tides of war changed.
Both armies were now on the north side of the Thames, and Harrison's scouts brought news that the enemy had formed in line of battle at a point about two and a half miles from Moravian Town, four miles in advance of where Harrison then was. At the place chosen there was a marsh, the edge of which was about five hundred yards distant from the river and parallel with it for two miles. Midway between was a little marsh. The road ran between the little marsh and the river. The ground was largely covered with an open growth of forest trees, but there was no underbrush.
Both armies were now on the north side of the Thames, and Harrison's scouts reported that the enemy had lined up for battle about two and a half miles from Moravian Town, four miles ahead of where Harrison was at the time. The chosen location had a marsh that was about five hundred yards from the river and ran parallel to it for two miles. In between, there was a smaller marsh. The road ran between the smaller marsh and the river. The area was mostly covered with open forest, but there was no underbrush.
Proctor placed his best English troops, with his artillery, in a line stretching from the river to the little marsh, his cannon commanding the road. Behind this line were his reserves. The Indians, com144manded by Tecumseh, who was a brigadier-general in the British service, formed a line between the two marshes, and a large number of them were thrown forward in the edge of the great marsh, that they might fall upon the left flank of the Americans.
Proctor arranged his best English troops, along with his artillery, in a line that extended from the river to the small marsh, with his cannons covering the road. Behind this line were his reserves. The Indians, led by Tecumseh, who was a brigadier-general in the British army, formed a line between the two marshes, and a large number of them were positioned at the edge of the large marsh to attack the left flank of the Americans.
Harrison placed his mounted troops in front, and behind them two thirds of his infantry, while the remainder was thrown back at an angle on the left, to be able to face the Indians in the marsh. The mounted men were formed in two columns, all under command of Colonel Richard M. Johnson, who rode with the left column. The right column was commanded immediately by his brother, Lieutenant-Colonel James Johnson.
Harrison positioned his cavalry in the front, with two-thirds of his infantry behind them, while the rest was angled back on the left to confront the Indians in the marsh. The cavalry was organized into two columns, all under the leadership of Colonel Richard M. Johnson, who rode with the left column. The right column was directly commanded by his brother, Lieutenant-Colonel James Johnson.
At the sound of the bugle, the columns rode forward, slowly and steadily at first. As the right column came within musket-shot of the enemy, it received a volley or two, and here and there a trooper tumbled from his horse. The pace was immediately quickened, and in two minutes a solid column of a thousand dragoons went crashing through the British line, cutting down every opposing soldier within reach of its sabres. The column immediately re-formed in rear of the enemy's position, and repeated the charge, at the same time firing into the broken ranks, when the entire left wing was thrown into confusion before the men could fix 145their bayonets, and four hundred and seventy of them, with their officers, surrendered.
At the sound of the bugle, the columns moved forward, slowly and steadily at first. As the right column got within musket range of the enemy, it took a couple of volleys, and here and there a trooper fell from his horse. The pace quickly picked up, and in two minutes, a solid column of a thousand dragoons went crashing through the British line, cutting down every opposing soldier within reach of their sabres. The column quickly re-formed behind the enemy's position and charged again, while also firing into the disorganized ranks, causing the entire left wing to fall into chaos before the men could fix their bayonets, resulting in four hundred and seventy of them, along with their officers, surrendering.
On the other wing, as Colonel Richard M. Johnson's column rode up at a charge, the Indians reserved their fire till they were within a few paces, and then gave them a destructive volley. Almost the whole of the advance guard fell before it, and Colonel Johnson was wounded. Finding that the ground here, between the two marshes, was unsuitable for horses, Colonel Johnson at once ordered his men to dismount, and for eight or ten minutes there was hard fighting, at close range, with the rifle. After charges and counter-charges, the Indians began to give way. At this moment Governor Shelby brought up the reserves, and about the same time Tecumseh fell, and the savages then broke and fled.
On the other side, as Colonel Richard M. Johnson's troops charged forward, the Native Americans held their fire until they were just a few steps away, and then unleashed a devastating volley. Almost the entire advance guard fell victim to it, and Colonel Johnson was injured. Realizing that the ground between the two marshes was unsuitable for horses, Colonel Johnson quickly ordered his men to get off their mounts, and for the next eight to ten minutes, there was intense close-range fighting with rifles. After a series of charges and counter-charges, the Native Americans began to retreat. At that moment, Governor Shelby brought in the reserves, and around the same time, Tecumseh was taken down, causing the warriors to break and flee.
The question, who killed Tecumseh, though not of much importance, has been warmly discussed. Thomson, one of the earliest authorities for the history of this war, says: "Colonel R. M. Johnson had been five times wounded, and in that state, covered with blood, and exhausted by pain and fatigue, he personally encountered Tecumseh. The Colonel was mounted on a white charger, at which, being a conspicuous object, the Indians had continually levelled their fire. A shower of bullets had fallen round him; his holsters, his clothes, and most of his 146accoutrements were pierced in several places; and at the instant when he discovered Tecumseh, his horse received a second wound. Tecumseh, having discharged his rifle, sprang forward with his tomahawk, and had it already raised to throw, when Colonel Johnson's horse staggered back, and immediately the Colonel drew forth a pistol, shot the Indian through the head, and both fell to the ground together."
The question of who killed Tecumseh, while not particularly significant, has sparked a lot of debate. Thomson, one of the earliest experts on the history of this war, states: "Colonel R. M. Johnson had been wounded five times, and in that condition, covered in blood and worn out from pain and fatigue, he confronted Tecumseh. The Colonel was riding a white horse, which made him a clear target for the Indians, who constantly aimed their fire at him. A rain of bullets fell around him; his holsters, clothes, and most of his 146gear were hit in several spots; and at the moment he spotted Tecumseh, his horse was hit again. After shooting his rifle, Tecumseh lunged forward with his tomahawk, already raised to throw it, when Colonel Johnson's horse staggered back, and in that instant, the Colonel pulled out a pistol, shot the Indian in the head, and they both fell to the ground."
When the savages in front were defeated, those that had been posted in the edge of the great marsh vanished through the woods.
When the savages in front were defeated, those stationed at the edge of the great marsh disappeared into the woods.
General Proctor, when he saw his lines broken, abandoned the field and drove off with all possible speed in his carriage, accompanied by a mounted body guard. He was conscious that he deserved no quarter for his cold-blooded massacres, and feared that if he fell into the hands of American soldiers he might get his deserts. As a matter of fact, General Harrison had instructed his men before the battle that if Proctor was captured he should be brought in unharmed. A detachment sent in pursuit of him pressed him so closely that he abandoned his carriage, leaving his sword and private papers in it, and took to the woods; where, as he was well mounted and familiar with the country, they could not overtake him. But though he escaped the 147Americans, by his own government he was court-martialled, reprimanded, and suspended for six months. If he had previously been punished for violating the laws of war, and an abler and better man put into his place, this disaster might not have befallen the British arms. It was not when they massacred defenceless people, but only when they lost battles, that the English Government was dissatisfied with unsoldier-like conduct in its officers.
General Proctor, seeing his lines break, fled the battlefield and quickly drove away in his carriage, accompanied by a mounted bodyguard. He was aware that he didn’t deserve any mercy for his brutal massacres and feared that if he fell into the hands of American soldiers, he would face the consequences. In fact, General Harrison had instructed his men before the battle that if Proctor was captured, he should be brought in unharmed. A group sent to pursue him was so close that he abandoned his carriage, leaving behind his sword and personal papers, and ran into the woods, where, being well-mounted and familiar with the area, they couldn’t catch him. But although he escaped the Americans, his own government court-martialed him, reprimanded him, and suspended him for six months. If he had faced punishment earlier for breaking the laws of war, and a more capable and honorable man had replaced him, this disaster might not have occurred for the British forces. The English Government only showed dissatisfaction with its officers' unprofessional conduct when they lost battles, never when they massacred defenseless people.
In this action, the Americans lost about fifty men killed or wounded. Among the killed was Colonel Whitley, a soldier of the Revolution, who had volunteered as a private. The British lost about a hundred and eighty killed or wounded, and nearly all the remainder were made prisoners. It was supposed that about a hundred and twenty Indians were killed; at least thirty-three were left dead on the field, and an unknown number carried away. Among the spoils of the victory were several brass cannon which had been captured with Burgoyne at Saratoga, surrendered by Hull at Detroit, and now came a second time into the hands of the Americans.
In this battle, the Americans lost about fifty men either killed or wounded. Among the deceased was Colonel Whitley, a soldier from the Revolution, who had volunteered as a private. The British suffered around a hundred and eighty killed or wounded, and almost all the rest were taken prisoner. It was estimated that about a hundred and twenty Indians were killed; at least thirty-three were left dead on the battlefield, and an unknown number were taken away. Among the trophies of the victory were several brass cannons that had been captured with Burgoyne at Saratoga, surrendered by Hull at Detroit, and were once again in the hands of the Americans.
Harrison destroyed Moravian Town the day after the battle, and then marched back to Detroit. Proctor had the good taste to send a flag of truce, requesting that the prisoners be humanely treated. As General Harrison had already given up his own 148tent to some of the wounded British officers, it is probable that they were.
Harrison destroyed Moravian Town the day after the battle, and then marched back to Detroit. Proctor had the decency to send a flag of truce, asking that the prisoners be treated humanely. Since General Harrison had already given up his own 148tent to some of the wounded British officers, it's likely that they were.
By this brief and brilliant campaign, Harrison destroyed the British power in that part of Canada, restored the territory of Michigan to the United States, killed the great Indian leader who had been the most dangerous enemy of the Americans in the West, separated the tribes that had been assisting the English, and compelled some of them to make peace on his own terms. At Detroit he discharged Shelby's volunteers, gave the place a garrison of a thousand men, restored civil law, and made General Cass provisional governor of the territory. Three weeks later, he and the remainder of his troops were taken on board Perry's fleet and carried to Buffalo.
Through this short but impactful campaign, Harrison eliminated British power in that area of Canada, returned Michigan to the United States, killed the major Native American leader who was the biggest threat to Americans in the West, divided the tribes that had been aiding the British, and forced some of them to make peace on his terms. In Detroit, he released Shelby's volunteers, stationed a garrison of a thousand men there, reinstated civil law, and appointed General Cass as provisional governor of the territory. Three weeks later, he and the rest of his troops were taken aboard Perry's fleet and transported to Buffalo.
On the same day that the battle of the Thames was fought, Commodore Chauncey, in pursuit of Yeo's fleet on Lake Ontario, captured a cutter and four transports, on board of which were two hundred and sixty-four British officers and soldiers.
On the same day that the battle of the Thames took place, Commodore Chauncey, chasing Yeo's fleet on Lake Ontario, captured a cutter and four transports, which had two hundred and sixty-four British officers and soldiers on board.
CHAPTER IX. WILKINSON'S EXPEDITION.
149
Armstrong's Plans—Position of the Troops—Descent of the St. Lawrence—Battle of Chrysler's Field—Hampton's Defeat—Cost of the Campaign—Effects on the Niagara Frontier—Capture of Fort Niagara—Destruction of Buffalo and other Villages.
Armstrong's Plans—Position of the Troops—Descent of the St. Lawrence—Battle of Chrysler's Field—Hampton's Defeat—Cost of the Campaign—Effects on the Niagara Frontier—Capture of Fort Niagara—Destruction of Buffalo and other Villages.
The final military operations of this year on the northern border were the most disappointing, and on the whole the most disgraceful, of any that had been undertaken. General John Armstrong had become Secretary of War early in the year, and in February had submitted a plan, which the President at once approved, for the conquest of Canada by means of an expedition against Montreal.
The last military operations this year on the northern border were the most disappointing and, overall, the most disgraceful compared to any that had been carried out. General John Armstrong became Secretary of War early in the year and, in February, proposed a plan that the President immediately approved for the conquest of Canada through an expedition against Montreal.
Armstrong had seen service in the Revolution, and was the author of the anonymous "Newburg Addresses," which had given Washington so much trouble. Although he planned the expedition in February, he allowed the entire summer to go by before attempting its execution, and it set out in October, the worst time of year for such an undertaking. The first requisite for any military movement is, that it shall be under the supreme command of some one man. But the left wing of the army 150which was to make this one was commanded by General James Wilkinson, at Sackett's Harbor, while the right wing was under General Wade Hampton, at Plattsburg, and between these two officers there was not only no cordial friendship, but a positive jealousy that rendered it almost impossible for them to act in concert. Although Wilkinson was the ranking officer, Hampton maintained that his own must be considered as a separate and independent command, and himself not subordinate to anybody but the Secretary of War. He thus put in practice on a small scale a vicious principle whose advocacy on a vastly larger scale has since given some of his descendants an unenviable prominence.
Armstrong had served in the Revolution and was the author of the anonymous "Newburg Addresses," which had caused Washington so much trouble. Although he planned the expedition in February, he let the whole summer pass before trying to carry it out, and it started in October, the worst time of year for such an undertaking. The first requirement for any military movement is that it should be under the supreme command of one person. But the left wing of the army 150that was supposed to make this one was commanded by General James Wilkinson at Sackett's Harbor, while the right wing was under General Wade Hampton at Plattsburg, and between these two officers, there was not only no friendly relationship, but a clear jealousy that made it almost impossible for them to work together. Although Wilkinson was the senior officer, Hampton insisted that his own command should be treated as a separate and independent command, and that he was not subordinate to anyone except the Secretary of War. In doing so, he put into practice on a small scale a harmful principle whose promotion on a much larger scale has since made some of his descendants unavoidably infamous.
So old a soldier as Armstrong should have known that the first thing necessary to the success of his scheme was the removal of one or the other of these officers, and conferring upon some one general the absolute command of all forces that were to take part in it. As he had stationed himself and his War Department at Sackett's Harbor, he perhaps imagined that he could direct the expedition from there, and, holding both generals subordinate to himself, cause the two wings to act in concert. If so, he was wofully mistaken. A man sixty years of age, who owned three thousand slaves and was accustomed to no check upon his least caprice, who 151now had four thousand troops under his command —a large number in that war—and was distant a hundred and fifty miles from his superior, with a wilderness between, could not be expected to hold himself subordinate to anybody.
So seasoned a soldier as Armstrong should have known that the first thing necessary for his plan to succeed was to remove one of the officers and give one general absolute command over all the forces involved. Since he had positioned himself and his War Department at Sackett's Harbor, he probably thought he could manage the expedition from there, controlling both generals and coordinating their efforts. If that was his thought, he was completely mistaken. A man sixty years old, who owned three thousand slaves and was used to having no limits on his whims, who now had four thousand troops under his command—a significant number in that war—and was a hundred and fifty miles away from his superior, with a wilderness in between, could not be expected to stay subordinate to anyone.
General Wilkinson had removed most of the troops from Fort George on the Niagara, taking them down the lake, and he now had a total force of about eight thousand men. The right wing, under Hampton, numbered half as many more. The final plan was, to move down the St. Lawrence with Wilkinson's force, while Hampton's moved northward to unite with it at or near the mouth of the Chateaugua; the combined force then to strike for Montreal. Wilkinson rendezvoused his troops at Grenadier Island, eighteen miles below Sackett's Harbor, near the point where the waters of the lake find their outlet in the St. Lawrence. The British were apprised of the movement, and drew a large force from the Niagara frontier to Kingston, supposing that was to be the point of attack; and indeed this had been the first intention of the Americans. To strengthen this impression on the part of the enemy, and induce him to hold his forces at Kingston as long as possible, Wilkinson appointed a second rendezvous at the mouth of French Creek, eighteen miles farther down. The command of the 152advance was given to General Jacob Brown, who had successfully defended Sackett's Harbor in May. On the 1st and 2d of November the British squadron attacked the advance, but without effecting anything.
General Wilkinson had pulled most of the troops from Fort George on the Niagara and relocated them down the lake, now commanding a total of around eight thousand men. The right wing, led by Hampton, included about half as many more. The final plan was to advance down the St. Lawrence with Wilkinson's force, while Hampton's moved north to join up near the mouth of the Chateaugua; together, they would then head for Montreal. Wilkinson gathered his troops at Grenadier Island, eighteen miles below Sackett's Harbor, near where the lake's waters flow into the St. Lawrence. The British were informed of the movement, pulling a large force from the Niagara frontier to Kingston, assuming that would be the target; in fact, that had been the Americans' initial plan. To reinforce this belief and keep British forces stationed at Kingston as long as possible, Wilkinson set a second meeting point at the mouth of French Creek, eighteen miles further down. General Jacob Brown, who had successfully defended Sackett's Harbor in May, was put in charge of the advance. On November 1st and 2nd, the British squadron attacked the advance but achieved nothing.
On the 5th Wilkinson's entire force moved down the St. Lawrence. They occupied more than three hundred boats, which made a procession five miles long. At Prescott the river was commanded by British batteries, and to avoid them Wilkinson debarked his troops and stores a short distance above that place, and sent them by land to Red Mill, some distance below. The boats were run by the batteries at night, and escaped injury, though under a heavy fire for a considerable time.
On the 5th, Wilkinson's entire force moved down the St. Lawrence. They used over three hundred boats, which formed a procession five miles long. At Prescott, the river was under the control of British batteries, so to avoid them, Wilkinson unloaded his troops and supplies a short distance upstream and sent them by land to Red Mill, which was farther down. The boats passed by the batteries at night and avoided damage, even though they were under heavy fire for quite a while.
But it was found that the enemy had planted batteries at several other places, to obstruct and if possible destroy the flotilla. Colonel Alexander Macomb was ordered to cross the river with twelve hundred of the best troops in the army, and, marching down the north bank, abreast of the flotilla, drive away or capture the gunners. In this task he was assisted by Forsyth's riflemen, who crossed a little later. The cavalry and Brown's brigade passed over next day.
But it was discovered that the enemy had set up artillery in multiple locations to block and, if possible, destroy the flotilla. Colonel Alexander Macomb was instructed to cross the river with twelve hundred of the best troops in the army and, marching down the north bank alongside the flotilla, drive away or capture the gunners. He was supported in this mission by Forsyth's riflemen, who crossed a little later. The cavalry and Brown's brigade crossed over the next day.
They found plenty of fighting to do, though of a desultory kind. There was a battery at nearly 153every narrow place in the river, and small parties of the enemy were continually hanging on the rear of the Americans, firing whenever they found a chance. Eight miles below Hamilton, Macomb had a fight with a party strongly posted in a block-house, and succeeded in driving them out.
They found a lot of fighting to do, though it was pretty scattered. There was a battery at almost every narrow spot in the river, and small groups of the enemy were constantly trailing behind the Americans, firing whenever they got the chance. Eight miles below Hamilton, Macomb had a clash with a group that was strongly positioned in a blockhouse and managed to push them out.
Meanwhile General De Rottenburg, who had come down to Kingston from Queenstown, sent a force of fifteen hundred men, with two schooners and seven gunboats, to follow the expedition and attack its rear guard at every opportunity. It was Commodore Chauncey's duty to prevent any British force from leaving the harbor of Kingston at this time; but unaccountably he failed to do it. On the 9th the American riflemen had a brisk skirmish with a body of Canadian militia and Indians, and finally drove them off.
Meanwhile, General De Rottenburg, who had arrived in Kingston from Queenstown, sent a force of fifteen hundred men, along with two schooners and seven gunboats, to trail the expedition and attack its rear guard whenever possible. It was Commodore Chauncey's responsibility to stop any British force from leaving the harbor of Kingston at this time, but for some unknown reason, he didn't manage to do it. On the 9th, the American riflemen engaged in a lively skirmish with a group of Canadian militia and Indians, ultimately driving them away.
By the 10th the Long Rapid was reached, and Wilkinson put most of his men ashore, that the boats might shoot the rapid with greater safety. That evening the British gun-boats came up and opened a cannonade upon the barges, which for a time threatened to destroy them. But the Americans took two eighteen-pounders ashore, and improvised a battery, with which they soon drove off the gun-boats.
By the 10th, they reached the Long Rapid, and Wilkinson sent most of his men ashore so the boats could navigate the rapid more safely. That evening, the British gunboats arrived and started firing at the barges, putting them at risk of being destroyed. However, the Americans brought two eighteen-pound cannons ashore and quickly set up a makeshift battery, which allowed them to drive off the gunboats.
The troops were encamped on the farm of John Chrysler, a captain in the British service, a short distance below Williamsburg. On the morning of the 11th it was found that the enemy had taken a position close in the rear, in battle order, his left resting on a swamp, and his right on the river, where his gun-boats were moored. His line was well placed, and he had three pieces of artillery in position. As General Wilkinson was too ill to take the field, or even rise from his bed, the command of the American forces devolved upon General John Parker Boyd. Boyd, now about fifty years of age, had entered the United States service as early as 1786, but later had been a soldier of fortune in India, raising and equipping there, at his own expense, a force of fifteen hundred men, and selling their services to the highest bidder. Still later he returned to the United States, and was with Harrison at the battle of Tippecanoe.
The troops were camped on the farm of John Chrysler, a captain in the British army, just a short distance from Williamsburg. On the morning of the 11th, it was discovered that the enemy had positioned themselves close behind, ready for battle, with their left side near a swamp and their right by the river, where their gunboats were docked. Their line was strategically set up, and they had three pieces of artillery ready. Since General Wilkinson was too ill to go into the field or even get out of bed, command of the American forces fell to General John Parker Boyd. Boyd, now around fifty years old, had joined the United States service as early as 1786, but later became a mercenary in India, raising and outfitting a force of fifteen hundred men at his own expense and selling their services to the highest bidder. Eventually, he returned to the United States and fought alongside Harrison at the battle of Tippecanoe.
Orders were given to drive back the enemy, and General Robert Swartwout's brigade dashed into the woods and routed the British advance, which fell back upon the main body. The brigade of General 155Leonard Covington supported Swartwout's, attacking the British right while Swartwout attacked the left. It was a cold, raw day, and part of the time there was snow and sleet in the air. There were charges and counter-charges, the contending columns alternately advancing and retiring across ploughed fields, where the men were often up to their knees in mud. All the romance of war was lacking, while all its disagreeable elements were present in full force. There were wounds enough, and death enough, and misery enough, and, as it proved, no decisive or profitable victory for either side. The Americans had the greater number of men, but this advantage was fully counterbalanced by the fact that they were, the attacking party, and there were several deep ravines which they could not cross with their artillery to bring it into use, while the British used their own guns throughout the action.
Orders were issued to push back the enemy, and General Robert Swartwout's brigade charged into the woods and routed the British advance, which retreated to the main body. General 155Leonard Covington’s brigade backed Swartwout’s, attacking the British right while Swartwout hit the left. It was a cold, dreary day, with snow and sleet falling at times. There were charges and counter-charges, with the opposing forces alternately advancing and falling back across plowed fields, where the soldiers often sank up to their knees in mud. All the romantic notions of war were absent, while every unpleasant aspect was on full display. There were plenty of injuries, a significant amount of death, and a lot of suffering, and, as it turned out, no clear or beneficial victory for either side. The Americans had more soldiers, but this advantage was completely offset by the fact that they were the attackers, and there were several deep ravines that prevented them from moving their artillery into action, while the British were able to use their own guns throughout the battle.
The attack was spirited and determined, and seemed likely to succeed; but after a while the American right wing found its ammunition exhausted, and about the same time the left was discouraged and thrown into some confusion by the fall of General Covington, mortally wounded. The enemy now massed troops on his right wing, and pressed forward heavily, so that he captured one of the American guns; a charge of cavalry under Adjutant156General Walbach, and the coolness and bravery of Captain Armstrong Irvine, being all that prevented him from seizing the others.
The attack was energetic and determined, and it looked like it might succeed; however, after a while, the American right wing ran out of ammunition, and around the same time, the left became discouraged and thrown into some chaos by the death of General Covington, who was mortally wounded. The enemy then concentrated their troops on their right wing and pushed forward aggressively, capturing one of the American guns. A cavalry charge led by Adjutant156General Walbach, along with the composure and bravery of Captain Armstrong Irvine, was all that prevented them from taking the others.
For two hours longer the contest swayed to and fro across the miry fields for the distance of a mile, till the Americans brought up a reserve of six hundred men under Lieutenant-Colonel Upham, by which order was restored and the line firmly established, to await the next onset of the enemy. But no further assault was made, and in the night the Americans retired unmolested to their boats.
For two more hours, the battle swung back and forth across the muddy fields for about a mile, until the Americans brought in a reserve of six hundred men led by Lieutenant-Colonel Upham. This helped to restore order and secure the line, preparing for the next attack from the enemy. However, no further attack occurred, and during the night, the Americans withdrew safely to their boats.
This action is sometimes called the battle of Williamsburg, sometimes the battle of Chrysler's Field. Both sides claimed the victory, and there has been much dispute both as to the number of men engaged and as to the losses. The British probably had a thousand men, including Indians; the Americans seventeen hundred. General Wilkinson reported a loss of one hundred and two killed, and two hundred and thirty-seven wounded—one man in five. The British loss was reported at one hundred and eighty-eight killed, wounded, or missing—nearly one in five. Among the American officers who distinguished themselves on this field was Lieutenant William J. Worth, who afterward rose to eminence as a major-general.
This action is sometimes referred to as the battle of Williamsburg and sometimes as the battle of Chrysler's Field. Both sides claimed victory, and there has been a lot of debate about the number of troops involved and the casualties. The British likely had about a thousand men, including Native Americans, while the Americans had around seventeen hundred. General Wilkinson reported a loss of one hundred and two killed and two hundred and thirty-seven wounded—about one in five. The British loss was reported at one hundred and eighty-eight killed, wounded, or missing—also nearly one in five. Among the American officers who stood out on this battlefield was Lieutenant William J. Worth, who later became notable as a major-general.
Disregarding the military maxim which forbids an 157invading army to leave an enemy in its rear, Wilkinson next day passed down the Long Rapids with his whole force, and near Cornwall was joined by General Brown, who had been sent forward to attack the post at the foot of the rapids. This had been done by a fight at Hoophole Creek, where about eight hundred of Brown's men, under the immediate command of Colonel Scott, had defeated an equal number of the enemy and taken many prisoners.
Disregarding the military rule that prevents an invading army from leaving an enemy behind, Wilkinson moved down the Long Rapids the next day with his entire force. Near Cornwall, he met up with General Brown, who had been sent ahead to attack the post at the base of the rapids. This occurred after a battle at Hoophole Creek, where about eight hundred of Brown's troops, led by Colonel Scott, defeated an equal number of enemy soldiers and captured many prisoners.
But here a courier arrived at Wilkinson's headquarters, bringing a letter from General Hampton, in which he announced that he would not join the expedition as ordered, or attempt to invade Canada any farther.
But then a courier arrived at Wilkinson's headquarters, delivering a letter from General Hampton, in which he stated that he would not be joining the expedition as instructed, nor would he attempt to invade Canada any further.
The truth was, Hampton had moved down the Chateaugua with about four thousand men, intending to join Wilkinson. He was opposed by a force of about one thousand, including Indians, commanded by Lieutenant-Colonel De Salaberry. The active opposition began at a point where the road passed through a forest. Here the enemy had felled trees across the line of march, constructed abattis, and posted light troops and Indians in the woods. But Hampton sent a regiment to turn the enemy's flank and occupy the open country in the rear, while strong working parties opened a new road by a de158tour, enabling his whole force to follow, and thus the first obstruction was skilfully passed.
The reality was that Hampton had moved down the Chateaugua with about four thousand men, planning to join Wilkinson. He faced a force of about one thousand, including Native Americans, led by Lieutenant-Colonel De Salaberry. The main conflict started where the road went through a forest. Here, the enemy had cut down trees across the path, built barricades, and stationed light troops and Native Americans in the woods. However, Hampton sent a regiment to flank the enemy and take over the open land behind them while strong work teams created a new road by a de158tour, allowing his entire force to proceed, and thus, the first obstacle was skillfully overcome.
But eight or ten miles in advance a more formidable obstacle was encountered. Here was another forest, in which the enemy had constructed not only abattis but timber breastworks, and planted artillery. The guides assured Hampton that the river, along whose bank his route lay, was fordable opposite the enemy's flank. He thereupon formed an elaborate plan for sending a force to ford the stream above, march to a point below the enemy, ford again, and fall on his flank and rear; while the main body was to attack in front when the firing was heard. The detachment was commanded by Colonel Purdy, who afterward said it "was intrusted to the guidance of men, each of whom repeatedly assured him [Hampton] that they were not acquainted with the country, and were not competent to direct such an expedition; while at the same time he had a man who had a perfect knowledge of the country, whom he promised to send, but which he neglected to do."
But eight or ten miles ahead, a more serious challenge was faced. There was another forest, where the enemy had built not only barriers but also wooden fortifications and set up artillery. The guides assured Hampton that the river, which ran along his route, was shallow enough to cross near the enemy’s flank. He then created a detailed plan to send a group to cross the river upstream, march to a point downstream of the enemy, cross again, and attack from the side and behind; while the main force would engage from the front once the firing started. The detachment was led by Colonel Purdy, who later said it "was entrusted to the guidance of men, each of whom repeatedly assured him [Hampton] that they were not familiar with the area and were not capable of directing such a mission; all the while, he had a man who knew the territory perfectly, whom he promised to send, but failed to do so."
The detachment, which left camp in the evening of October 25th, crossed the stream, and soon got lost in a hemlock swamp, where it wandered about in the darkness, sometimes doubling on its tracks, so that the two ends of the column would come in con159tact with each other and wonder whether they had met friend or foe. As might have been expected, it completely failed to find the lower ford.
The group, which left camp on the evening of October 25th, crossed the stream and quickly got lost in a hemlock swamp, where it wandered around in the dark, occasionally retracing its steps. This caused the front and back of the column to come into contact with each other, leaving them unsure if they had encountered friends or enemies. As expected, they totally failed to find the lower crossing.
In the afternoon of the 26th, though nothing had been heard from the detachment, the main force moved against the works in front. De Salaberry boldly threw forward a force to meet it, resting his left on the river and his right on a thick wood, in the edge of which he posted a body of Indians. The cracking of rifles began at once, and sharp and persistent fighting ensued. Slowly and steadily the Americans, under the immediate command of General George Izard, pressed back this advance upon the main body of the enemy. But at this point the detachment across the river encountered a detachment of British troops. Purdy's advance guard was driven back, and then fire was opened upon him by a concealed body of militia, which threw him into confusion and caused a disorderly retreat. At the same time, Hampton was deceived by a ruse of De Salaberry's, who had placed buglers at several points in the woods, with orders to sound an advance. Thoroughly disconcerted, and perhaps frightened by this failure of his plan, and the supposed onset of a great force of the enemy, Hampton at once withdrew his troops and abandoned the attack, falling back soon afterward to Chateaugua Four Corners. 160He had lost about forty men killed or wounded; the enemy about twenty-five.
In the afternoon of the 26th, even though there hadn’t been any updates from the detachment, the main force advanced towards the enemy works. De Salaberry confidently sent out a force to meet them, anchoring his left on the river and his right on a dense woods, where he stationed a group of Indians. The sound of gunfire erupted immediately, leading to intense and ongoing combat. Gradually, the Americans, under General George Izard’s direct command, pushed back this assault on the main enemy body. However, at that moment, the detachment across the river faced a group of British troops. Purdy’s advance guard was forced back, and then a hidden unit of militia opened fire on him, causing chaos and a disorganized retreat. At the same time, Hampton fell for a trick by De Salaberry, who had set up buglers at several points in the woods with instructions to sound an advance. Completely thrown off and likely alarmed by his plan’s failure and the assumed approach of a large enemy force, Hampton immediately pulled back his troops and abandoned the attack, soon retreating to Chateaugua Four Corners. 160 He had lost about forty men, either killed or wounded; the enemy lost around twenty-five.
On learning of the defection of Hampton, Wilkinson called a council of war, the result of which was a determination to ascend Salmon River and go into winter quarters. Thus ended ingloriously one more of the ill-advised and ill-managed attempts to conquer Lower Canada.
Upon hearing about Hampton’s defect, Wilkinson called a war council, which decided to head up Salmon River and settle in for the winter. This marked the shameful end of yet another poorly planned and mismanaged effort to take over Lower Canada.
The cost of these campaigns had been enormous to both belligerents. The Americans had spent about two and a half million dollars in building vessels on lakes Erie, Ontario, and Champlain; which was a large sum for that day, and yet was small in comparison with the incidental cost of maintaining considerable bodies of troops in idleness through a whole summer while waiting for the fleets to be built. It was estimated that the conveyance of each cannon to Sackett's Harbor had cost a thousand dollars. The flour for Harrison's army, by the time it reached the troops, had cost a hundred dollars a barrel. There were long distances through the wilderness of Western New York and Northern Ohio where supplies could only be carried on packhorses, half a barrel to a horse, and other horses had to follow with forage for those that were carrying the supplies. Most of the horses were used up by a single trip. Of four thousand used in carrying provisions 161to Harrison, but eight hundred were alive the next spring. In Canada the hardships of war rested heavily upon the people as well as the soldiers. All their salt had come from the United States, and what little there was on that side of the border when communication with this country ceased was held at a dollar a quart. At Kingston flour was thirty dollars a barrel. So scarce were provisions of all kinds, that the Government appointed commissioners to determine how much food each family should be permitted to consume. In the British camps, lean cattle were killed to prevent their starving to death, and then the meat was eaten by the soldiers. In later wars we have often succeeded in shooting more men, but seldom in producing more misery.
The cost of these campaigns was tremendous for both sides. The Americans spent around two and a half million dollars building ships on Lakes Erie, Ontario, and Champlain, which was a significant amount back then, but still seemed small compared to the ongoing expenses of keeping large groups of soldiers inactive all summer while waiting for the fleets to be completed. It was estimated that transporting each cannon to Sackett's Harbor cost about a thousand dollars. By the time the flour reached Harrison's army, it had cost a hundred dollars per barrel. There were long stretches through the wilderness of Western New York and Northern Ohio where supplies could only be moved using packhorses, with each horse carrying half a barrel, while other horses followed carrying feed for those with the supplies. Most of the horses were exhausted after just one trip. Out of the four thousand used to deliver provisions to Harrison, only eight hundred survived by the following spring. In Canada, the burdens of war affected the people just as much as the soldiers. All their salt came from the United States, and the little that was left on their side of the border, after communication with the U.S. stopped, was being sold for a dollar a quart. In Kingston, flour cost thirty dollars a barrel. Provisions of all kinds were so limited that the Government appointed commissioners to decide how much food each family could have. In the British camps, they had to kill lean cattle to prevent them from starving, and then the soldiers ate the meat. In later conflicts, we have often been more effective at inflicting casualties, but rarely have we created more suffering.
The withdrawal of troops from the Niagara frontier to take part in Wilkinson's expedition left the defence of that line almost entirely to militia, and the term for which the militia had been called out expired on the 9th of December. The next day General George McClure, who had been left in command at Fort George, found himself at the head of but sixty effective men, while the British General Drummond had brought up to the peninsula four hundred troops and seventy Indians—released by the failure of Wilkinson's expedition—and was preparing to attack him. 162McClure thereupon determined to evacuate the fort, as the only alternative from capture or destruction, and remove his men and stores across the river to Fort Niagara. He also determined to burn the village of Newark, that the enemy might find no shelter. The laudable part of this plan was but imperfectly carried out; he failed to destroy the barracks, and left unharmed tents for fifteen hundred men, several pieces of artillery, and a large quantity of ammunition, all of which fell into the hands of Drummond's men. But the inexcusable part—the burning of a village in midwinter, inhabited by noncombatants who had been guilty of no special offence—was only too faithfully executed. The inhabitants were given twelve hours in which to remove their goods, and then the torch was applied, and not a house was left standing.
The pullback of troops from the Niagara frontier to join Wilkinson's expedition left the defense of that area mostly to the militia, whose enlistment period ended on December 9th. The following day, General George McClure, who was in charge at Fort George, found himself leading only sixty effective soldiers, while British General Drummond had brought four hundred troops and seventy Native Americans—released due to Wilkinson's failed expedition—and was getting ready to launch an attack. McClure decided to evacuate the fort, as it was the only option to avoid capture or destruction, and to move his men and supplies across the river to Fort Niagara. He also planned to burn the village of Newark so that the enemy wouldn't have any shelter. Unfortunately, the more commendable parts of this plan were not executed well; he failed to destroy the barracks and left undamaged tents for fifteen hundred men, several artillery pieces, and a large amount of ammunition, all of which were captured by Drummond's forces. However, the unacceptable part—burning a village in the middle of winter, home to civilians who had committed no particular wrongdoing—was carried out flawlessly. The residents were given twelve hours to remove their belongings, and then the fire was set, leaving no house standing.
This needless cruelty produced its natural result; Drummond determined upon swift and ample retaliation. In the night of December 18th, just one week after the burning of Newark, he threw across the Niagara a force of five hundred and fifty men. They landed at Five Mile Meadows, three miles above Fort Niagara, and marched upon it at once, arriving there at four o'clock in the morning. McClure, who had received an intimation of the enemy's intention to devastate the American fron163tier, had gone to Buffalo to raise a force to oppose him. The garrison of the fort consisted of about four hundred and fifty men, a large number of whom were in the hospital. The command had been left to a Captain Leonard, who at this time was three miles away, sleeping at a farm-house.
This unnecessary cruelty led to a predictable response; Drummond decided on quick and strong retaliation. On the night of December 18th, just one week after the burning of Newark, he sent a force of five hundred and fifty men across the Niagara. They landed at Five Mile Meadows, three miles above Fort Niagara, and immediately marched toward it, arriving at four o'clock in the morning. McClure, who had gotten a tip about the enemy's plan to attack the American frontier, had gone to Buffalo to gather a force to fight back. The fort's garrison had about four hundred and fifty men, many of whom were in the hospital. The command was left to Captain Leonard, who was three miles away at that time, sleeping at a farm.
The most elaborate preparations had been made for the capture of the fort, including scaling-ladders for mounting the bastions. But the Americans seemed to have studied to make the task as easy as possible. The sentries were seized and silenced before they could give any alarm, and the main gate was found standing wide open, so that the British had only to walk straight in and begin at once the stabbing which had been determined upon.
The most detailed plans were made for capturing the fort, including climbing ladders to scale the walls. However, the Americans appeared to have made the task straightforward. The guards were taken out and silenced before they could raise any alarm, and the main gate was found wide open, allowing the British to simply walk in and start the stabbing they had planned.
The guard in the south-east block-house fired one volley, by which the British commander, Colonel Murray, was wounded, and a portion of the invalids made what resistance they could. A British lieutenant and five men were killed, and a surgeon and three men wounded. Sixty-five Americans, two thirds of whom were invalids, were bayoneted in their beds; fifteen others, who had taken refuge in the cellars, were despatched in the same manner, and fourteen were wounded; twenty escaped, and all the others, about three hundred and forty, were made prisoners. Some accounts say also that the 164women, in the fort were treated with great cruelty and indignity.
The guard in the southeast blockhouse fired one shot, injuring the British commander, Colonel Murray, while some of the invalid soldiers tried to defend themselves as best as they could. A British lieutenant and five men were killed, and a surgeon along with three men were wounded. Sixty-five Americans, two thirds of whom were invalids, were bayoneted in their beds; fifteen others, who had taken refuge in the cellars, were also killed in the same way, and fourteen were wounded. Twenty managed to escape, while around three hundred and forty were captured. Some reports also say that the 164women in the fort were treated with extreme cruelty and disrespect.
On the same morning, General Riall, with a detachment of British troops and five hundred Indians, crossed from Queenstown and attacked Lewiston. The small force of Americans here, under Major Bennett, fought till they were surrounded, and then cut their way out through the enemy, losing eight men. The village was then plundered and burned, the savages adding all the atrocities characteristic of their mode of warfare.
On the same morning, General Riall, along with a group of British troops and five hundred Native Americans, crossed from Queenstown and attacked Lewiston. The small American force there, led by Major Bennett, fought until they were surrounded, and then carved their way through the enemy, losing eight men. The village was then looted and burned, with the attackers committing all the brutal acts typical of their style of warfare.
Riall next marched his troops through the villages of Youngstown, Tuscarora, and Manchester (now Niagara Falls), and plundered and burned them all, while the terror-stricken inhabitants were butchered or driven away. Nor was the devastation confined to the villages. For several miles from the river, the houses and barns of the farmers were destroyed, and the women and children either killed or turned shelterless into the woods and fields.
Riall then led his troops through the villages of Youngstown, Tuscarora, and Manchester (now Niagara Falls), looting and burning them all, while the terrified residents were killed or driven away. The destruction didn't stop at the villages. For several miles from the river, farmers' homes and barns were demolished, and the women and children were either killed or left homeless in the woods and fields.
The bridge over Tonawanda Creek had been destroyed by the Americans, and at this point the enemy turned back, and soon recrossed the Niagara to the Canada side.
The bridge over Tonawanda Creek had been taken out by the Americans, and at that moment, the enemy retreated and soon crossed back over to the Canadian side of the Niagara.
The alarm at Buffalo brought General Hall, of the New York militia, to that village, where he arrived the day after Christmas. He found collected there 165a body of seventeen hundred men, whom it would have been gross flattery to call a "force." They were poorly supplied with arms and cartridges, and had no discipline and almost no organization. Another regiment of three hundred soon joined them, but without adding much to their efficiency.
The alert in Buffalo brought General Hall of the New York militia to the village the day after Christmas. He found about seventeen hundred men gathered there, who it would be an exaggeration to call a "force." They were poorly equipped with weapons and ammunition, and they had no discipline or nearly any organization. Another regiment of three hundred soon joined them, but it didn’t significantly improve their effectiveness.
On the 28th of December, Drummond reconnoitred the American camp, and determined to attack it; for which purpose he sent over General Riall on the evening of the 29th with fourteen hundred and fifty men, largely regulars, and a body of Indians. One detachment landed two miles below Black Rock, crossed Canajokaties Creek in the face of a slight resistance, and took possession of a battery. The remainder landed at a point between Buffalo and Black Rock, under cover of a battery on the Canadian shore. Poor as Hall's troops were, they stood long enough to fire upon the invaders and inflict considerable loss.
On December 28th, Drummond surveyed the American camp and decided to attack. To prepare for this, he sent General Riall over on the evening of the 29th with 1,450 men, mostly regular soldiers, along with a group of Indians. One detachment landed two miles below Black Rock, crossed Canajokaties Creek despite some minor resistance, and took control of a battery. The rest landed at a point between Buffalo and Black Rock, shielded by a battery on the Canadian side. Although Hall's troops were not strong, they held their ground long enough to fire at the attackers and cause significant damage.
As the enemy landed here and formed in battle order, Hall with his raw militia attacked both wings and for a short time made a gallant fight, especially on the American left, where Lieutenant-Colonel Blakeslie handled four hundred Ontario county men remarkably well and disputed the ground with great firmness. Both sides had artillery, with which the action was opened. As it progressed, however, the 166American line was broken in the centre, and Hall was compelled to fall back. His subsequent attempts to rally his men were of no avail, and he himself seems to have lost heart; as Lieutenant Riddle, who had about eighty regulars, offered to place them in front for the encouragement of the militia to new exertion, but Hall declined. Riddle then offered, if Hall would give him two hundred men, to attempt to save the village from destruction, and at least to bring away the women and children, that they might not fall under the tomahawk and scalping-knife; but even this the General refused, and the village was then left to its fate, though Riddle went in with his own men and rescued the contents of the arsenal and some other property.
As the enemy landed and organized for battle, Hall and his inexperienced militia launched an attack on both flanks and briefly fought bravely, especially on the American left, where Lieutenant-Colonel Blakeslie effectively commanded four hundred men from Ontario County and held the ground strongly. Both sides had artillery, which initiated the fight. However, as the battle continued, the 166American line was broken in the center, forcing Hall to retreat. His later attempts to rally his troops were unsuccessful, and he seemed to lose confidence; Lieutenant Riddle, who had about eighty regulars, offered to position them in front to motivate the militia to fight again, but Hall declined. Riddle then suggested that if Hall would provide him with two hundred men, he would try to save the village from being destroyed and at least evacuate the women and children to protect them from the tomahawk and scalping knife; but even this the General refused, leaving the village to its fate, although Riddle went in with his own men and managed to rescue the arsenal's contents and some other property.
Both Buffalo and Black Rock were sacked and burned, and no mercy was shown. With but two or three exceptions, those of the inhabitants who were not able to run away were massacred, many of them being first submitted to torture and indignity. It is related that in Buffalo a widow named St. John "had the address to appease the ferocity of the enemy so far as to remain in her house uninjured." Her house and the stone jail were the only buildings not laid in ashes. In Black Rock every building was either burned or blown up, except one log house, in which a few women and children had taken refuge. 167Whether they had the peculiar address necessary to "appease the ferocity of the enemy," or were merely overlooked, is not recorded. Five vessels lying at the wharves were also burned.
Both Buffalo and Black Rock were attacked and set on fire, showing no mercy. With only a couple of exceptions, those residents who couldn't escape were killed, many of them enduring torture and humiliation first. It's said that in Buffalo, a widow named St. John "managed to calm the enemy's rage enough to stay safe in her house." Her home and the stone jail were the only structures that weren’t destroyed. In Black Rock, every building was either burned or blown up, except for one log cabin where a few women and children found refuge. 167 Whether they had the special skill needed to "calm the enemy's rage," or were just missed, isn't recorded. Five ships docked at the wharves were also set on fire.
In this expedition the British lost a hundred and eight men, killed, wounded, or missing. More than fifty of the Americans were found dead on the field. Truly, an abundant revenge had been taken for the burning of Newark. McClure, who had given the provocation for these atrocities, was an Irishman, and the absurdity of his whole course in the matter seemed calculated to justify the common sarcasms levelled against his countrymen for want of foresight.
In this expedition, the British lost one hundred and eight men—killed, wounded, or missing. More than fifty Americans were found dead on the battlefield. Truly, a significant revenge had been taken for the burning of Newark. McClure, who had provoked these atrocities, was Irish, and the ridiculousness of his entire approach to the situation seemed to validate the common criticisms aimed at his countrymen for lacking foresight.
All that the Americans had gained on the northern frontier during the year 1813, with the exception of the territory of Michigan, restored by Harrison's victory, had now been lost, and on New Year's day of 1814 the settlers along the whole length of the Niagara—those of them who survived—were shivering beside the smouldering embers of their homes.
All that the Americans had gained on the northern frontier during 1813, except for the territory of Michigan, regained by Harrison's victory, had now been lost. On New Year's Day of 1814, the settlers along the entire length of the Niagara—those who survived—were huddled beside the smoldering ashes of their homes.
CHAPTER X. WAR IN THE SOUTH.
168
Engagement at Lewistown—Fight in Delaware Bay—Burning of Havre de Grace, Georgetown, and Fredericktown—Battle at Craney Island—Destruction of Hampton—Troubles with the Southern Indians—Fight at Burnt Corn Creek—Massacre at Fort Mims—Jackson's Campaign—Fights at Talluschatches, Talladega, the Hillabee Towns, Autosse, and Econochaca—Dale's Canoe Fight.
Engagement at Lewistown—Fight in Delaware Bay—Burning of Havre de Grace, Georgetown, and Fredericktown—Battle at Craney Island—Destruction of Hampton—Troubles with the Southern Indians—Fight at Burnt Corn Creek—Massacre at Fort Mims—Jackson's Campaign—Fights at Talluschatches, Talladega, the Hillabee Towns, Autosse, and Econochaca—Dale's Canoe Fight.
While these costly and almost useless campaigns were being fought at the North, the Southern States were not without their war experiences, which in some instances were quite as bloody. Along the southern Atlantic coast the British had a great advantage from their heavy war-ships, which blockaded-the harbors, ran into the navigable inlets, bombarded the towns, and sent parties ashore to plunder and burn. The militia did what they could to repel these incursions, and in some cases, by handling a few pieces of artillery skilfully, drove off the invaders. Lewistown, on Delaware Bay, was bombarded in April. The shells fell short, and the rockets went over the town, but many of the solid shot went through the houses, doing considerable damage. In May, a party of 169sailors sent ashore to get water for the squadron near Lewistown were spiritedly attacked by militia, and compelled to return to their ships with empty casks. A fortnight later a party was sent ashore for provisions, but was driven off by the vigilant militia before a mouthful had been obtained.
While these expensive and nearly pointless campaigns were happening up North, the Southern States were also experiencing the war, which in some cases was just as brutal. Along the southern Atlantic coast, the British had a significant advantage with their powerful warships, which blockaded the harbors, penetrated navigable inlets, bombarded towns, and sent troops ashore to loot and burn. The militia did what they could to fend off these attacks, and in some situations, they successfully drove off the invaders by skillfully operating a few pieces of artillery. Lewistown, on Delaware Bay, was bombarded in April. The shells fell short, and the rockets overshot the town, but many of the solid shots went through the houses, causing considerable damage. In May, a group of 169sailors sent ashore to gather water for the squadron near Lewistown was fiercely attacked by militia and forced to return to their ships empty-handed. Two weeks later, another group was sent ashore for supplies but was driven off by the watchful militia before they could grab even a single item.
On the 29th of July the British sloop-of-war Martin grounded in Delaware Bay, and eight gunboats and two sloops, commanded by Captain Angus, went down to attack her. They anchored within three quarters of a mile, and opened upon her with all their guns. The frigate Junon came to her assistance, and the cannonade was kept up for nearly two hours. The British sailors proved to be very poor gunners, in comparison with the Americans. Hardly a shot struck the gun-boats, while the sloop and the frigate were hulled at almost every discharge. At length the British manned their launches, barges, and cutters, to the number of ten, and pulled off to cut out some of the gun-boats at the end of the line. Eight of them attacked a single gun-boat commanded by Sailing-Master Shead, who used his sweeps to get his craft nearer the squadron, from which it had become separated, but all the while kept firing his twenty-four pounder at his pursuers, striking one or another of them with almost every shot. Finding they were rapidly gain170ing on him, he anchored and waited for them to attempt boarding. He gave them two more gunfuls, as they drew nigh, with terrible effect, when the piece became disabled. The barges completely surrounded the little gun-boat, and there was a desperate conflict hand-to-hand. But of course it could not last long. Shead's crew were soon overpowered, and the British flag waved triumphantly over his deck. Seven of the British sailors had been killed, and twelve wounded, while seven of Shead's men were wounded.
On July 29th, the British sloop-of-war Martin ran aground in Delaware Bay, and eight gunboats along with two sloops, led by Captain Angus, moved in to attack her. They anchored about three-quarters of a mile away and opened fire with all their guns. The frigate Junon came to help, and the cannon fire continued for nearly two hours. The British sailors turned out to be much worse at shooting compared to the Americans. Hardly a shot hit the gunboats, while the sloop and the frigate were struck nearly every time. Eventually, the British sent out ten launches, barges, and cutters to try to capture some of the gunboats at the end of the line. Eight of them went after a single gunboat commanded by Sailing-Master Shead, who used his oars to get closer to the squadron he had separated from, all while firing his twenty-four-pounder at his pursuers and hitting one or another nearly every time. Realizing they were quickly closing in on him, he anchored and waited for them to attempt to board. He fired two more rounds as they got closer, with devastating effect, until his cannon became disabled. The barges fully surrounded the small gunboat, leading to a desperate hand-to-hand fight. But of course, it couldn't last long. Shead's crew was quickly overpowered, and the British flag flew triumphantly over his deck. Seven British sailors were killed and twelve wounded, while seven of Shead's men were also wounded.
On the Chesapeake the Americans fared even worse. Early in the morning of the 3d of May, the British Admiral Cockburn sent a force in nineteen barges to destroy the town of Havre de Grace and ravage the country between it and Baltimore. A small battery had been erected for the defence of the place; but it was still dark when the enemy came, and the first notice the inhabitants had of his approach was given by the balls whistling through the houses. A panic and stampede ensued. But a few men ran to the battery, and fired at the barges till the British began to land, when they all joined in the flight, except an old man named O'Neill, who stood by one of the guns and continued to load and fire it till, in recoiling, it ran over his thigh and somewhat disabled him. He 171still had strength to get away, armed himself with two muskets, and tried in vain to rally the militia, but finally was taken prisoner. He and his companions at the battery had killed three of the enemy and wounded two.
On the Chesapeake, the Americans had an even tougher time. Early in the morning on May 3rd, British Admiral Cockburn sent a force in nineteen barges to destroy the town of Havre de Grace and devastate the land between it and Baltimore. A small battery had been set up to defend the area, but it was still dark when the enemy arrived, and the first sign the locals had of their approach was the sound of bullets whistling through their homes. Panic broke out, and people fled in all directions. Only a few men rushed to the battery and fired at the barges until the British began to land, at which point everyone ran away except for an old man named O'Neill, who stood by one of the guns and kept loading and firing until the gun recoiled and ran over his thigh, injuring him. He 171still managed to escape, grabbed two muskets, and tried unsuccessfully to rally the militia but ultimately was captured. He and the others at the battery had killed three enemy soldiers and wounded two.
As soon as the British forces had landed, fire was set to the houses not already destroyed by shells, while the sailors and marines went through them, smashing furniture, cutting open beds to feed the flames, insulting women, and spreading terror. One house only, filled with women, was spared after a special appeal to the Admiral. A church just outside of the town was gutted, farm-houses on the road to Baltimore were plundered, travellers were robbed, and bridges, furnaces, and mills were destroyed.
As soon as the British forces landed, they set fire to the houses that hadn't already been destroyed by shells, while the sailors and marines went through them, breaking furniture, ripping open beds to feed the flames, insulting women, and spreading fear. Only one house, filled with women, was spared after a special appeal to the Admiral. A church just outside the town was completely destroyed, farmhouses on the way to Baltimore were robbed, travelers were held up, and bridges, furnaces, and mills were wrecked.
The little villages of Georgetown and Fredericktown, Maryland, were the next spoil of the Admiral, who led the ravaging party in person. But he did not succeed in landing till his men in the boats had suffered severely from the fire of a battery manned by thirty-five militiamen, which was kept up steadily for half an hour. Not a house was left standing in either of the villages, and the enemy enriched themselves with all the plunder they could carry away.
The small villages of Georgetown and Fredericktown, Maryland, were the next targets of the Admiral, who personally led the raiding party. However, he didn't manage to land until his men in the boats had endured heavy fire from a battery staffed by thirty-five militiamen, which continued relentlessly for half an hour. Not a house was left standing in either village, and the enemy took whatever loot they could carry away.
About this time Admiral Warren, who had issued 172from Bermuda a proclamation declaring New York, Charleston, Port Royal, Savannah, and the whole of the Mississippi River under blockade—a paper blockade, at which both Americans and neutrals laughed—joined Admiral Cockburn, in the Chesapeake, and they determined to extend as far as possible the pillaging and burning of towns on the coast.
About this time, Admiral Warren, who had issued 172from Bermuda a proclamation declaring New York, Charleston, Port Royal, Savannah, and the entire Mississippi River under blockade—a paper blockade, which both Americans and neutrals found amusing—joined Admiral Cockburn in the Chesapeake, and they decided to extend the looting and burning of towns along the coast as much as they could.
The next one selected was Norfolk, Va. But the approach to the town was commanded by a battery on Craney Island, and this battery was promptly manned by a hundred American sailors, under command of Lieutenant Neale, of the navy, and fifty marines under Lieutenant Breckenridge. It was dawn of day on the 22d of June when four thousand British sailors and marines, in barges, came in sight of the island; and when they were fairly under the guns of the battery, it blazed out. The pieces were served rapidly and with such precision that many of the barges were cut clear in two, and their occupants would have been drowned had they not been promptly rescued by the others. The Admiral was in a boat fifty feet long, called the Centipede, and this was so riddled with shot that he and his crew had barely time to get out of it when it sank. Before this merciless and unremitting fire the squadron of barges at length retreated 173to the ships. At the same time, a body of eight hundred soldiers had been put ashore, to attack the town by land. But for them a force of Virginia volunteers, under Colonel Beatty, were waiting, with a well-placed battery of six guns. The enemy had not all landed when the battery opened upon them, with such effect that they retreated at once. A part of them took refuge in a house, from which they fired rockets at the battery-men; but an American gun-boat came up and sent a few twenty-four-pound balls crashing through the house, when the last of the enemy fled, making their way back to the fleet as speedily as possible.
The next place chosen was Norfolk, Virginia. But the approach to the town was secured by a battery on Craney Island, which was quickly staffed by a hundred American sailors led by Lieutenant Neale from the navy, and fifty marines under Lieutenant Breckenridge. It was dawn on June 22nd when four thousand British sailors and marines appeared in barges near the island; once they were within range of the battery's guns, it fired. The guns were operated quickly and accurately, cutting many of the barges clean in half, and their occupants would have drowned if they hadn’t been promptly rescued by others. The Admiral was in a fifty-foot long boat called the Centipede, which was so badly shot up that he and his crew barely had time to escape before it sank. After facing such relentless fire, the squadron of barges eventually retreated 173to their ships. At the same time, a group of eight hundred soldiers had been landed to attack the town from the land. Waiting for them was a force of Virginia volunteers under Colonel Beatty, positioned with a well-placed battery of six guns. The enemy had just begun to disembark when the battery fired on them with such impact that they immediately retreated. Some took refuge in a house, firing rockets at the battery's crew; however, an American gunboat arrived and sent a few twenty-four-pound cannonballs crashing through the house, forcing the last of the enemy to flee back to the fleet as quickly as possible.
Smarting under this defeat, the British commanders immediately planned the destruction of Hampton, eighteen miles from Norfolk, which they supposed would cut off communication between the latter place and the upper part of Virginia.
Feeling the sting of this defeat, the British commanders quickly devised a plan to destroy Hampton, located eighteen miles from Norfolk, believing it would sever communication between that area and the northern part of Virginia.
At daylight on the 25th, two thousand five hundred soldiers, commanded by Sir Sydney Beckwith, were landed several miles below Hampton, and marched on the town. At the same time, a squadron of boats, commanded by Admiral Cockburn and protected by the sloop-of-war Mohawk, drew up before the place and fired in rockets, shells, and solid shot. The entire garrison of the place consisted of six hundred and thirty-six men, com174manded by Major Crutchfield, who had seven pieces of artillery.
At dawn on the 25th, two thousand five hundred soldiers, led by Sir Sydney Beckwith, landed several miles south of Hampton and marched toward the town. At the same time, a squadron of boats, commanded by Admiral Cockburn and supported by the sloop-of-war Mohawk, positioned themselves in front of the town and fired rockets, shells, and solid shots. The entire garrison consisted of six hundred and thirty-six men, led by Major Crutchfield, who had seven pieces of artillery.
As Cockburn's barges approached the town, fire was opened upon them with two twelve-pounders, which did so much execution that the Admiral found it discreet to draw off and take position behind a point of land where the American gunners could not see him. From this shelter he fired rockets and shells for an hour, but so wildly that not the slightest damage was effected by them.
As Cockburn's barges got closer to the town, they came under fire from two twelve-pound cannons, which caused so much destruction that the Admiral decided it was best to pull back and take cover behind a piece of land where the American gunners couldn't spot him. From this safe spot, he launched rockets and shells for an hour, but he missed wildly, causing no damage at all.
Crutchfield sent a company of riflemen, under Captain Servant, with orders to conceal themselves in the woods near the road where Beckwith's column would pass in approaching the town, to annoy and delay it as much as possible. This was done so skilfully as to inflict considerable loss upon the enemy; and when Crutchfield saw that the barges would not approach the town again till it was in the possession of Beckwith, he marched with the greater part of his force to the assistance of the riflemen, leaving Captain Pryor with a few men to manage the battery and keep off the barges.
Crutchfield sent a group of riflemen, led by Captain Servant, with orders to hide in the woods near the road where Beckwith's column would pass while coming to the town, in order to disrupt and slow them down as much as possible. They executed this plan so effectively that they caused significant losses to the enemy; when Crutchfield realized that the barges wouldn’t approach the town again until Beckwith had taken control, he marched with most of his troops to support the riflemen, leaving Captain Pryor with a few men to operate the battery and defend against the barges.
Crutchfield's column was fired upon just as the British column had been, by riflemen concealed in a wood; and as he wheeled to charge upon the hidden foe, he was greeted by a sudden fire from two six-pounders and a discharge of rockets. The 175enemy's artillery was so well handled that Crutchfield's column was broken up, and a portion of it driven from the field. The remainder made its way through a defile, all the while under fire, to a junction with Servant's riflemen. At the same time Captain Cooper, with what few cavalrymen the Americans had, was annoying the enemy's left flank.
Crutchfield's column came under fire just like the British column had, from riflemen hidden in the woods; and as he turned to charge at the concealed enemy, he was suddenly hit by fire from two six-pound cannons and a barrage of rockets. The 175enemy's artillery was so effectively used that Crutchfield's column was disrupted, and part of it was forced off the field. The rest made its way through a narrow passage, all while under fire, to regroup with Servant's riflemen. At the same time, Captain Cooper, with the few cavalrymen the Americans had, was harassing the enemy's left flank.
Crutchfield kept up the fighting with spirit as long as possible, but of course was obliged to give way at last. Captain Pryor and his men held their ground at the battery, preventing any landing from the barges, till the enemy's land force came up in the rear and was within sixty yards of the guns. He then ordered the artillerists to spike the pieces, and break through the corps of British marines approaching in the rear; which order was at once obeyed, to the astonishment of the marines, who failed to hurt or capture a single man. With Captain Pryor still at their head, the little band plunged into a creek and swam across, those who had car-fines or side-arms taking them with them, and escaped beyond pursuit. Crutchfield in his retreat was followed for two miles by a strong force, which failed to overtake him, while he frequently halted his men behind fences and walls, to deliver a volley at the approaching enemy and then continue the retreat. 176In this fight the British had ninety men killed, and a hundred and twenty wounded. The American loss was seven killed, twelve wounded, and twelve missing.
Crutchfield fought bravely for as long as he could, but eventually had to give in. Captain Pryor and his men stood firm at the battery, stopping any landings from the barges until the enemy's ground forces approached from behind, getting within sixty yards of the cannons. He then ordered the gunners to disable the cannons and break through the British marines closing in from the rear; they complied immediately, much to the surprise of the marines, who didn't manage to injure or capture anyone. With Captain Pryor leading them, the small group dove into a creek and swam across, taking their firearms and side-arms with them, escaping without being chased. Crutchfield, while retreating, was pursued for two miles by a strong force that couldn't catch him, as he often stopped his men behind fences and walls to fire at the approaching enemy before continuing on. 176In this battle, the British lost ninety men killed and one hundred and twenty wounded. The American loss was seven killed, twelve wounded, and twelve missing.
The village of Hampton was now at the mercy of an enemy who showed no mercy, and was immediately given up to plunder and outrage, which continued for two days and nights. The town was not burned, but every house was ruined as to its furniture and decorations, except the one in which the commanding officers were quartered. Such deeds were perpetrated by the British soldiers and sailors, unrestrained by their officers, as had hardly been paralleled even in Indian warfare. Neither age nor sex nor innocence was any protection. In one case an old and infirm citizen was murdered in the presence of his aged wife; and when she remonstrated, a soldier presented a pistol at her breast and shot her dead. Women with infants in their arms were pursued till they threw themselves into the river to escape, children were wantonly killed, and such shameful scenes were enacted as cannot even be mentioned in a history written for youth. The soldiers destroyed all the medical stores, that were necessary for the care of the sick and wounded. They also stole a considerable number of slaves and sent them to the West Indies, not to be liber177ated, but to be sold and turned into cash. When they abandoned the town, they went in such haste that they left behind a large quantity of provisions, arms, and ammunition, and some of their men, who were captured next day by Cooper's cavalry.
The village of Hampton was now at the mercy of an enemy who showed no mercy, and was immediately subjected to looting and violence, which went on for two days and nights. The town wasn't burned, but every house was wrecked in terms of its furniture and decorations, except for the one where the commanding officers were staying. Such acts were committed by British soldiers and sailors, unchecked by their officers, in a manner that was hardly seen even in Indian warfare. Neither age nor gender nor innocence provided any protection. In one instance, an old and frail citizen was killed in front of his elderly wife; when she protested, a soldier aimed a pistol at her chest and shot her dead. Women holding infants were chased until they jumped into the river to escape, children were senselessly killed, and such disgraceful acts occurred that they cannot even be mentioned in a history written for young people. The soldiers destroyed all the medical supplies necessary for taking care of the sick and injured. They also stole a significant number of enslaved individuals and shipped them to the West Indies, not to be freed, but to be sold for profit. When they left the town, they did so in such a rush that they abandoned a large amount of food, weapons, and ammunition, as well as some of their men, who were captured the next day by Cooper's cavalry.
The indignation aroused by the unhappy fate of Hampton was such that General Robert R. Taylor, commandant of the district, addressed a letter to Admiral Warren, inquiring whether the outrages were sanctioned by the British commanders, and if not, whether the perpetrators were to be punished. The Admiral referred the letter to Sir Sydney Beckwith, who did not attempt to deny that the outrages had been committed as charged, but said that "the excesses at Hampton, of which General Taylor complains, were occasioned by a proceeding at Craney Island. At the recent attack on that place, the troops in a barge which had been sunk by the fire of the American guns had been fired on by a party of Americans, who waded out and shot these poor fellows while clinging to the wreck of the boat; and with a feeling natural to such a proceeding, the men of that corps landed at Hampton." General Taylor at once appointed a court of inquiry, which by a careful investigation found that none of the men belonging to the wrecked barge had been fired upon, except one who was trying to escape to 178that division of the British troops which had landed, and he was not killed; while, so far from shooting the unfortunate men in the water, some of the Americans had waded out to assist them. The report embodying these facts was forwarded to Sir Sydney, who never made any reply—which perhaps is the most nearly graceful thing a man can do when he has been convicted of a deliberate and outrageous falsehood.
The outrage caused by the unfortunate fate of Hampton was so intense that General Robert R. Taylor, the district commander, wrote a letter to Admiral Warren, asking whether the abuses were approved by the British commanders, and if not, whether the offenders would face punishment. The Admiral passed the letter on to Sir Sydney Beckwith, who didn’t deny that the abuses happened as described but claimed that "the excesses at Hampton, which General Taylor is complaining about, were caused by an incident at Craney Island. During the recent attack on that place, troops in a barge that had been sunk by American fire were shot at by a group of Americans who waded out and killed those poor men while they clung to the wreckage; understandably, the men from that unit landed at Hampton." General Taylor quickly set up a court of inquiry, which, after a thorough investigation, concluded that none of the men from the sunken barge were fired upon, except for one trying to escape to 178the division of British troops that had landed, and he was not killed; far from shooting the unfortunate men in the water, some Americans had even waded out to help them. The report containing these findings was sent to Sir Sydney, who never responded—which may be the most graceful thing a person can do when caught in a blatant and outrageous lie.
In the far South a better success attended the American arms this summer than either on the Northern border or the Atlantic coast. This was owing partly to the greater simplicity of the task that lay before the commanders, and partly to the greater energy with which they entered upon it, but chiefly to the difference in the enemy. In Canada and on the coast, our men contended with forces largely made up of British regulars, at that time perhaps the most efficient soldiery in the world. In Florida and Alabama they contended indeed with British arms, but they were in the hands of Indians.
In the far South, the American military had more success this summer than on the Northern border or the Atlantic coast. This was partly because the tasks ahead were simpler for the commanders and partly because they approached them with more energy, but mostly due to the differences in the enemy. In Canada and on the coast, our troops faced largely British regulars, who were possibly the most effective soldiers in the world at that time. In Florida and Alabama, they were up against British weapons, but those were used by Indians.
The English agents at Pensacola, with the connivance of the Spanish authorities there—for Florida belonged to Spain till the United States purchased it in 1819—had supplied the Creeks with rifles, ammunition, and provisions, and sent them 179on the war-path, not against the American armies, for there were none in that region, but against the settlers and scattered posts along the navigable rivers. A premium of five dollars was offered for every scalp—whether of man, woman, or child—which the savages might bring to the British agency.
The English agents in Pensacola, with the cooperation of the Spanish authorities there—since Florida was owned by Spain until the United States purchased it in 1819—supplied the Creeks with rifles, ammunition, and supplies, and sent them 179on a war path, not against the American armies, as there were none in that area, but against the settlers and nearby outposts along the navigable rivers. A bounty of five dollars was offered for every scalp—whether from a man, woman, or child—that the natives brought to the British agency.
The militia of Georgia, Alabama, and Tennessee were called out to meet the emergency, and before the year was over the Creeks had been made to suffer a terrible retribution.
The militias of Georgia, Alabama, and Tennessee were summoned to respond to the crisis, and by the end of the year, the Creeks had faced severe punishment.
As one body of these Indians, commanded by a half-breed named McQueen, started for the interior, a militia force under Colonel James Caller set out to intercept them. On the 27th of July they were found encamped on a small, low peninsula enclosed in one of the windings of Burnt Corn Creek. Caller promptly attacked them, and after a sharp action routed them. But he called back the pursuing detachment too soon, the Indians rallied, a part of the whites fled in panic, and the remainder had a severe fight with the savages, in which they were outnumbered and defeated. Caller lost two men killed and fifteen wounded.
As one group of these Indians, led by a half-breed named McQueen, headed into the interior, a militia force under Colonel James Caller set out to intercept them. On July 27th, they found them camped on a small, low peninsula surrounded by one of the bends of Burnt Corn Creek. Caller quickly attacked, and after a fierce fight, drove them away. However, he recalled the pursuing troops too soon; the Indians regrouped, some of the white soldiers panicked and fled, and the rest had a tough battle with the natives, where they were outnumbered and defeated. Caller lost two men killed and fifteen injured.
This victory inspired the Indians with new confidence, while it spread terror among the settlers. The next hostile movement was against Fort Mims180on Lake Tensas, near Alabama River, forty miles northward of Mobile. This work was a stockade enclosure of about an acre, which a farmer named Mims had erected for the protection of his buildings and cattle. It was loop-holed for musketry all round, and at one corner was an uncompleted blockhouse. When the alarm of Indian raids had gone forth, the settlers flocked to Fort Mims from all sides, and Governor Claiborne sent a hundred and seventy-five volunteers, under Major Daniel Beasley, to defend it. The space was so crowded that it became necessary to extend the stockade, and another enclosure was made on the eastern side, but the fence between was left standing. On the 29th of August, a thousand Creek warriors, commanded by William Weathersford, a half-breed, arrived within a quarter of a mile of the fort, and concealed themselves in a ravine. Some of them were seen by two Negroes who had been sent out to tend cattle; but when they had given the alarm, and a scouting party had failed to find any trace of Indians, they were not only disbelieved, but severely flogged for lying.
This victory boosted the Indians' confidence while spreading fear among the settlers. The next attack targeted Fort Mims180on Lake Tensas, near the Alabama River, about forty miles north of Mobile. This was a stockade enclosure of about an acre, built by a farmer named Mims for the protection of his buildings and cattle. It had openings for muskets all around, and at one corner was an unfinished blockhouse. When news of the Indian raids spread, settlers flocked to Fort Mims from all directions, and Governor Claiborne sent 175 volunteers, led by Major Daniel Beasley, to defend it. The area became so crowded that they needed to extend the stockade, creating another enclosure on the eastern side, but leaving the fence in between intact. On August 29th, a thousand Creek warriors, led by William Weathersford, a half-breed, arrived within a quarter of a mile of the fort and hid themselves in a ravine. Two Black men were sent out to tend to the cattle and spotted some of them. But when they raised the alarm and a scouting party failed to find any trace of Indians, they weren't believed and were severely punished for lying.
After many false alarms, the occupants of the fort had become incredulous and careless of danger, their commander perhaps most so of all. On the 30th the gates stood wide open, no guard was set, 181and when the drum beat for dinner the soldiers laid aside their arms and went to their meal at the moment when the savages sprang from their hiding-place and with their well-known yell rushed toward the stockade. Officers and men sprang to arms at the frightful sound. Major Beasley, in attempting to close the outer gate, was knocked down and run over by the foremost of the assailants, many of whom poured into the outer enclosure, where they quickly murdered all the whites whom they found. Beasley himself crawled off in a corner to die, and the command devolved upon Captain Bailey.
After many false alarms, the people in the fort had become skeptical and careless about danger, with their commander perhaps being the most reckless of all. On the 30th, the gates were wide open, no guards were posted, 181and when the drum sounded for dinner, the soldiers set down their weapons and went to eat just as the attackers leaped from their hiding spot, letting out their familiar yell as they charged toward the stockade. Officers and soldiers grabbed their weapons at the terrifying sound. Major Beasley, while trying to close the outer gate, was knocked down and trampled by the first attackers, many of whom rushed into the outer enclosure, where they quickly killed all the white people they encountered. Beasley crawled off to die in a corner, and command passed to Captain Bailey.
When the Indians attempted to enter the inner enclosure, they were stopped by a fire through the loop-holes in the partition. Five of their prophets, who had proclaimed that their charms and incantations rendered the American bullets harmless, all fell dead at the first discharge. This produced a temporary check, but new swarms of the naked savages came up, and a desperate fight through the loop-holes was maintained for several hours. The soldiers stood manfully at their posts, were assisted by some of the women and boys, and killed a large number of the Indians, who, on the other hand, were sure of hitting somebody whenever they fired into the crowded enclosure. Numbers of the red-skins were constantly dancing, hooting, and 182yelling around the fort, many of whom were shot by the old men of the garrison, who had ascended to the attic of the largest house and cut holes in the roof.
When the Native Americans tried to enter the inner area, they were stopped by gunfire coming through openings in the partition. Five of their prophets, who claimed that their charms and spells made American bullets ineffective, all fell dead after the first shot. This caused a temporary pause, but new groups of naked warriors arrived, and a fierce battle through the openings continued for several hours. The soldiers held their ground bravely, aided by some women and boys, and killed a large number of the Natives, who believed they would hit someone every time they fired into the crowded area. Many of the warriors were constantly dancing, shouting, and 182yelling around the fort, and many of them were shot by the older men of the garrison, who had climbed up to the attic of the largest house and made holes in the roof.
The enemy were getting tired of this costly work, when Weathersford came up, exhorted them to new efforts, and directed fire-tipped arrows to be shot into the fort. In a short time the buildings were in flames, and the miserable inmates, driven by the heat, were huddled in one corner, when the Indians burst in and rapidly completed the massacre. Children were taken by the heels, and their brains dashed out against the walls; women were butchered in a manner unknown since the wars of the ancient Jews; a few Negroes were kept for slaves, but not one white person was left alive—excepting twelve, who had secretly cut an opening through the stockade and escaped by way of the lake. Of the five hundred and fifty-three persons in the fort at noon, at least four hundred perished before night; and it was believed that about as many of the Indians had been killed or wounded.
The enemy was getting tired of this costly work when Weathersford arrived, urged them to make new efforts, and ordered fire-tipped arrows to be shot into the fort. Soon, the buildings were ablaze, and the unfortunate occupants, driven by the heat, huddled in one corner when the Indians broke in and quickly completed the massacre. Children were grabbed by their heels, and their heads were smashed against the walls; women were slaughtered in ways not seen since the wars of ancient Jews; a few Black individuals were kept as slaves, but not a single white person was left alive—except for twelve, who had secretly cut a hole through the stockade and escaped via the lake. Of the five hundred and fifty-three people in the fort at noon, at least four hundred died before nightfall; and it was believed that about the same number of Indians had been killed or wounded.
The tidings of this massacre of course excited horror and indignation in every part of the country, but nowhere met so prompt and practical a response as in Tennessee. The Legislature of that 183State called for thirty-five hundred volunteers—in addition to fifteen hundred whom she had already enrolled in the service of the general Government—voted an appropriation of three hundred thousand dollars, and placed them under command of General Andrew Jackson. * To General John Cocke was entrusted the work of gathering the troops from East Tennessee, and providing subsistence for the whole. Fayetteville was appointed as the general rendezvous, and Colonel John Coffee was sent forward to Huntsville, Alabama, with a cavalry force of five hundred men, which by the time he arrived there was increased to thirteen hundred.
The news of this massacre sparked horror and outrage throughout the country, but nowhere responded as quickly and effectively as Tennessee. The Legislature of that 183State called for 3,500 volunteers—in addition to the 1,500 already enlisted in the service of the federal government—approved a budget of $300,000, and placed them under the command of General Andrew Jackson. General John Cocke was tasked with gathering the troops from East Tennessee and ensuring they had food and supplies. Fayetteville was designated as the main meeting point, and Colonel John Coffee was sent ahead to Huntsville, Alabama, with a cavalry unit of 500 men, which had grown to 1,300 by the time he arrived.
Jackson reached Fayetteville on the 7th of October, began drilling his men, and on the 11th, hearing from Coffee that the enemy was in sight, marched them to Huntsville—thirty-two miles—in five hours. For the work in hand, he could not have asked for better material than these Western pioneers, who were skilled in wood-craft, who knew the tricks and manners of the enemy, and were as fearless as they were cunning. Among them were Sam Houston and the eccentric and now famous David Crockett.
Jackson arrived in Fayetteville on October 7th, started training his men, and on the 11th, after hearing from Coffee that the enemy was approaching, marched them to Huntsville—thirty-two miles—in five hours. For the task at hand, he couldn’t have asked for better soldiers than these Western pioneers, who were experts in survival skills, understood the tactics and behaviors of the enemy, and were as fearless as they were clever. Among them were Sam Houston and the quirky and now famous David Crockett.
The only serious trouble was in forwarding the
The only real problem was in sending the
* At this time the General was lying helpless at Nashville, from wounds received in a disgraceful affray.
* At this time, the General was lying helpless in Nashville, suffering from wounds he sustained in a shameful altercation.
Forty-five miles southward, at the Ten Islands of the Coosa, friendly Indians were calling for help against the hostile Creeks. By a week's march, in which he foraged on all sides and burned several villages, Jackson reached that place. The enemy were in camp at Talluschatches (now Jacksonville), thirteen miles eastward, and on the night of November 2d Colonel Coffee was sent out with a thousand mounted men and a few friendly Creeks, to attack them. At sunrise he divided his force into two columns, the heads of which united near the place, while the remainder, swinging outward and forward, made a semicircle about the little town. Within this, two companies were pushed forward to entice the Indians from their shelter. This accomplished, these companies retreated, and the whole line opened fire upon the savages and rapidly closed in upon them. "Our men rushed up to the doors of the houses," said Coffee in his report, "and in a few minutes killed the last warrior of them. The enemy fought with savage fury, and met death with all its horrors, without shrinking or 185complaining. Not one asked to be spared, but fought as long as they could stand or sit." About two hundred Indians were killed, and eighty-four women and children were made prisoners. The Americans lost five men killed and forty-one wounded.
Forty-five miles south, at the Ten Islands of the Coosa, friendly Native Americans were requesting help against the hostile Creeks. After a week’s march, during which he scavenged for supplies and burned several villages, Jackson arrived at that location. The enemy had set up camp at Talluschatches (now Jacksonville), thirteen miles to the east, and on the night of November 2, Colonel Coffee was sent out with a thousand mounted troops and a few friendly Creeks to attack them. At sunrise, he split his force into two groups, which converged near the site, while the rest, moving outward and forward, formed a semicircle around the small town. Within this encirclement, two companies were sent ahead to lure the Indians out of their hiding places. Once this was achieved, these companies fell back, and the entire line opened fire on the enemies and quickly closed in. "Our men rushed up to the doors of the houses," Coffee reported, "and within minutes killed the last warrior among them. The enemy fought with fierce determination and faced death with all its terrors, without flinching or complaining. Not one asked for mercy, but fought as long as they could stand or sit." About two hundred Indians were killed, and eighty-four women and children were captured. The Americans lost five men killed and forty-one wounded.
At this point Jackson was joined after a time by the forces from East Tennessee under General Cocke, and here he built Fort Strother. But before Cocke's arrival he learned that a few friendly Indians in Fort Talladega, thirty miles south, were completely surrounded by a thousand Creeks, who would soon reduce them by starvation. The news was brought by a chief who had disguised himself in a hog-skin and escaped from the fort by night.
At this point, Jackson was eventually joined by the troops from East Tennessee led by General Cocke, and here he constructed Fort Strother. However, before Cocke arrived, he found out that a small group of friendly Indians in Fort Talladega, thirty miles to the south, were completely surrounded by a thousand Creeks, who would soon force them to surrender due to starvation. The information was brought by a chief who had disguised himself in a hog-skin and escaped from the fort at night.
Jackson at once put himself at the head of two thousand men, and marched to the relief of the little fort. On the 9th of November he arrived within striking distance of the enemy, when he deployed his columns, placing the volunteers on the right, the militia on the left, and the cavalry on the wings. He adopted precisely the same plan of attack that Coffee had used at Talluschatches; but it was not so completely successful, for two companies of the militia temporarily gave way, and a part of the cavalry had to dismount and fill the gap. Jackson believed that but for this he should have killed every 186one of the thousand hostile Indians before him. As it was, two hundred and ninety-nine of them were left dead on the field, while the remainder were chased to the mountains, and left a bloody track as they ran. The loss of the whites was fifteen killed and eighty-six wounded.
Jackson quickly took command of two thousand men and marched to help the small fort. On November 9th, he got close enough to the enemy to strike, so he arranged his troops with the volunteers on the right, the militia on the left, and the cavalry on the flanks. He used the same attack strategy that Coffee had applied at Talluschatches, but it wasn't completely successful; two companies of the militia temporarily retreated, and some of the cavalry had to dismount to fill in the gap. Jackson thought that if it hadn't been for this, he could have killed every one of the thousand enemy Indians in front of him. In the end, two hundred and ninety-nine were left dead on the battlefield, while the rest were chased into the mountains, leaving a bloody trail behind them as they fled. The white forces suffered fifteen killed and eighty-six wounded.
The Indians of the Hillabee towns, in what is now Cherokee county, sent a messenger to Jackson to sue for peace, through whom he replied that they could only have it on condition of returning prisoners and property and surrendering for punishment those who had been engaged in the massacres. But while they awaited an answer, General Cocke, working his way down the Coosa, sent a force, under General White, to attack these towns. White marched rapidly, destroying everything in his path, and on the 18th of November appeared before the principal village, which he at once fell upon, and killed sixty unresisting Indians, and carried back with him the squaws and children. The Indians, who supposed all the whites were under Jackson's command, looked upon this as a piece of treachery, and became more desperate than ever. For this unfortunate affair, General Cocke has been severely blamed; but he was tried by a court-martial, and honorably acquitted, while his own published statement makes it clear that he acted in entire good 187faith. He was as destitute of provisions as Jackson was, and thought if he pushed on to Fort Strother it would only double the number of starving soldiers there.
The Native Americans of the Hillabee towns, in what is now Cherokee County, sent a messenger to Jackson to negotiate for peace. He replied that they could only have peace if they returned prisoners and property and surrendered those who participated in the massacres. While they waited for a response, General Cocke, making his way down the Coosa River, sent a force under General White to attack these towns. White marched quickly, destroying everything in his way, and on November 18th, he reached the main village, where he immediately attacked, killing sixty unarmed Native Americans and taking the women and children back with him. The Native Americans, who believed all the whites were under Jackson's command, saw this as an act of betrayal and became even more desperate. General Cocke faced heavy criticism for this unfortunate incident; however, he was tried by a court-martial and was honorably acquitted. His own published statement clearly shows that he acted in complete good faith. He was just as short on supplies as Jackson was and believed that pushing on to Fort Strother would only increase the number of starving soldiers there.
While Jackson was coming down from the north, General John Floyd, with nine hundred and fifty Georgians and four hundred Indians, was coming from the east. He first found the enemy at Autosse, on the Tallapoosa, thirty miles east of the present site of Montgomery, where, on the 29th of November, he attacked them, drove them from their villages to holes and caves in the river-bank, burned all their dwellings, and then hunted down and killed as many of them as possible. At least two hundred fell. The whites lost eleven killed and fifty-four wounded.
While Jackson was coming down from the north, General John Floyd, with nine hundred and fifty Georgians and four hundred Indians, was coming from the east. He first encountered the enemy at Autosse, on the Tallapoosa, thirty miles east of today's Montgomery. On November 29th, he attacked them, forcing them from their villages into holes and caves along the riverbank, burned all their homes, and then tracked down and killed as many of them as he could. At least two hundred were killed. The whites had eleven killed and fifty-four wounded.
General Ferdinand L. Claiborne entered the country from the west in July, and built small forts at various points. On the 12th of December he left Fort Claiborne (on the site of the present town of that name) with a thousand men, and after marching more than a hundred miles northeast, he came on the 23d to an Indian town of refuge, called Econochaca, on the Alabama, west of Montgomery. This village was built upon what the Indian prophets assured the tribe was holy ground, which no white man could set, foot upon and live. No path 188of any kind led to it. Here the women and children had been sent for safety; here, in a little square, the prophets performed their religious rites, which are supposed to have included the burning of captives at the stake. Several captives, of both sexes, it is said were standing with the wood piled about them when Claiborne's columns appeared before the town.
General Ferdinand L. Claiborne entered the country from the west in July and built small forts at various locations. On December 12th, he left Fort Claiborne (on the site of the present town of that name) with a thousand men, and after marching more than a hundred miles northeast, he arrived on the 23rd at an Indian refuge town called Econochaca, located on the Alabama River, west of Montgomery. This village was built on what the Indian prophets claimed was sacred ground, where no white man could set foot and survive. There was no path 188leading to it. Here, the women and children had been sent for safety; in a small square, the prophets performed their religious ceremonies, which were believed to include the burning of captives at the stake. Several captives, both male and female, were reportedly standing with wood piled around them when Claiborne's troops appeared at the town.
The Indians, who had hurried their women and children across the river, fought desperately for a short time, and then broke and fled, many of them swimming the river and escaping. About thirty were killed. The whites lost one killed and six wounded. Claiborne sacked and burned the village, and then returned to Fort Claiborne, where his forces rapidly melted away by the expiration of their terms of service. Jackson, at Fort Strother, was in a similar predicament; and thus closed the year on the campaign at the South. It had been attended with many instances of individual bravery and exciting and romantic adventure, one of the most famous of which is known as the Canoe Fight, of which General Samuel Dale was the hero. There can be no better account of it than Dale's own, as he related it some years afterward to his friend Hon. John H. F. Claiborne, who incorporated it in his "Life of Dale." The General was on his way, 189November 13th, with sixty men, to attack an Indian camp on the east side of the Alabama, near what is now Dale's Ferry. He says:
The Native Americans, who rushed their women and children across the river, fought fiercely for a short time before breaking and fleeing, with many of them swimming the river to escape. About thirty were killed. The settlers lost one killed and six wounded. Claiborne looted and burned the village, then returned to Fort Claiborne, where his forces quickly dwindled as their service terms ended. Jackson, at Fort Strother, faced a similar situation; thus, the year wrapped up for the campaign in the South. It was filled with many instances of individual bravery and thrilling adventures, one of the most famous being the Canoe Fight, featuring General Samuel Dale as the hero. There’s no better account of it than Dale's own, as he recounted it years later to his friend Hon. John H. F. Claiborne, who included it in his "Life of Dale." The General was on his way, 189November 13th, with sixty men, to attack an Indian camp on the east side of the Alabama, near what is now Dale's Ferry. He says:
"I put thirty of my men on the east bank, where the path ran directly by the river-side. With twenty men I kept the western bank, and thus we proceeded to Randon's Landing. A dozen fires were burning, and numerous scaffolds for drying meat, denoting a large body of Indians; but none were visible. About half past ten A.M. we discerned a large canoe coming down stream. It contained eleven warriors. Observing that they were about to land at a cane-brake just above us, I called to my men to follow, and dashed for the-, cane-brake with all my might. Only seven of my men kept up with me. As the Indians were in the act of landing, we fired. Two leaped into the water. Jim Smith shot one as he rose, and I shot the other. In the mean time they had backed into deep water, and three Indians were swimming on the off side of the canoe, working her as far from the shore as they could, to get out of the range of our guns. The others lay in the bottom of the canoe, which was thirty odd feet long, four feet deep, and three feet beam, made of an immense cypress-tree, specially for the transportation of corn. One of the warriors shouted to Weathersford (who was in the 190vicinity, as it afterward appeared, but invisible to us), 'Yos-ta-hah! yos-ta-hah!' 'They are spoiling us.' This fellow was in the water, his hands on the gunwale of the pirogue, and as often as he rose to shout we fired, but ineffectually. He suddenly showed himself breast-high, whooping in derision, and said, 'Why don't you shoot?' I drew my sight just between his hands, and as he rose I lodged a bullet in his brains. Their canoe then floated down with the current. I ordered my men on the east bank to fetch the boats. Six of them jumped into a canoe, and paddled to the Indians, when one of them cried out, 'Live Indians! Back water, boys! back water!' and the frightened fellows paddled back whence they came. I next ordered Cæsar, a free Negro fellow, to bring a boat. Seeing him hesitate, I swore I would shoot him the moment I got across. He crossed a hundred yards below the Indians, and Jim Smith, Jerry Austill, and myself got in. I made Cæsar paddle within forty paces, when all three of us levelled our guns, and all missed fire! As the two boats approached, one of them hurled his scalping-knife at me. It pierced the boat through and through, just grazing my thigh as it passed. The next moment the canoes came in contact. I leaped up, placing one of my feet in each boat. At the same instant the 191foremost warrior levelled his rifle at my breast. It flashed in the pan. As quick as lightning, he clubbed it, and aimed at me a furious blow, which I partially parried, and, before he could repeat it, I shivered his skull with my gun. In the mean time an Indian had struck down Jerry, and was about to despatch him, when I broke my rifle over his head. It parted in two places. The barrel Jerry seized, and renewed the fight. The stock I hurled at one of the savages. Being then disarmed, Caesar handed me his musket and bayonet.
"I stationed thirty of my men on the east bank, where the path ran right along the river. With twenty men, I guarded the western bank, and we made our way to Randon's Landing. A dozen fires were lit, and there were many scaffolds set up for drying meat, indicating a large group of Indians, but none were in sight. Around 10:30 A.M., we spotted a large canoe coming down the river. It had eleven warriors on board. Noticing they were about to land at a cane-brake just above us, I called for my men to follow, and I sprinted towards the cane-brake with everything I had. Only seven of my men kept pace with me. As the Indians were landing, we opened fire. Two jumped into the water. Jim Smith shot one as he surfaced, and I shot the other. Meanwhile, they retreated into deeper water, and three Indians swam on the far side of the canoe, trying to push it as far from the shore as possible to avoid our gunfire. The others were lying in the bottom of the canoe, which was over thirty feet long, four feet deep, and three feet wide, made from a giant cypress tree, specifically for transporting corn. One of the warriors yelled to Weathersford (who was nearby, as it turned out, but out of our sight), 'Yos-ta-hah! yos-ta-hah!' 'They're getting us!’ This guy was in the water, hands on the edge of the canoe, and whenever he surfaced to yell, we shot at him, but missed every time. He suddenly surfaced up to his chest, whooping mockingly, and said, 'Why don’t you shoot?' I lined up my shot just between his hands, and as he rose again, I shot him in the head. Their canoe then floated downstream. I instructed my men on the east bank to get the boats. Six of them jumped into a canoe and paddled toward the Indians. One of the Indians yelled, 'Live Indians! Back water, boys! Back water!' and the scared men paddled back to where they started. I then told Cæsar, a free Black man, to bring a boat. When I saw him hesitate, I threatened to shoot him as soon as I got across. He crossed a hundred yards below the Indians, and Jim Smith, Jerry Austill, and I got in. I made Cæsar paddle within forty paces when all three of us aimed our guns, and none of us fired! As the two boats got closer, one of the Indians threw his scalping knife at me. It went straight through the boat, just barely missing my thigh as it went by. The next moment, the canoes collided. I jumped up, placing one foot in each boat. At the same time, the frontmost warrior pointed his rifle at my chest. It misfired. In a flash, he clubbed the rifle and aimed a furious blow at me, which I partially blocked, and before he could swing again, I smashed his skull with my gun. Meanwhile, an Indian had knocked down Jerry and was about to finish him off when I broke my rifle over the Indian's head. It split in two places. Jerry grabbed the barrel and continued the fight. I threw the stock at one of the savages. Being disarmed at that point, Cæsar handed me his musket and bayonet."
"Finding myself unable to keep the two canoes in juxtaposition, I resolved to bring matters to an issue, and leaped into the Indian boat. My pirogue, with Jerry, Jim, and Caesar, floated off. Jim fired, and slightly wounded the Indian next to me. I now stood in the centre of their canoe—two dead at my feet—a wounded savage in the stern, who had been snapping his piece at me during the fight, and four powerful warriors in front. The first one directed a furious blow at me with his rifle; it glanced upon the barrel of my musket, and I staved the bayonet through his body. As he fell, the next one repeated the attack. A shot from Jerry Austill pierced his heart. Striding over them, the next sprung at me with his tomahawk. I killed him with the bayonet, and his corpse lay between me 192and the last of the party. I knew him well—Tar-cha-chee, a noted wrestler, and the most famous ball-player of his clan. He paused a moment in expectation of my attack, but, finding me motionless, he stepped backward to the bow of the canoe, shook himself, gave the war-whoop of his tribe, and cried out, 'Sam tholocco Iana dahmaska, ia-lanes-tha—lipso—lipso—lanestha. Big Sam! I am a man—I am coming—come on!' As he said this, with a terrific yell he bounded over the dead body of his comrade, and directed a blow at my head with his rifle, which dislocated my left shoulder. I dashed the bayonet into him. It glanced round his ribs, and the point hitching to his back-bone, I pressed him down. As I pulled the weapon out, he put his hands upon the sides of the canoe and endeavored to rise, crying out, 'Tar-cha-chee is a man. He is not afraid to die!' I drove my bayonet through his heart. I then turned to the wounded villain in the stern, who snapped his rifle at me as I advanced, and had been snapping during the whole conflict. He gave the war-whoop, and, in tones of hatred and defiance, exclaimed, 'I am a warrior—I am not afraid to die.' As he uttered the words I pinned him down with my bayonet, and he followed his eleven comrades to the land of spirits. 193"During this conflict, which was over in ten minutes, my brave companions, Smith and Austill, had been struggling with the current of the Alabama, endeavoring to reach me. Their guns had become useless, and their only paddle had been broken. Two braver fellows never lived. Austin's first shot saved my life.
"Finding it impossible to keep the two canoes together, I decided to resolve the situation and jumped into the Indian boat. My pirogue, with Jerry, Jim, and Caesar, drifted away. Jim fired and slightly wounded the Indian next to me. I was now in the middle of their canoe—two dead at my feet—a wounded savage in the back who had been shooting at me during the fight, and four strong warriors in front of me. The first one swung his rifle at me in anger; it hit the barrel of my gun, and I drove the bayonet through his body. As he fell, the next one charged me. A shot from Jerry Austill hit him in the heart. Stepping over them, the next warrior lunged at me with his tomahawk. I stabbed him with the bayonet, and his body fell between me 192and the last warrior. I recognized him—Tar-cha-chee, a well-known wrestler and the most famous ball-player of his tribe. He hesitated a moment, waiting for my attack, but seeing I didn't move, he stepped back to the front of the canoe, shook himself, let out the war-whoop of his tribe, and shouted, 'Big Sam! I am a man—I am coming—come on!' As he said this, with a terrifying yell, he leaped over the body of his comrade and swung his rifle at my head, which dislocated my left shoulder. I drove the bayonet into him. It slipped around his ribs, and as the tip caught on his backbone, I pressed him down. When I pulled the weapon out, he placed his hands on the edges of the canoe and tried to get up, shouting, 'Tar-cha-chee is a man. He is not afraid to die!' I stabbed him through the heart. I then turned to the wounded scoundrel in the back, who aimed his rifle at me as I moved closer, having fired during the whole fight. He yelled the war-whoop and defiantly shouted, 'I am a warrior—I am not afraid to die.' As he spoke, I pinned him down with my bayonet, and he joined his eleven comrades in the spirit world. 193During this fight, which lasted only ten minutes, my brave companions, Smith and Austill, had been battling the current of the Alabama, trying to get to me. Their guns were useless, and their only paddle was broken. Two braver men never lived. Austin’s first shot saved my life."
"By this time my men came running down the bank, shouting that Weathersford was coming. With our three canoes we crossed them all over, and got safely back to the fort."
"At this point, my men came rushing down the bank, yelling that Weathersford was approaching. We used our three canoes to get everyone across and safely made it back to the fort."
CHAPTER XI. NAVAL BATTLES OF 1813
194
The Hornet and the Peacock—The Chesapeake and the Shannon—The Argus and the Pelican—The Enterprise and the Boxer—Decatur blockaded at New London—A New Embargo.
The Hornet and the Peacock—The Chesapeake and the Shannon—The Argus and the Pelican—The Enterprise and the Boxer—Decatur blockaded at New London—A New Embargo.
The brilliant victories achieved on the ocean in 1812 reversed the opinion the Government had entertained as to the value of the navy, and early in 1813 Congress authorized the building of four ships-of-the-line, six frigates, six sloops-of-war, and as many vessels on the lakes as the service might require.
The impressive victories won at sea in 1812 changed the government's views on the navy's importance, and early in 1813, Congress approved the construction of fourships-of-the-line, six frigates, six sloops-of-war, and as many vessels on the lakes as needed for the service.
But in the second year of the war the American sailor did not meet with that uniform success which in the first year had surprised and confounded the self-styled Mistress of the Seas. One battle, in which a noble ship was lost and many lives were sacrificed, through drunkenness, was a grievous mortification to the whole American people. The commander of the defeated vessel was fortunate in not surviving the action, as he would probably have been court-martialled and disgraced.
But in the second year of the war, the American sailor didn't experience the same consistent success that had astonished and baffled the so-called Mistress of the Seas during the first year. One battle, which resulted in the loss of a noble ship and many lives due to drunkenness, was a major embarrassment for the entire American public. The commander of the defeated ship was fortunate not to have survived the battle, as he likely would have faced a court-martial and disgrace.
The first naval engagement of the year took place in West Indian waters. Lieutenant James Law195rence, in the Hornet, of twenty guns, was cruising up and down the coast of Guiana, and had taken few prizes, when on the 24th of February sighted the English brig Peacock, Captain Peake, which carried twenty guns. Both drew down upon each other. They passed within half pistol-shot; and as they passed, each delivered the full broadside of the larboard battery. The Peacock then put her helm hard up, intending to wear round and rake the Hornet. But Lawrence quickly imitated the movement, got the better of his antagonist, and with all his guns blazing bore down upon her quarter. He then closed, and kept up so terrific a fire that in fifteen minutes from the beginning of the action the Englishman not only struck his colors, but hoisted them in the fore-rigging with the union down—which is a signal of distress. A few minutes later, the Peacock's main-mast tumbled.
The first naval battle of the year happened in West Indian waters. Lieutenant James Lawrence, in the *Hornet*, which had twenty guns, was patrolling the coast of Guiana and had captured a few prizes when, on February 24th, he spotted the English brig *Peacock*, commanded by Captain Peake, also armed with twenty guns. They headed towards each other and passed within half a pistol shot, firing their full broadside from the port side as they went by. The *Peacock* then turned sharply, planning to circle around and fire at the *Hornet*. But Lawrence quickly copied the maneuver, outmaneuvering his opponent, and charged at her from behind with all his guns firing. He closed in and unleashed such a devastating barrage that just fifteen minutes into the fight, the English vessel not only lowered her flag but also hoisted it in the fore-rigging upside down, signaling distress. A few minutes later, the *Peacock*’s main mast fell.
An officer sent on board to take possession found that she had six feet of water in the hold, and was settling rapidly. Captain Peake and four of his men had been killed, and thirty-three wounded. Every effort was made to save the wounded men. Both vessels anchored, for the water here was but thirty-three feet deep. The prisoners were removed as fast as possible, while, to keep the Peacock afloat, 196her guns were thrown overboard, the shot-holes plugged, and the pumps manned; but in spite of this she went down, carrying nine of her men and three of the Hornet's. Four of the crew took the stern boat, which was supposed so damaged as to be useless, and paddled Four others climbed into the rigging of the fore-top, and as this remained above the surface when the hull touched bottom, they were saved. On the Hornet one man had been killed and two wounded by the enemy's fire, and her rigging was considerably damaged.
An officer sent on board to take control found that there were six feet of water in the hold, and the ship was sinking quickly. Captain Peake and four of his crew had been killed, and thirty-three were injured. Every effort was made to rescue the injured men. Both ships anchored, since the water here was only thirty-three feet deep. The prisoners were removed as quickly as possible, while, to keep the Peacock afloat, 196her guns were thrown overboard, the bullet holes were plugged, and the pumps were manned; but despite this, she went down, taking nine of her crew and three from the Hornet with her. Four of the crew took the stern boat, which was thought to be too damaged to be useful, and paddled away. Four others climbed into the rigging of the fore-top, and since this stayed above water when the hull hit the bottom, they were saved. On the Hornet, one man was killed and two were injured by enemy fire, and her rigging was significantly damaged.
As another British war-vessel was not far away, the Hornet had to be put in fighting trim again with all speed, which was accomplished within four hours after the action. As she was crowded with prisoners and was short of water, she turned her prow toward home, arriving at Martha's Vineyard on the the 19th of March, and proceeding through Long Island Sound to New York. Congress voted Lawrence a gold medal, and to each of his commissioned officers a silver one; and he was soon promoted to the rank of captain, and given command of the frigate Chesapeake, then lying in Boston harbor. The very next naval battle was the one in which Lawrence lost his life, lost his ship, and lost a great part of his reputation. 197Captain Philip Bowes Vere Broke, commanding the British frigate Shannon, of thirty-eight guns, had been cruising along the New England coast for some time, looking for prizes, and especially for an opportunity to retrieve the honor of his flag in an encounter with some American war-ship of the size of his own. Lawrence was preparing for a cruise against the English fleet engaged in the Greenland whale-fishery; but when the Shannon appeared in the offing, June 1st, he hastily got his crew together and went out from Boston to fight her.
As another British warship was nearby, the Hornet had to be quickly readied for battle, which was done within four hours after the fight. Crowded with prisoners and low on water, she headed home, arriving at Martha's Vineyard on March 19th, and continued through Long Island Sound to New York. Congress awarded Lawrence a gold medal and a silver medal to each of his commissioned officers; he was soon promoted to captain and given command of the frigate Chesapeake, which was then in Boston harbor. The very next naval battle was the one in which Lawrence lost his life, his ship, and a significant part of his reputation. 197Captain Philip Bowes Vere Broke, commanding the British frigate Shannon, with thirty-eight guns, had been patrolling the New England coast for some time, looking for prizes, particularly aiming to restore the honor of his flag by facing an American warship of similar size. Lawrence was preparing for a mission against the English fleet involved in the Greenland whale fishery; however, when the Shannon appeared on June 1st, he quickly assembled his crew and set out from Boston to engage her.
Broke had sent in to him a letter containing a formal challenge to try the powers of the two ships; but it did not arrive till the Chesapeake had sailed, and Lawrence never received it. One sentence of this letter is very significant, in that it contains the whole germ of the war. "I doubt not that you, equally confident of success, will feel convinced that it is only by repeated triumphs in even combats that your little navy can now hope to console your country for the loss of that trade it can no longer protect." That was it exactly. American trade, the grudge of British merchants, and the constant object of British hostilities, was to be permitted only so far as American guns were able to protect it; and since the American navy, as Captain Broke said, was little, while England's was large, it 198was confidently believed by his countrymen that this protection would not ultimately amount to much.
Broke sent him a letter with a formal challenge to test the powers of the two ships, but it didn’t arrive until the Chesapeake had already set sail, so Lawrence never got it. One sentence in this letter is very important because it captures the essence of the conflict: "I’m sure you, just as confident of success, will believe that only through repeated victories in fair fights can your small navy hope to make up for the loss of the trade it can no longer safeguard." That sums it up perfectly. American trade, which was a sore spot for British merchants and a constant target of British attacks, would only be allowed to exist as far as American guns could protect it. And since, as Captain Broke pointed out, the American navy was small while England's was large, his fellow countrymen confidently believed that this protection wouldn’t hold much value in the end.
At six o'clock in the evening the vessels came within cannon-shot of each other, and the Shannon opened fire at once. But the Chesapeake remained silent till her whole broadside could be brought to bear; then she opened her ports, and for eight minutes there was a terrific and continuous roar. Now, as before, the Americans were the better gunners, and in this broadside firing the advantage was with the Chesapeake; but accident favored her antagonist and gave him an opportunity to use the advantages he possessed in other respects. Two or three shots that struck the rigging of the Chesapeake rendered her for a short time not perfectly manageable, and her mizzen-rigging fouled in the Shannons fore-chains. This exposed her to a raking fire, and her upper deck was swept at once by two of the enemy's guns.
At six o'clock in the evening, the ships came within cannon range of each other, and the Shannon opened fire immediately. But the Chesapeake stayed silent until it could use its entire broadsides; then it opened its ports, and for eight minutes, there was a deafening and continuous roar. Once again, the Americans proved to be the better shots, and in this broadside confrontation, the Chesapeake held the advantage. However, luck was on the side of her opponent, allowing him to take advantage of his strengths in other ways. Two or three shots hit the rigging of the Chesapeake, making it difficult to control for a short time, and her mizzen rigging got tangled in the Shannon’s fore-chains. This left her vulnerable to a raking fire, and two of the enemy's guns quickly targeted her upper deck.
In the broadside firing, Captain Lawrence had been wounded in the leg, the master was killed, the first lieutenant was disabled, and the marine officer, the fourth lieutenant, and the boatswain were mortally wounded. So great a proportion of officers struck down was a rare accident. To increase the misfortune, a Negro bugler had been substituted for the drummer, and when Lawrence ordered the 199signal to be sounded for boarding, it was found that the bugleman had crawled under the launch, and when he was hauled out he was still so frightened that he could not sound a note. Lawrence then passed down verbal orders for the boarders to come on deck, and at this moment he fell, shot through the body. As he was carried below, he exclaimed: "Tell the men to fire faster, and not give up the ship. Fight her till she sinks!"
During the broadside attack, Captain Lawrence was wounded in the leg, the master was killed, the first lieutenant was incapacitated, and the marine officer, the fourth lieutenant, and the boatswain were fatally injured. It was quite unusual for so many officers to be taken out at once. To make matters worse, a Black bugler had replaced the drummer, and when Lawrence ordered the 199signal for boarding, it turned out the bugler had crawled under the launch, and when he was pulled out, he was so scared he couldn’t play a single note. Lawrence then gave verbal orders for the boarders to come on deck, and at that moment, he fell, shot through the body. As they carried him below, he shouted: "Tell the men to fire faster, and not to give up the ship. Fight her until she sinks!"
But it was too late. The enemy were already on his deck in great numbers, and after a short and unorganized resistance his men were overcome and his ship was captured. The victors considerably increased the casualties by firing down the hatchways with musketry, in justification of which it is said that some one had fired up the hatch and killed a marine.
But it was too late. The enemy was already on his deck in large numbers, and after a brief and disorganized fight, his men were defeated and his ship was taken. The victors significantly raised the number of casualties by shooting down the hatches with muskets, which they justified by saying that someone had shot up the hatch and killed a marine.
The havoc in both crews had been frightful for so short a battle. On the Shannon, twenty-four were killed and fifty-eight wounded; on the Chesapeake forty-seven were killed and ninety-eight wounded. Nearly one third of all the men engaged in the action had been struck. Captain Lawrence died in four days. His age was but thirty-one. He had been greatly admired for his personal bravery, his courteousness, his regard for the sailors under his command, and his wonderful nautical skill. 200In explanation of this defeat, it is said that Captain Broke had been for weeks giving his men a special training for such an encounter; while the Chesapeake had a heterogeneous crew, a part of them were new men, and many of the old ones were in a state of half mutiny from not having received prize money that was due them. Some of the officers were sick on shore, others were inexperienced, and several of the sailors were seen drunk in the streets of Boston an hour before they were summoned to go on board as the vessel was weighing anchor. These facts seem to be well established; but the explanation does not make it any the less a British victory. If Broke's men were under good discipline, while Lawrence's were not, he is entitled to as much credit for his achievement as if it had been accomplished through superior courage or any other means. And Lawrence, had he not died, might properly have been censured, or even punished, for going out to fight under such circumstances, when he could have waited till he had trained his crew. It was also said that the sailors entertained a superstitious belief that the Chesapeake was an unlucky ship. It was she that had been fired into by the Leopard, in 1807, when she had not a single gun in condition to return the shot; and just before her battle with the 201Shannon she had cruised across the Atlantic to the coast of Africa, and home again by way of the West Indies, without taking a single prize.
The chaos among both crews was shocking for such a short battle. On the Shannon, twenty-four were killed and fifty-eight were injured; on the Chesapeake, forty-seven were killed and ninety-eight were injured. Nearly one third of all the men involved in the fight had been hit. Captain Lawrence died four days later at the age of just thirty-one. He was highly regarded for his bravery, politeness, concern for his crew, and impressive sailing skills. 200To explain this defeat, it’s said that Captain Broke had been training his men specifically for weeks in preparation for such a clash; meanwhile, the Chesapeake had a mixed crew with some newcomers, and many of the seasoned sailors were in a state of semi-mutiny over unpaid prize money. Some officers were sick on land, others lacked experience, and several sailors were spotted drunk in the streets of Boston just an hour before they were called to board as the ship was getting ready to leave. These points seem to be well supported; however, this explanation doesn’t lessen the fact that it was a British victory. If Broke's men were well-disciplined while Lawrence's were not, he deserves just as much credit for his victory as if it had been achieved through greater bravery or any other factor. And had Lawrence not passed away, he could have rightly been criticized or even punished for engaging in battle under such conditions, especially when he could have waited to properly train his crew. It was also said that the sailors had a superstition that the Chesapeake was an unlucky ship. She had been fired upon by the Leopard in 1807, when she had no functioning guns to return fire; and just before her battle with the Shannon, she had sailed across the Atlantic to the coast of Africa and back home through the West Indies without capturing a single prize.
Broke's victory was a grateful salve to England's pride, so sorely wounded by the naval events of 1812, and her historians have never tired of dwelling upon it. One of the latest of them devotes more than eight pages to it alone, while he disposes of all the other sea-fights of this war in less than three.
Broke's victory was a much-appreciated boost to England's pride, which had been seriously hurt by the naval events of 1812, and historians have never stopped talking about it. One of the most recent ones spends over eight pages on it alone, while he covers all the other naval battles of this war in less than three.
The American brig Argus, of twenty guns, commanded by Captain William Henry Allen, after taking Hon. William H. Crawford to France as the new United States Minister at the French court, made a cruise in the English and Irish channels, where she captured twenty merchantmen. But in the evening of August 13th she had the misfortune to capture a vessel loaded with wine. The crew spent most of the night in transferring the cargo, and helped themselves liberally to the contents of some of the casks. Just before daylight, when all of them were tired out and many were intoxicated, they completed their misfortune by setting fire to the prize.
The American brig Argus, armed with twenty guns and led by Captain William Henry Allen, after taking Hon. William H. Crawford to France as the new United States Minister at the French court, went on a cruise in the English and Irish channels, where she captured twenty merchant ships. But on the evening of August 13th, she unfortunately captured a ship loaded with wine. The crew spent most of the night transferring the cargo and helped themselves generously to some of the casks. Just before dawn, when they were all exhausted and many were drunk, they made things worse by accidentally setting fire to the prize.
By the light of the burning vessel, the British brig Pelican, of twenty-one guns, sighted the Argus and bore down upon her. The Pelican got the 202weather-gage, and came within close range. The Argus opened with a broadside, and for three quarters of an hour the firing was kept up on both sides with great spirit. At the end of that time the American had lost her steering apparatus and most of her running rigging, while the enemy was lying under her stern, firing at leisure. Captain Allen was mortally wounded before the fighting had been going on five minutes, and his first lieutenant was disabled a few minutes later. There was now nothing for the Argus but to surrender. She had lost six men killed and seventeen wounded; the Pelican, three killed and five wounded.
By the light of the burning ship, the British brig Pelican, armed with twenty-one guns, spotted the Argus and charged toward her. The Pelican gained the upper hand and closed in for battle. The Argus fired a broadside, and for about three-quarters of an hour, both sides exchanged fire with intensity. By the end of that time, the American ship had lost her steering system and most of her running rigging, while the enemy was positioned under her stern, firing at will. Captain Allen was mortally wounded within five minutes of the fighting starting, and his first lieutenant was injured moments later. The Argus had no choice but to surrender. She suffered six men killed and seventeen wounded; the Pelican had three killed and five wounded.
Early in September the American brig Enterprise, of fourteen guns, commanded by Lieutenant William Burrows, was cruising along the coast of Maine in search of Canadian privateers, when, on the 5th, near Penguin Point, within sight of Portland, the British brig Boxer, of fourteen guns, Captain Samuel Blythe, was encountered. Both vessels prepared for action, and a few minutes past three o'clock they had approached within half pistol-shot, when both opened fire. The wind was light, the sea nearly smooth, and the broadsides of the Enterprise were very effective. Burrows had mounted a long gun in his poop-cabin, running it out of a window, and after the first broadside he drew ahead, sheered 203across the enemy's bow, and raked him with this gun. This was repeated, with other skilful manoeuvres, and in forty minutes the Boxer, being hailed, said she was ready to surrender, but could not haul down her colors, because they were nailed to the mast.
Early in September, the American brig Enterprise, with fourteen guns and commanded by Lieutenant William Burrows, was sailing along the coast of Maine looking for Canadian privateers. On the 5th, near Penguin Point and visible from Portland, they encountered the British brig Boxer, also armed with fourteen guns and led by Captain Samuel Blythe. Both ships readied for battle, and just after three o'clock, they came within half a pistol shot of each other and opened fire. The wind was light, the sea was nearly calm, and the Enterprise's broadside fire was quite effective. Burrows had positioned a long gun in his poop cabin, extending it out of a window, and after the first round of fire, he moved ahead, crossed in front of the enemy's bow, and targeted them with this gun. This tactic was repeated along with other skillful maneuvers, and after forty minutes, the Boxer, upon being hailed, stated that she was ready to surrender but couldn't lower her colors because they were nailed to the mast.
One of her officers is said to have sprung upon a gun, shaken his fists at the Americans, in a fearful state of excitement, and shouted "No! no! no!" adding a few opprobrious epithets, when a superior officer ordered him down. This exhibition, together with the ridiculous fact that a ship with her colors nailed was trying to surrender, brought a hearty laugh from the American crew, notwithstanding the shattered spars and bloody decks.
One of her officers reportedly jumped onto a gun, waved his fists at the Americans in a frenzied state, and yelled "No! no! no!" while throwing out some insults, until a superior officer told him to get down. This scene, along with the absurdity of a ship with its colors nailed down trying to surrender, made the American crew burst into laughter, even with the broken masts and bloody decks.
The Enterprise immediately ceased firing, and took possession of the prize. The American vessel had suffered very little injury, though her hull was peppered with grapeshot, a ball had passed through her foremast and one through her mainmast, and her upper rigging was considerably cut. She had lost one man killed and thirteen wounded, three of them mortally. The Boxer had been hulled repeatedly, three balls had passed through her foremast, some of her guns were dismounted, her top-gallant. forecastle was cut away, and her rigging badly injured. The number of her men that were killed 204has never been ascertained; fourteen were wounded. The commanders of the two vessels both fell, almost at the same moment: Blythe cut in two by an eighteen-pound ball, Burrows mortally wounded by a canister-shot. They were buried side by side in Portland, with the honors of war.
The Enterprise quickly stopped firing and took control of the prize. The American ship had sustained very little damage, although her hull was marked with grapeshot, one ball had gone through her foremast and another through her mainmast, and her upper rigging was quite damaged. She had lost one crew member killed and thirteen wounded, three of them seriously. The Boxer had been hit multiple times, with three balls passing through her foremast, some of her guns knocked out of action, her top-gallant forecastle destroyed, and her rigging severely damaged. The number of her crew who were killed 204has never been confirmed; fourteen were wounded. The commanders of both ships fell nearly at the same time: Blythe was cut in half by an eighteen-pound ball, and Burrows was mortally wounded by a canister shot. They were buried next to each other in Portland, with military honors.
The poet Longfellow, who at that time was in his seventh year and lived in Portland, alludes to this battle in his poem entitled "My Lost Youth."
The poet Longfellow, who at that time was seven years old and lived in Portland, references this battle in his poem called "My Lost Youth."
"'I remember the sea-fight far away,
'I remember the distant naval battle,
How it thundered o'er the tide!
How it thundered over the waves!
And the dead captains, as they lay
And the dead captains, as they lay
In their graves, o'erlooking the tranquil bay
In their graves, overlooking the calm bay
Where they in battle died.
Where they died in battle.
And the sound of that mournful song
And the sound of that sad song
Goes through me with a thrill:
Goes through me with an electric rush:
'A boy's will is the wind's will,
'A boy's will is the wind's will,
And the thoughts of youth are long, long thoughts.'"
And young people's thoughts are deep and lasting.
On the day when the Chesapeake was captured by the Shannon, three American war-vessels, under Commodore Decatur—the United States, the Macedonian, and the Hornet—were driven into the harbor of New London, Conn., by a superior force of British ships, and so rigorously was the blockade of the port kept up, that not one of the three got to sea again during the war. At the same time the land defences, manned by Connecticut militia, pre205vented the blockading squadron from entering the harbor to attack them. Decatur made many attempts to get out with his fleet, but was always frustrated by the vigilance of the blockaders, which he believed was assisted by traitors on shore. He declared that whenever he planned an escape, the enemy were warned of his intention by blue lights burned at the mouth of the harbor; and from this circumstance the opprobrious name of "Blue-Lights" was applied to the Federal party, which had opposed the war. It is not unlikely that something of this sort was done, either by traitors or by spies in the employ of the blockaders; but that the Federal party of Connecticut had anything to do with it is sufficiently refuted by the fact that the Connecticut militia, largely Federalists, not only protected Decatur's vessels when they might have permitted them to be captured, but rendered some distinguished services before the war was over, especially in the gallant defence of Stonington. Still the Federalists continued to oppose the war, though in a hopeless minority as to the whole country, and, like all parties out of power, sharply and unceasingly criticised the Administration. Their criticisms, too, were sometimes based on pretty strong facts, as, for instance, when they ridiculed the idea that it was a war for sailors' rights, by quoting an 206official circular to collectors of customs which forbade them to grant protections to Negro sailors. Even thus early were some of our politicians imbued with the notion that the color of a man's skin must necessarily make a vast difference with his rights under the government for which he paid taxes and bore arms.
On the day the Chesapeake was captured by the Shannon, three American warships under Commodore Decatur—the United States, the Macedonian, and the Hornet—were forced into the harbor of New London, Connecticut, by a stronger fleet of British ships. The blockade was so strict that none of them could set sail again during the war. At the same time, the land defenses, manned by Connecticut militia, kept the blockading squadron from entering the harbor to launch an attack. Decatur made numerous attempts to escape with his fleet, but he was always thwarted by the watchfulness of the blockaders, which he believed was aided by traitors on land. He claimed that whenever he planned to break out, the enemy was warned of his intentions by blue lights seen at the harbor entrance; because of this, the derogatory term "Blue-Lights" was used to label the Federal party, which opposed the war. It's likely that some form of warning was indeed given, either by traitors or spies working for the blockaders; however, the idea that the Federal party in Connecticut was involved is disproven by the fact that the Connecticut militia, many of whom were Federalists, not only protected Decatur's ships when they could have allowed them to be captured, but also provided notable assistance before the war ended, particularly during the brave defense of Stonington. Nevertheless, the Federalists continued to oppose the war, even though they were a hopeless minority across the nation, and, like all parties out of power, they sharply and continuously criticized the Administration. Their criticisms were sometimes based on strong facts, such as when they mocked the notion that it was a war for sailors' rights by quoting an official circular to customs collectors that prohibited them from granting protections to Black sailors. Even at this early stage, some of our politicians held the belief that the color of a person's skin significantly affected their rights under the government for which they paid taxes and served.
The freedom of the Massachusetts coast from blockade was a source of irritation to the more southerly States; and when in December, 1813, the President complained to Congress that supplies were furnished to British cruisers, and other contraband trade was carried on through the ports of the Bay State, Congress laid a new embargo on the exportation, either by land or water, of any goods, produce, live stock, or specie. A similar embargo bill had passed the House of Representatives in July, but was then defeated in the Senate.
The freedom of the Massachusetts coast from blockades annoyed the southern states. When the President complained to Congress in December 1813 that supplies were being provided to British cruisers and other illegal trade was happening through the Bay State’s ports, Congress imposed a new ban on exporting any goods, produce, livestock, or money, whether by land or water. A similar embargo bill had been passed by the House of Representatives in July but had been defeated in the Senate at that time.
Up to the close of 1813, the English had captured from the Americans seven vessels of war, mounting one hundred and nineteen guns. In the same time, the Americans had captured from the English twenty-six vessels of war, mounting five hundred and sixty guns.
Up to the end of 1813, the English had seized seven warships from the Americans, which had a total of one hundred and nineteen guns. During the same period, the Americans had taken twenty-six warships from the English, totaling five hundred and sixty guns.
CHAPTER XII. PRIVATEERS.
207
Their Number and Importance—Jefferson's Opinion of them—A London Journal's Prediction—Some of their Captures, and some of their Battles—The Yankee's Laughable Exploit.
Their Number and Importance—Jefferson's View on Them—A London Journal's Prediction—Some of Their Captures and Battles—The Yankee's Humorous Exploit.
In the naval operations of this, as of the preceding year, privateers played an important part. A large number had been commissioned; during the entire war, the whole number set afloat was two hundred and fifty-one. Fifty-eight of these belonged in the port of Baltimore, fifty-five in New York, forty in Salem, Mass., thirty-one in Boston, fourteen in Philadelphia, eleven in Portsmouth, N. H., and ten in Charleston, S. C.
In the naval operations of this year, just like the last, privateers played a significant role. A large number were commissioned; throughout the entire war, a total of two hundred and fifty-one were launched. Fifty-eight of these were from Baltimore, fifty-five from New York, forty from Salem, Massachusetts, thirty-one from Boston, fourteen from Philadelphia, eleven from Portsmouth, New Hampshire, and ten from Charleston, South Carolina.
These vessels were commonly small, or of moderate size, and were swift sailers. They carried a few broadside guns; but the peculiar feature of their armament was a long gun, generally an eighteen-pounder, mounted on the deck and turning on a swivel, so that it could be instantly pointed in any direction, no matter what might be the position of the vessel. This gun was called Long Tom.
These ships were usually small or of average size and were fast sailers. They had a few broadside cannons, but the standout feature of their armament was a long cannon, typically an eighteen-pounder, mounted on the deck and able to swivel, allowing it to be aimed in any direction regardless of the ship's position. This cannon was known as Long Tom.
There was in 1812, as there has been since, more or less sentimental objection to privateering, which had come down from the days when privateers and pirates were the same. The argument in favor of the system was set forth with great clearness by Thomas Jefferson, in an article published about a month after the war began. He said:
There was in 1812, as there has been since, some emotional resistance to privateering, which had originated from the time when privateers and pirates were essentially the same. The case for the system was articulated very clearly by Thomas Jefferson, in an article published about a month after the war started. He said:
"What is war? It is simply a contest between nations of trying which can do the other the most harm. Who carries on the war? Armies are formed and navies manned by individuals. How is a battle gained? By the death of individuals. What produces peace? The distress of individuals. What difference to the sufferer is it that his property is taken by a national or private armed vessel? Did our merchants, who have lost nine hundred, and seventeen vessels by British captures, feel any gratification that the most of them were taken by his Majesty's men-of-war? Were the spoils less rigidly exacted by a seventy-four-gun ship than by a privateer of four guns? and were not all equally condemned? War, whether on land or sea, is consti209tuted of acts of violence on the persons and property of individuals; and excess of violence is the grand cause that brings about a peace. One man fights for wages paid him by the Government, or a patriotic zeal for the defence of his country; another, duly authorized, and giving the proper pledges for good conduct, undertakes to pay himself at the expense of the foe, and serve his country as effectually as the former, and Government, drawing all its supplies from the people, is in reality as much affected by the losses of the one as the other, the efficacy of its measures depending upon the energies and resources of the whole.
"What is war? It's just a competition between nations to see which one can cause the most harm to the other. Who fights in the war? Armies are made up of individuals, and navies are manned by people. How is a battle won? By the death of individuals. What brings about peace? The suffering of individuals. What difference does it make to the person suffering whether their property is taken by a national or a private armed ship? Did our merchants, who have lost nine hundred and seventeen vessels to British captures, feel any satisfaction knowing that most of them were taken by His Majesty's warships? Was the plunder any less harshly taken by a seventy-four-gun ship than by a four-gun privateer? And weren’t all of them condemned equally? War, whether on land or sea, consists of acts of violence directed at the people and property of individuals; and excessive violence is the main cause that leads to peace. One person fights for wages paid by the government or out of patriotic zeal to defend their country; another, duly authorized and giving the right assurances for good behavior, seeks to pay themselves at the enemy's expense and serves their country just as effectively as the former. The government, which gets all its resources from the people, is in reality just as affected by the losses of one as by the other, as the success of its actions depends on the energy and resources of everyone."
"In the United States, every possible encouragement should be given to privateering in time of war with a commercial nation. We have tens of thousands of seamen that without it would be destitute of the means of support, and useless to their country. Our national ships are too few to give employment to a twentieth part of them, or retaliate the acts of the enemy. But by licensing private armed vessels, the whole naval force of the nation is truly brought to bear on the foe; and while the contest lasts, that it may have the speedier termination, let every individual contribute his mite, in the best way he can, to distress and harass the enemy and compel him to peace." 210The truth is, privateering is the most merciful part of war; for it damages the enemy by capturing property rather than by destroying life, and in so doing it throws the immediate burden upon the commercial community behind the armies, who have to a large extent the power of making war and peace without personal risk to themselves, and often exhibit a willingness to sacrifice the lives of soldiers with the greatest freedom, so long as their own property is secure. Show them that their property is not secure in war, and you give them a strong motive for making peace. In modern times, the men who are to risk their lives if war arises, generally have little to say on the question whether there shall be a war; while those who are to risk their ships and cargoes, often have a determining voice. The greater that risk, the less the probability of war.
"In the United States, we should do everything possible to support privateering during a war with a commercial nation. We have tens of thousands of sailors who would otherwise struggle to make a living and be of no use to their country. Our national ships are too few to provide jobs for even a small fraction of them or to retaliate against the enemy's actions. However, by allowing private armed vessels, the entire naval force of the nation can effectively target the enemy. And while the conflict continues, to help bring about a quicker resolution, let everyone contribute in whatever way they can to disrupt and challenge the enemy and push them toward peace. The truth is, privateering is the most humane aspect of war; it harms the enemy by seizing property instead of taking lives, and in doing so, it places the immediate burden on the commercial sector behind the armies, who largely control the power to make war and peace without risking their own safety, often showing a willingness to sacrifice soldiers' lives as long as their own assets are protected. When they see their property is not safe during war, they are motivated to pursue peace. In modern times, those who will risk their lives if war breaks out usually have little say in whether there will be a war, while those who stand to lose their ships and cargo often have a significant influence. The greater that risk, the less likely war is to happen." 210
When the great powers of Europe drew up and signed the Treaty of Paris in 1856, they abolished privateering, so far as they were concerned. The lesser powers of Europe, and some of those on this continent, accepted the general invitation to join in the treaty. The United States Government replied that it would join in it, provided a clause were inserted to the effect that private property on the high seas, if not contraband of war, should be ex211empt from seizure not only by privateers but by the public armed vessels of an enemy. The great powers that originally made the treaty refused to insert any such clause; thereby confessing that their object was not to exempt private property from the burdens and derangements of war, but merely to control the mode of its seizure, and to secure for themselves with their large navies an advantage over nations that in time of peace have small navies or none at all. So the United States retains to this day her right to send out privateers if she becomes involved in war with any maritime people.
When the major powers of Europe created and signed the Treaty of Paris in 1856, they put an end to privateering on their part. The smaller powers in Europe and some in this continent accepted the general invitation to join the treaty. The United States Government responded that it would participate, as long as a clause was added stating that private property on the high seas, if not considered contraband of war, should be exempt from seizure not only by privateers but also by the public armed vessels of an enemy. The major powers that initially made the treaty refused to include any such clause, admitting that their intent was not to protect private property from the impacts of war, but simply to regulate how it could be seized, ensuring that their large navies held an advantage over nations that, in peacetime, have small navies or none at all. As a result, the United States maintains its right to deploy privateers if it goes to war with any maritime nation.
One at least of the London journals, the Statesman, foresaw the danger from privateers in 1812. When war was threatened, it said: "America cannot certainly pretend to wage a maritime war with us. She has no navy to do it with. But America has nearly a hundred thousand as good seamen as any in the world, all of whom would be actively employed against our trade on every part of the ocean, in their fast-sailing ships of war, many of which will be able to cope with our small cruisers; and they will be found to be sweeping the West India seas, and even carrying desolation into the chops of the Channel."
One of the London newspapers, the Statesman, saw the threat from privateers in 1812. When war was looming, it stated: "America can’t really claim to fight a naval war with us. She doesn’t have a navy to do it. But America has nearly a hundred thousand seamen as skilled as any in the world, all of whom would be working against our trade all over the ocean, in their fast-moving warships, many of which will be able to challenge our small cruisers; and they will be found sweeping through the West Indian seas, and even bringing destruction into the English Channel."
All this, and more, the two hundred and fifty privateers accomplished. They cruised in every sea, 212and wrought such havoc with British commerce as had never been known before. Coggeshall's history of the service enumerates about fifteen hundred prizes taken by them in the two and a half years of war, and these were not all of the captures by privateers alone; while the government war-vessels, in their cruises, added considerably to the number.
All this, and more, the two hundred and fifty privateers achieved. They sailed across every ocean, 212and caused chaos in British trade like never before. Coggeshall's history of the service lists about fifteen hundred ships they captured in two and a half years of war, and these weren't just the captures by privateers; the government warships also significantly increased the total.
The fortunes of the privateers were of the most varied kind. Some of them made long cruises without falling in with a single British merchantman of which they could make a prize. Others took enough to enrich every man of the crew. The Surprise, of Baltimore, took twenty in a single month. The True-Blooded Yankee was one of the most daring and most fortunate. On one cruise she took twenty-seven prizes in thirty-seven days. On the same cruise she captured a small island on the coast of Ireland, and held possession of it for six days. She also took a small seaport town of Scotland, and burned seven vessels in the harbor. A partial list of the spoils with which she was laden when she arrived in a French port, will give some idea of the business. She had eighteen bales of Turkish carpets, forty-three bales of raw silk, weighing six tons, twenty boxes of gums, twenty-four packs of beaver skins, one hundred and sixty dozen swan skins, forty-six packs of other skins, a hundred and 213ninety hides, a quantity of copper, and various other articles.
The fortunes of the privateers were incredibly varied. Some went on long trips without encountering a single British merchant ship they could capture. Others made enough to make every crew member rich. The Surprise from Baltimore captured twenty ships in just one month. The True-Blooded Yankee was among the boldest and luckiest. During one voyage, she seized twenty-seven prizes in thirty-seven days. On that same trip, she took a small island off the coast of Ireland and held it for six days. She also captured a small seaport town in Scotland and burned seven ships in the harbor. A partial list of the loot she brought back to a French port gives an idea of her haul: eighteen bales of Turkish carpets, forty-three bales of raw silk weighing six tons, twenty boxes of gum, twenty-four packs of beaver skins, one hundred and sixty dozen swan skins, forty-six packs of other skins, a hundred and ninety hides, a quantity of copper, and various other items.
The York, of Baltimore, after cruising on the coast of Brazil and through the West Indies, returned home with prizes valued at $1,500,000.
The York, from Baltimore, after sailing along the coast of Brazil and through the West Indies, returned home with prizes worth $1,500,000.
The Snapdragon, of Newbern, N. C., captured a brig with a cargo, mainly dry goods, worth half a million dollars, and got safely into port with her.
The Snapdragon, from Newbern, N. C., seized a brig carrying a cargo primarily of dry goods valued at half a million dollars and made it safely into port with it.
The Saucy Jack, of Charleston, took the ship Mentor, with a cargo valued at $300,000, and sent her into New Orleans; and a short time afterward the same privateer took a brig with $60,000 worth of dry goods.
The Saucy Jack from Charleston captured the ship Mentor, which had a cargo valued at $300,000, and sent it to New Orleans. Shortly after, the same privateer seized a brig carrying $60,000 worth of dry goods.
The Yankee, in a cruise of a hundred and fifty days, scoured the whole western coast of Africa, taking eight prizes, and came home with thirty-two bales of fine goods, six tons of ivory, and $40,000 in gold dust; all together worth nearly $300,000.
The Yankee, on a 150-day voyage, traveled the entire western coast of Africa, capturing eight prizes, and returned with thirty-two bales of high-quality goods, six tons of ivory, and $40,000 in gold dust; all together worth almost $300,000.
The Leo, of Baltimore, captured an East India-man worth two and a half million dollars, which was recaptured by an English sloop-of-war, though not till the Leo had taken off $60,000 in bullion.
The Leo, from Baltimore, captured an East India ship worth two and a half million dollars, which was taken back by an English sloop-of-war, but not before the Leo had removed $60,000 in gold.
The Governor Tompkins, of New York, near the Madeira Islands captured the Nereid, with an assorted cargo valued at $375,000.
The Governor Tompkins from New York, close to the Madeira Islands, captured the Nereid, which had a mixed cargo worth $375,000.
Perhaps the most valuable single prize taken in the war was the Queen, captured by the General Armstrong, of New York. She carried sixteen guns, and was not taken without a stubborn fight, in which her captain, first lieutenant, and nine men were killed. She was valued at nearly $500,000, but on her way into port was wrecked off Nantucket.
Perhaps the most valuable prize taken during the war was the Queen, captured by the General Armstrong from New York. She had sixteen cannons and wasn't captured without a tough battle, in which her captain, first lieutenant, and nine crew members lost their lives. She was valued at almost $500,000, but on her way into port, she was wrecked off Nantucket.
One prize contained wine and raisins valued at $75,000; another, $70,000 worth of cotton; another, $20,000 worth of indigo; another, seven hundred tons of mahogany; another $70,000 worth of rum and sugar; another, $150,000 worth of gums, almonds, and beeswax; another, $23,000 in specie, and still another, $80,000 in specie.
One prize included wine and raisins worth $75,000; another had $70,000 worth of cotton; another was valued at $20,000 for indigo; another had seven hundred tons of mahogany; another contained $70,000 worth of rum and sugar; another was valued at $150,000 for gums, almonds, and beeswax; one prize had $23,000 in cash, and yet another had $80,000 in cash.
All this looks very much like robbery, and in truth it was robbery, unless the war, on the part of the Americans, was justifiable. But it is certainly more humane to conquer the enemy by robbing his merchants than by killing his men; and there can be no question that the exploits of these privateers did more to bring the war between England and the United States to an end, and prevent another one, than drawn battles, however gallantly fought, and futile expeditions against Canada. 215But the exploits of the privateers did not consist solely in plundering unarmed merchantmen. They were often pursued and attacked by British men-of-war, and some of the English packet-ships carried heavy guns, and would not surrender without a desperate fight.
All this looks a lot like robbery, and honestly, it was robbery, unless the Americans' war effort was justifiable. But it's definitely more humane to defeat the enemy by taking their merchants' goods than by killing their soldiers; and there's no doubt that the actions of these privateers did more to end the conflict between England and the United States and to prevent another war than any battles, no matter how bravely fought, or pointless campaigns against Canada. 215However, the privateers didn't just engage in plundering unarmed merchant ships. They were often chased and attacked by British warships, and some English packet ships were heavily armed and wouldn't give up without a fierce battle.
The privateer schooner Governor Tompkins, a few days after the capture of the Nereid in December, 1812, gave chase to what appeared to be a large merchantman. But she proved to be a frigate in disguise, and a sudden squall sent the schooner under her guns before she could change her course. The frigate opened fire at once, and her first broadside killed two men and wounded six. It also blew up a box of cartridges and set fire to some pistols and tube-boxes in the companion-way, all of which exploded and went flying in every direction. The schooner's little battery returned the fire, but her principal exertions were to get out of the way of her powerful antagonist. A chase of two hours ensued, during most of which time the vessels were within gunshot and the firing was kept up. The Tompkins threw overboard all the lumber from the deck, and two thousand pounds of shot, and got out her sweeps, and so escaped. Her captain, Nathaniel Shaler, said in a letter describing the action: "The name of one of my poor fellows who 216was killed ought to be registered on the book of fame, and remembered with reverence as long as bravery is considered a virtue. He was a black man, by the name of John Johnson. A twenty-four-pound shot struck him in the hip, and took away all the lower part of his body. In this state the poor, brave fellow lay on the deck and several times exclaimed to his shipmates, 'Fire away, boys! neber haul de color down!' The other was also a black man, by the name of John Davis, and was struck in much the same way. He fell near me, and several times requested to be thrown overboard, saying he was only in the way of the others."
The privateer schooner Governor Tompkins, a few days after capturing the Nereid in December 1812, chased what looked like a large merchant ship. However, it turned out to be a disguised frigate, and a sudden squall had the schooner under fire before it could change direction. The frigate opened fire immediately, and its first broadside killed two men and injured six. It also exploded a box of cartridges and ignited some pistols and tube-boxes in the passageway, causing them to explode and fly in all directions. The schooner's small cannon returned fire, but its main focus was to escape from the more powerful enemy. The chase lasted two hours, during which the ships were within gunshot range and continued firing at each other. The Tompkins threw all the lumber from the deck overboard, along with two thousand pounds of shot, and got out its oars to make its escape. The captain, Nathaniel Shaler, wrote in a letter about the battle: "The name of one of my poor fellows who 216was killed should be recorded in the book of fame and remembered with respect as long as bravery is a virtue. He was a black man named John Johnson. A twenty-four-pound shot hit him in the hip and tore away the lower part of his body. In that state, the brave fellow lay on the deck and repeatedly shouted to his shipmates, 'Fire away, boys! Never lower the colors!' The other was also a black man named John Davis, who was hit in a similar way. He fell near me and repeatedly asked to be thrown overboard, saying he was just in the way of the others."
Captain Boyle, in the privateer Comet, of Baltimore, made a remarkable cruise, early in 1813, on the coast of Brazil and in the West Indies. On the 14th of January he overhauled a Portuguese brig-of-war which was convoying three English merchantmen—a ship and two brigs—from Pernambuco. Boyle informed the captain that he had no right to do anything of the sort, and that he should proceed to make prizes of them. As the man-of-war insisted on protecting them, there was a fight—one vessel against four, for the merchantmen were heavily armed. It began at half past eight o'clock in the evening, and was carried on by moonlight. Every vessel had on a crowd of canvas. The Comet 217ran alongside the ship and one of the brigs, and opened her broadside upon both of them. The man-of-war then fired grape and round shot into the Comet, which returned the compliment, but stuck close to the merchantmen. They frequently separated, to give the man-of-war a chance at the privateer, when the privateer would pour a whole broadside into them, and then turn his attention to the larger antagonist. An hour after midnight, the ship, which had been badly cut to pieces and len-dered unmanageable, struck her flag; and soon afterward the two brigs, which had been almost as badly damaged, surrendered. All this while the man-of-war was hovering near and exchanging occasional broadsides with the Comet, till the moon set, and it became dark and squally. One of the brigs had been taken possession of by Boyle; the other and the ship, assisted by the man-of-war, escaped him and made their way back to Pernambuco. On the man-of-war the first lieutenant and five men were killed, and several wounded, the captain mortally.
Captain Boyle, in the privateer Comet from Baltimore, had an impressive cruise early in 1813 along the coast of Brazil and in the West Indies. On January 14th, he came across a Portuguese warship that was escorting three English merchant ships—a larger ship and two brigs—out of Pernambuco. Boyle told the captain that he couldn't do that and that he needed to let him capture them. When the warship insisted on protecting the merchant vessels, a battle broke out—one ship against four, since the merchant ships were heavily armed. It started at 8:30 in the evening, under the moonlight. Each ship was covered in sails. The Comet 217pulled up next to the ship and one of the brigs and started firing broadside at both. The warship then fired grapeshot and round shot at the Comet, which fired back but stayed close to the merchant ships. They often drifted apart to give the warship a shot at the privateer, which would then unleash a full broadside at them and shift focus back to the larger enemy. Around one in the morning, the larger ship, which had been severely damaged and was unable to maneuver, lowered its flag; shortly after, the two brigs, which were almost just as badly damaged, surrendered. Meanwhile, the warship hovered nearby, trading occasional broadsides with the Comet, until the moon set and darkness and squalls set in. Boyle captured one of the brigs; the other and the larger ship managed to escape with help from the warship and made their way back to Pernambuco. On the warship, the first lieutenant and five crew members were killed, and several others were wounded, including the captain, who was mortally injured.
On the 25th of the same month, the privateer Dolphin, Captain W. S. Stafford, cruising off the coasts of Spain and Portugal, fell in with a large ship and a brig, and fought them both. The privateer carried ten guns, the ship sixteen, and the 218brig ten. After a spirited action, in which the Dolphin lost four men, she captured both of them, and sent them home to Baltimore. The same privateer, in November, was attacked just outside of Charleston harbor by five boats from an English man-of-war. Captain Stafford tore one of the boats to pieces by a discharge of grape-shot, and as the other boats had employment enough in saving their unfortunate comrades, the attack failed. The man-of-war then fired a broadside at the Dolphin and sailed away.
On the 25th of that month, the privateer Dolphin, Captain W. S. Stafford, patrolling the coasts of Spain and Portugal, encountered a large ship and a brig and engaged them in battle. The privateer had ten guns, the ship had sixteen, and the brig had ten. After a fierce fight, in which the Dolphin lost four men, she captured both vessels and sent them back to Baltimore. Later, in November, the same privateer was attacked just outside Charleston harbor by five boats from an English man-of-war. Captain Stafford devastated one of the boats with grape-shot, and as the other boats were busy trying to rescue their unfortunate crewmates, the attack failed. The man-of-war then fired a broadside at the Dolphin and sailed away.
The privateer Lottery, Captain Southcomb, while at anchor in Chesapeake Bay, February 15th, was captured by nine British barges, in which were two hundred and forty men; but not till after a fight of an hour and a half, in which the six guns of the Lottery had made sickening havoc with the men in the crowded barges. Captain Southcomb was badly wounded.
The privateer Lottery, commanded by Captain Southcomb, was anchored in Chesapeake Bay on February 15th when it was captured by nine British barges that had two hundred and forty men on board. This happened after a fierce battle that lasted an hour and a half, during which the six guns of the Lottery caused devastating damage to the soldiers in the packed barges. Captain Southcomb was seriously injured.
On the 11th of March the privateer General Armstrong, Captain Guy R. Champlin, of New York, encountered, off Surinam, what she supposed to be an English privateer. The Armstrong bore down upon her, fired the starboard broadside, wore ship and gave her the larboard broadside, and was then about to attempt boarding, but found out that the enemy was a frigate, carrying twenty-four guns. The bat219tle lasted three quarters of an hour, when the Armstrong succeeded in getting away. Captain Champ-lin, badly wounded, lay on the cabin floor, directly over the magazine, with a pistol in his hand, when he overheard some talk about striking the colors. He immediately ordered the surgeon to go on deck and tell the men that if any one of them dared to strike the colors, he would discharge his pistol into the magazine and blow them all up together. In his log-book he wrote: "In this action we had six men killed and sixteen wounded, and all the halyards of the headsails shot away; the fore-mast and bowsprit one quarter cut through, and all the fore and main shrouds but one shot away; both mainstays and running rigging cut to pieces; a great number of shot through our sails, and several between wind and water, which caused our vessel to leak. There were also a number of shot in our hull."
On March 11th, the privateer General Armstrong, commanded by Captain Guy R. Champlin from New York, came across what it thought was an English privateer off the coast of Surinam. The Armstrong approached, fired a broadside from its right side, turned the ship, and fired a broadside from the left side. It was about to attempt a boarding when they realized the enemy was actually a frigate with twenty-four guns. The battle lasted for three-quarters of an hour, after which the Armstrong managed to escape. Captain Champlin, badly wounded, lay on the cabin floor directly over the magazine with a pistol in his hand when he heard some talk about surrendering. He immediately ordered the surgeon to go on deck and tell the crew that if anyone dared to surrender, he would fire his pistol into the magazine and blow them all up together. In his logbook, he wrote: "In this action, we had six men killed and sixteen wounded, and all the halyards of the headsails shot away; the foremast and bowsprit were a quarter cut through, and all the fore and main shrouds except one shot away; both mainstays and running rigging were cut to pieces; there were many shots through our sails, and several shots between the waterline, causing our vessel to leak. There were also several shots in our hull."
The privateer Young Teazer met a singular fate. In June she was chased by a British man-of-war. Her lieutenant had been once captured, and released on parole, and had gone into the service again without waiting to be exchanged. When he saw a probability of another capture, he seized a firebrand and ran into the cabin, and in another moment the vessel was blown to fragments, and 220every man on board perished, except seven sailors who were standing on the forecastle.
The privateer Young Teazer met a strange fate. In June, she was chased by a British warship. Her lieutenant had previously been captured and released on parole, and he rejoined the service without waiting to be exchanged. When he saw the chance of being captured again, he grabbed a firebrand and ran into the cabin. In moments, the ship was blown to pieces, and 220every man on board died, except for seven sailors who were standing on the forecastle.
The privateer Wasp, carrying two guns, had a battle of nine hours' duration, on the 31st of July, with the British war-schooner Bream, of ten guns. For the last forty-five minutes the action was at close quarters, and the Wasp then surrendered.
The privateer Wasp, armed with two guns, fought for nine hours on July 31st against the British war-schooner Bream, which had ten guns. For the last forty-five minutes, the battle took place at very close range, and then the Wasp surrendered.
In August the privateer Decatur, carrying seven guns, Captain Dominique Diron, was cruising in the track of West India traders, when on the 5th she encountered the English war-schooner Dominica, of sixteen guns, and after a bloody battle captured her. It was at first a running fight, the Dominica firing frequent broadsides, and the Decatur answering with her Long Tom and volleys of musketry. After several futile attempts to board, Captain Diron succeeded in forcing his bowsprit over the enemy's stern, and sending the jib-boom through her mainsail. The next moment, while a part of his crew kept up the musketry fire, the remainder rushed on board the Dominica, and a hand-to-hand slaughter at once began. Men were cut down with swords, and shot with pistols, till the deck was covered with the dead and wounded. The English crew did not surrender till their captain, G. W. Barrette, was killed, all the other officers except the surgeon and one midshipman either killed or wounded, and 221altogether sixty men disabled. Of the Decatur's men, five were killed and fifteen wounded.
In August, the privateer Decatur, armed with seven guns and led by Captain Dominique Diron, was patrolling the trade routes of the West Indies when, on the 5th, it encountered the English war-schooner Dominica, which had sixteen guns. After a fierce battle, the Decatur managed to capture her. The conflict began as a running fight, with the Dominica firing frequent broadsides while the Decatur responded with her Long Tom and bursts of gunfire. After several unsuccessful attempts to board, Captain Diron finally got his bowsprit over the enemy's stern and sent the jib-boom through her mainsail. In the next moment, while part of his crew maintained the gunfire, the rest charged onto the Dominica, leading to brutal hand-to-hand combat. Men were hacked down with swords and shot with pistols until the deck was strewn with the dead and wounded. The English crew only surrendered when their captain, G. W. Barrette, was killed, all the other officers except for the surgeon and one midshipman were either dead or injured, and altogether sixty men were incapacitated. Of the crew from the Decatur, five were killed and fifteen were wounded.
The Globe privateer had a desperate fight, on the 3d of November, with two heavily armed packet brigs. Broadside after broadside was exchanged at the distance of a few yards, and the brigs were compelled to strike. But when the Globe hauled alongside to take possession of one of them, she raised her colors again and fired a broadside; after which both brigs sailed slowly away, while the Globe, which had lost twenty-three men, was too badly crippled to follow.
The Globe privateer had a tough fight on November 3rd with two heavily armed packet brigs. They exchanged broadside after broadside at close range, and the brigs were forced to surrender. However, when the Globe moved in to take control of one of them, it raised its colors again and fired back. After that, both brigs sailed away slowly while the Globe, having lost twenty-three men, was too badly damaged to pursue.
The privateer Saratoga, of four guns, captured the English mail packet Morgiana, which carried eighteen guns, by boarding. There was an obstinate defence, and two of the packet's men were killed and five wounded, while the Saratoga lost three killed and seven wounded. During the fight the mail was thrown overboard.
The privateer Saratoga, armed with four guns, boarded and captured the English mail packet Morgiana, which had eighteen guns. There was a stubborn defense, resulting in two of the packet's crew being killed and five wounded, while the Saratoga suffered three fatalities and seven injuries. During the battle, the mail was thrown overboard.
Near the Canary Islands a British sloop-of-war decoyed the privateer Grampus under her guns, and then suddenly opened her ports and gave her a whole broadside at half pistol-shot. This discharge killed the captain and one man and wounded several others, and damaged the rigging badly, so that: the Grampus escaped with difficulty.
Near the Canary Islands, a British warship lured the privateer Grampus under its guns and then suddenly opened fire, unleashing a full broadside at close range. This attack killed the captain and one crew member, wounded several others, and seriously damaged the rigging, forcing the Grampus to escape with great difficulty.
On Monday, the 5th of July, the Yankee, a fishing222smack, was fitted out in New York harbor to capture by stratagem the British sloop-of-war Eagle. A calf, a sheep, a goose, and three fishermen were placed conspicuously on the deck, while below were concealed forty men armed with muskets. She then sailed down the bay. The Eagle overhauled her, and ordered her to report to the Commodore. Suddenly, at the signal word "Lawrence," the forty men appeared, levelled their muskets across the deck of the Eagle, and with one volley killed three of her men and drove the others below. She struck without firing a gun, and as she was taken up the harbor she was greeted by the cheers of a multitude of people who were on the Battery, celebrating Independence day.
On Monday, July 5th, the Yankee, a fishing222smack, was prepared in New York harbor to strategically capture the British sloop-of-war Eagle. A calf, a sheep, a goose, and three fishermen were placed clearly on the deck, while below deck, forty men armed with muskets were hidden. Then, she sailed down the bay. The Eagle caught up with her and asked her to report to the Commodore. Suddenly, at the signal word "Lawrence," the forty men appeared, aimed their muskets across the deck of the Eagle, and with one shot killed three of her crew members, forcing the others below deck. She surrendered without firing a shot, and as she was taken up the harbor, a crowd of people at the Battery, celebrating Independence Day, greeted her with cheers.
While an American fishing-smack was thus capturing a British sloop-of-war in the harbor of New York, on the other side of the ocean the London Evening Star was just saying: "The American navy must be annihilated; her arsenals and dockyards consumed. The American merchant-vessels ought perhaps to be permitted to arm against the pirates of the Mediterranean or the Ladrones of China; but, like certain places of entertainment in England, they ought to be compelled to exhibit in large letters, on their main-sails, Licensed to carry guns, pursuant to a British act of Parliament."
While an American fishing boat was capturing a British warship in the harbor of New York, across the ocean, the London Evening Star was reporting: "The American navy must be destroyed; their arsenals and shipyards should be wiped out. American merchant ships might be allowed to arm themselves against the pirates of the Mediterranean or the thieves of China; however, like certain venues in England, they should be required to display in large letters on their main sails, Licensed to carry guns, as per a British act of Parliament."
CHAPTER XIII. PEACE NEGOTIATIONS.—CAMPAIGN AGAINST THE CREEKS.
223
Condition of Affairs at the Opening of the Third Year—Congressional Appropriations—Russian Offers of Mediation—Jackson's Preparations—Battles of Emucfau, Enotachopco, and Horseshoe Bend.
State of Affairs at the Start of the Third Year—Congressional Funding—Russian Mediation Offers—Jackson's Preparations—Battles of Emucfau, Enotachopco, and Horseshoe Bend.
At the beginning of the third year of the war the prospects of the Americans were more discouraging than at any previous period. The European wars had come to an end for the time, Napoleon having been overthrown at Leipsic, and Great Britain, with an immense navy and an abundance of veteran troops, was at liberty to turn her entire attention upon the enemy across the Atlantic. Indeed, her fleet on our coast had been gradually increasing for several months, and Admirals Warren and Cockburn had shown a determination not to confine their operations to combats of vessel with vessel, but wherever practicable to send a force ashore to harass the people, burn their homes, and carry off their movable property. Harrison's victory was almost the only achievement of the American land forces worth mentioning. The little navy was as gallant as ever, and had suffered no defeat in 224anything like an equal fight, except in the case of the Chesapeake; but now it seemed likely to be overwhelmed by a power that could send against it a thousand war-ships. Two powerful ones had already been sent for the special purpose of capturing one of our cruisers, the Essex, with orders to follow her wherever she went, and take her at all hazards. The operations of the privateers had struck the English nation in its most tender spot, the pocket, and roused it to a furious determination for vengeance; while the London journals were boldly talking of schemes for using the opportunity to cut off various slices of our territory.
At the start of the third year of the war, the situation for the Americans was more discouraging than ever before. The wars in Europe had wrapped up for now, as Napoleon was defeated at Leipsic, and Great Britain, with its massive navy and plenty of experienced troops, could focus entirely on the conflict across the Atlantic. In fact, their fleet on our coast had been steadily increasing for several months, and Admirals Warren and Cockburn were determined not to limit their efforts to ship-to-ship battles; wherever possible, they aimed to send forces ashore to harass civilians, burn their homes, and seize their property. Harrison's victory was practically the only notable achievement of the American land forces. The small navy was still as brave as ever and had faced no defeat in 224any real fight, except for the case of the Chesapeake; but now it appeared likely to be overwhelmed by a power capable of sending a thousand warships against it. Two powerful ships had already been dispatched specifically to capture one of our cruisers, the Essex, with orders to follow her wherever she went and seize her at all costs. The actions of the privateers had hit the English nation where it hurt the most—their finances—and sparked a furious desire for revenge; meanwhile, London newspapers were openly discussing plans to take advantage of the situation to seize parts of our territory.
Though the Federal party had declined in popular strength, its leaders in Congress opposed the war as bitterly as ever; but after considerable debate an act was passed to increase the regular army to sixty thousand men, enlisted for five years. A bounty of a hundred and twenty-four dollars was voted for recruits, and eight dollars to each man who brought in one. Seven hundred men were added to the Marine Corps, half a million dollars appropriated for a floating battery, and a hundred dollars offered for every prisoner brought home by a privateer. There was a surplus of a million dollars in the treasury, and five millions were yet to be paid in from loans, while the revenue for the ensuing year was estimated 225at ten millions. The expenditures were estimated at forty-five millions, and Congress authorized a new loan of twenty-five millions, and a reissue of ten millions in treasury notes.
Although the Federal party had lost popularity, its leaders in Congress opposed the war just as fiercely as before. After much debate, they passed a law to increase the regular army to sixty thousand soldiers, enlisted for five years. They voted a bonus of one hundred and twenty-four dollars for new recruits, and eight dollars for each man who brought in a recruit. Seven hundred men were added to the Marine Corps, half a million dollars was allocated for a floating battery, and one hundred dollars was offered for every prisoner a privateer brought home. There was a surplus of one million dollars in the treasury, with five million still to be collected from loans, while the revenue for the next year was estimated 225at ten million. The projected expenditures were estimated at forty-five million, and Congress approved a new loan of twenty-five million and a reissue of ten million in treasury notes.
The Russian Government offered its friendly offices as a mediator for peace, three times in the course of the war; but each time the offer was rejected by England. Once—in March, 1813—the offer was formally accepted on the part of the United States, and Albert Gallatin and James A. Bayard, who believed the English Government would accept it as readily, sailed for St. Petersburg, to join John Quincy Adams, American Minister at the Russian Court, in negotiating the peace. The London Courier probably spoke the sentiments of a large part of the British public when it said:
The Russian Government offered to act as a mediator for peace three times during the war, but each time England turned it down. Once—in March 1813—the United States formally accepted the offer, and Albert Gallatin and James A. Bayard, who thought the English Government would agree just as easily, set sail for St. Petersburg to join John Quincy Adams, the American Minister at the Russian Court, in negotiating peace. The London Courier likely reflected the views of many in the British public when it said:
"We hope the Russian mediation will be refused. Indeed, we are sure it will. We have a love for our naval preeminence that cannot bear to have it even touched by a foreign hand. Russia can be hardly supposed to be adverse to the principle of armed neutrality, and that idea alone would be sufficient to make us decline the offer. We must take our stand, never to commit our naval rights to the mediation of any power. This is the flag we must nail to the national mast, and go down rather than strike it. The hour of concession 226and compromise is past. Peace must be the consequence of punishment to America; and retraction of her insolent demands must precede negotiation. The thunder of our cannon must first strike terror into the American shores, and Great Britain must be seen and felt in all the majesty of her might, from Boston to Savannah, from the lakes of Canada to the mouths of the Mississippi."
"We hope that Russia's mediation will be rejected. In fact, we are confident it will be. Our commitment to our naval dominance is too strong to allow it to be touched by a foreign nation. It's hard to believe that Russia would oppose the idea of armed neutrality, and that alone is enough for us to turn down the offer. We need to stand firm, refusing to let any power mediate our naval rights. This is the principle we must uphold, and we would rather face defeat than abandon it. The time for concessions and compromises has passed. Peace must come as a result of punishment for America; and the withdrawal of her arrogant demands must happen before we can negotiate. The roar of our cannons must first instill fear on American shores, and Great Britain must be recognized and felt in all her power, from Boston to Savannah, from the Canadian lakes to the mouths of the Mississippi."
The English Government declined the offer of mediation, as before, but expressed a willingness to nominate plenipotentiaries to make direct negotiations with the American commissioners, suggesting that the conference be held in London, unless the Americans preferred Gottenburg, Sweden. This answer was made in September, 1813, and reached the United States Government in official form in November. The President communicated it to Congress early in January, 1814, and the proposition was accepted; Gottenburg being chosen as the place, and Henry Clay and Jonathan Russell being added to Messrs. Adams, Bayard, and Gallatin as commissioners. Their instructions were, to insist on an absolute discontinuance of the practice of search and impressment, and to offer, in consideration of this, an agreement to exclude British seamen from American vessels, and to surrender deserters.
The English government rejected the mediation offer again but showed a willingness to send representatives to negotiate directly with the American commissioners, suggesting that the conference take place in London unless the Americans preferred Gothenburg, Sweden. This response was given in September 1813 and officially reached the United States government in November. The President shared it with Congress in early January 1814, and the proposal was accepted, with Gothenburg chosen as the location. Henry Clay and Jonathan Russell were added to Messrs. Adams, Bayard, and Gallatin as commissioners. Their instructions were to demand a complete end to the practices of search and impressment, and in exchange for this, to propose an agreement to prevent British seamen from serving on American vessels and to return deserters.
But the best way to secure an honorable peace-227and indeed it will be the only way, until the millennium—is by exhibiting an ability to prosecute successful war. With the new appropriations, the Administration, while sending its peace commissioners abroad, prepared for more vigorous war within our own borders.
But the best way to achieve a respectable peace—227and really, it’s the only way until the millennium—is by showing the capability to carry out a successful war. With the new funding, the Administration, while sending its peace representatives overseas, got ready for a more intense conflict within our own territory.
After a great deal of trouble with troops who believed their terms of service had expired, and who finally marched home in spite of all arguments and protests, Jackson, who had been made a major-general, found himself at Fort Strother in January, 1814, with nine hundred raw recruits and a few dozen men who had participated in his autumn campaign. With these and two hundred Indians he set out on a raid into the country of the Creeks.
After a lot of trouble with soldiers who thought their service time was up, and who ultimately marched home despite all the arguments and protests, Jackson, who had been promoted to major-general, found himself at Fort Strother in January 1814, with nine hundred inexperienced recruits and a few dozen men who had taken part in his fall campaign. With these troops and two hundred Native Americans, he set out on a raid into Creek territory.
On the 22d, near Emucfau, on Tallapoosa River, he was attacked by a large force, who made a feint on his right and then fell heavily upon his left. The General had anticipated this plan, and strengthened his left, so that after a stubborn fight the enemy were routed and pursued for three miles.
On the 22nd, near Emucfau, on the Tallapoosa River, he was attacked by a large force that made a fake attack on his right and then struck hard on his left. The General had expected this move and bolstered his left side, so after a tough battle, the enemy was defeated and chased for three miles.
Two days later, on the return march, the troops were in the act of crossing Enotachopco Creek, when the Indians attacked again. After a few shots, the rear guard retreated in disorder, leaving not more than a hundred men to face the enemy; but these, by determined bravery, and especially 228by skilful use of a six-pounder with grape-shot, defeated the savages, and pursued them for two miles. Jackson himself acted as gunner. He lost in this raid about a hundred men.
Two days later, on the way back, the troops were crossing Enotachopco Creek when the Indians attacked again. After a few shots were fired, the rear guard fell back in chaos, leaving only about a hundred men to confront the enemy. However, through their determined bravery and especially with the skilled use of a six-pounder loaded with grape-shot, they managed to defeat the attackers and chased them for two miles. Jackson took on the role of gunner himself. In this raid, he lost about a hundred men.
In February, Jackson had a new army of five thousand men, including a regiment of United States regulars, in which Sam Houston was an ensign. The only difficulty now was with supplies; but this was enormous. The distance from Fort Deposit to Fort Strother was only forty miles, but the roads were so bad that a wagon-train required seven days to accomplish it, though there was a horse to every barrel of flour in the load. Nearly sixty miles southeast of Fort Strother, and the same distance northeast of Montgomery, is Horseshoe Bend in the Tallapoosa, enclosing a peninsula of one hundred acres, which is less than five hundred feet wide at the neck. Here the Creek warriors, to the number of a thousand, had encamped and fortified themselves, when Jackson, with nearly three thousand men, was marching against them, for the avowed purpose of extermination. The Americans reached the place on the morning of March 27th, and Jackson sent General Coffee with the mounted men and Indians to cross the stream two miles be low, countermarch, and take position on the bank in rear of the village. When he received the signal 229of their arrival, he moved forward with his main force, and planted two field-pieces to play upon the breastwork of logs and earth which crossed the neck of the peninsula. But a two hours' cannonade produced no effect upon it. Coffee and his Indians now crossed the river, set fire to the village, and attacked the enemy in the rear. As Jackson saw by the rising smoke what had been done, he stormed the breastwork in front, and for a little while there was desperate hand-to-hand fighting through the loop-holes. Then the troops, following the example of Major L. P. Montgomery and Ensign Houston, mounted the works, leapt down among the enemy, and plied the bayonet right and left till the Indians broke and fled. They neither asked for quarter nor received it. Whether they hid themselves in the thickets or attempted to swim the stream, they were hotly pursued, hunted out, and mercilessly shot. A portion found shelter under the bank, where felled timber and a rude breastwork protected them. Jackson summoned them to surrender, promising to spare their lives; but they shot his messenger. After he had failed to dislodge them either by an artillery fire or a storming party, his troops set fire to the timber, and shot the Indians as they were driven out by the flames. At the close of that day, five hundred and fifty-seven 230of the Creeks lay dead on the peninsula. It is believed that not more than two hundred escaped. One chief, Manowa, saved himself after he had been badly wounded, by plunging into the water, holding himself under by grasping a root, and breathing through a reed that reached from his mouth to the surface. After nightfall he rose, swam the stream, and stole away.
In February, Jackson commanded a new army of five thousand men, including a regiment of United States regulars, with Sam Houston serving as an ensign. The only major problem at that point was with supplies, which was significant. The distance from Fort Deposit to Fort Strother was just forty miles, but the roads were in such poor condition that a wagon train took seven days to make the trip, even with one horse for every barrel of flour being transported. Almost sixty miles southeast of Fort Strother and the same distance northeast of Montgomery lies Horseshoe Bend in the Tallapoosa River. It encloses a peninsula of one hundred acres, which is less than five hundred feet wide at the neck. Here, a thousand Creek warriors had set up camp and fortified themselves while Jackson, with nearly three thousand men, marched toward them with the declared intent of extermination. The Americans arrived at the location on the morning of March 27th, and Jackson sent General Coffee with the mounted troops and Indians to cross the river two miles downstream, then return and position themselves on the bank behind the village. When he received the signal 229of their arrival, he advanced with his main force, positioning two field guns to target the log and earth barricade blocking the neck of the peninsula. However, a two-hour bombardment had no impact on it. Coffee and his Indians then crossed the river, set the village ablaze, and attacked the enemy from the rear. Seeing the smoke rise from the village, Jackson surged forward to attack the barricade directly, resulting in intense hand-to-hand combat through the loop-holes. The troops, following the lead of Major L. P. Montgomery and Ensign Houston, climbed the fortifications, leaped down among the enemy, and used their bayonets left and right until the Indians broke and fled without asking for quarter or receiving any. Whether they sought refuge in the thickets or tried to swim across the river, they were relentlessly pursued, hunted down, and mercilessly shot. Some took cover under the bank, where fallen timber and a makeshift barricade shielded them. Jackson called for them to surrender, promising to spare their lives, but they shot his messenger. After failing to dislodge them with artillery fire or an assault party, his troops set the timber on fire and shot the Indians as they were forced out by the flames. By the end of that day, five hundred and fifty-seven 230Creeks lay dead on the peninsula, and it is believed that no more than two hundred escaped. One chief, Manowa, after suffering serious wounds, saved himself by diving into the water, holding on to a root, and breathing through a reed that reached from his mouth to the surface. When night fell, he emerged, swam across the river, and made his escape.
Jackson lost one hundred and thirty-one white soldiers and fifty-four Cherokees. Major Montgomery was killed, and Ensign Houston was wounded.
Jackson lost 131 white soldiers and 54 Cherokees. Major Montgomery was killed, and Ensign Houston was injured.
The savagery of this warfare is explained by the fact that the Creeks were not fighting for any cause of their own, real or pretended, but only as mercenaries of the English. In a letter written at this time, Jackson said: "While we fight the savage, who makes war only because he delights in blood, and who has gotten his booty when he has scalped his victim, we are, through him, contending against an enemy of more inveterate character and deeper design. So far as my exertions can contribute, the purposes, both of the savage and his instigator, shall be defeated."
The brutality of this warfare is due to the fact that the Creeks weren’t fighting for any cause of their own, whether real or made-up, but only as hired hands for the English. In a letter written during this time, Jackson said: "While we combat the savage, who fights solely for the thrill of bloodshed and has claimed his prize once he has scalped his victim, we are, through him, battling against an enemy with a more entrenched and sinister agenda. To the best of my abilities, I will ensure that the goals of both the savage and his instigator are thwarted."
By these battles, the power of the Creeks was completely broken. Jackson compelled the remnant of the tribe to move north, and that summer they were fed by the Government.
By these battles, the power of the Creeks was totally destroyed. Jackson forced the remaining members of the tribe to move north, and that summer, they were provided food by the Government.
CHAPTER XIV. BROWN'S CAMPAIGN ON THE NIAGARA.
231
The March to Buffalo—Capture of Fort Erie—Battle of Chippewa—Brown's Plans—Battle of Lundy's Lane—Siege of Fort Erie by the British.
The March to Buffalo—Taking Fort Erie—Battle of Chippewa—Brown's Plans—Battle of Lundy's Lane—Siege of Fort Erie by the British.
Colonel Winfield Scott, who after the failure of Wilkinson's expedition had spent a large part of the winter at Albany, arranging with Governor Tompkins the plans for the opening year, was made a brigadier-general in March, and with General Brown put the army at Plattsburg in motion for the Niagara frontier. Brown soon went to Sackett's Harbor, leaving Scott to conduct the long march alone. After passing Utica, the route lay largely through a wilderness. Where now stands Rochester, a city of a hundred thousand inhabitants, there was then but a single log house, and the scenery about the Genesee Falls, now closely hemmed in with tall buildings, was picturesque with forests and lively with rattlesnakes.
Colonel Winfield Scott, who after Wilkinson's expedition failed spent much of the winter in Albany working with Governor Tompkins on plans for the upcoming year, was promoted to brigadier general in March. Along with General Brown, he set the army at Plattsburg in motion toward the Niagara frontier. Brown soon went to Sackett's Harbor, leaving Scott to lead the long march by himself. After passing Utica, the route mainly went through a wilderness. Where Rochester now stands, a city of a hundred thousand people, there was only a single log cabin at the time, and the area around the Genesee Falls, now surrounded by tall buildings, was picturesque with forests and filled with rattlesnakes.
The army that assembled at Buffalo consisted of Scott's and Ripley's brigades of regulars, Porter's brigade of militia, and Hindman's battalion of reg232ular artillery. A camp of instruction was formed at once, the modern French system being adopted, and for three months drilling went on every day with the most rigid regularity. The commanding General drilled the officers in squads, and they in turn drilled the men; after which came company and battalion drills, and finally evolutions in line. It is said that Scott had but a single copy of the French work on tactics, on which all his instruction was based, and this had to be explained to the officers individually, most of whom were not able to read French.
The army that gathered at Buffalo included Scott's and Ripley's brigades of regular troops, Porter's brigade of militia, and Hindman's battalion of regular artillery. A training camp was set up right away, using the modern French system, and for three months, drills occurred every day with strict regularity. The commanding General trained the officers in small groups, and they, in turn, trained the soldiers; then came company and battalion drills, and finally formations in line. It’s said that Scott had only one copy of the French manual on tactics, which all of his instruction was based on, and this had to be explained to the officers one by one, most of whom couldn’t read French.
Late in June, General Brown reached Buffalo, and a campaign across the river was planned at once. Early in the morning of July 3d the troops of Scott and Hindman crossed the Niagara from Black Rock, landing below Fort Erie, while Ripley's crossed a little later and landed above the fort. The work was invested, and after the exchange of a few shots, by which four Americans and one man of the garrison were killed, it surrendered. A hundred and seventy men were made prisoners and sent across the river.
Late in June, General Brown arrived in Buffalo, and a campaign across the river was quickly organized. Early in the morning of July 3rd, the troops of Scott and Hindman crossed the Niagara from Black Rock, landing below Fort Erie, while Ripley's troops crossed a bit later and landed above the fort. They surrounded the fort, and after a brief exchange of gunfire, which resulted in the deaths of four Americans and one member of the garrison, it surrendered. One hundred and seventy men were taken prisoner and sent across the river.
The main body of the British forces, commanded by General Riall, was at Chippewa, on the bank of the Niagara just above the great falls, about sixteen miles below Fort Erie. A detachment, com233manded by Lieutenant-Colonel Pearson, had been thrown forward as a corps of observation nearly to the fort.
The main group of British forces, led by General Riall, was at Chippewa, on the bank of the Niagara River just above the big falls, around sixteen miles below Fort Erie. A detachment, commanded by Lieutenant-Colonel Pearson, had been sent ahead as a scouting unit almost to the fort.
On the 4th of July the Americans marched on Chippewa. Scott's brigade, starting in the morning, led the van, and had a running fight the whole sixteen miles with Pearson's detachment. That officer afterward remarked that he was surprised at the vigor of the pursuit, and could not account for it till he remembered what day it was. When they arrived at Chippewa River, it was nightfall, and Pearson crossed it and joined Riall. Scott rested or the night on the south bank of Street's Creek, which is two miles south of the Chippewa. These two streams flow by nearly parallel courses into the Niagara, and on the plain between them the battle of Chippewa was fought next day, July 5th. Near the bank of the Niagara ran the high road. About a mile west of it was a heavy wood.
On July 4th, the Americans marched on Chippewa. Scott's brigade, starting in the morning, led the charge and had a running fight the entire sixteen miles with Pearson's detachment. That officer later noted that he was surprised by the intensity of the pursuit and couldn't figure it out until he remembered what day it was. When they reached Chippewa River, it was night, and Pearson crossed it to join Riall. Scott rested for the night on the south bank of Street's Creek, which is two miles south of Chippewa. These two streams flow nearly parallel into the Niagara, and the battle of Chippewa was fought the next day, July 5th, on the plain between them. The main road ran near the bank of the Niagara, and about a mile west of it was a dense forest.
The corps of observation pursued by Scott had destroyed the bridges over the small streams as it retreated; and it was assumed by General Brown that when he approached the Chippewa, the bridge over that stream would also be destroyed. He therefore delayed his attack while materials for a new bridge were prepared, so that when pursuit was begun it might not be interrupted. But General 234Riall, as it proved, so far from contemplating retreat, determined to assume the offensive himself.
The observation corps led by Scott had destroyed the bridges over the smaller streams as they fell back, and General Brown assumed that when he got close to the Chippewa, the bridge over that stream would also be gone. He decided to postpone his attack while they prepared materials for a new bridge, ensuring that once they began pursuing, it wouldn’t be disrupted. However, General 234Riall, as it turned out, was not thinking about retreating but instead decided to take the initiative himself.
Early in the day, skirmishing began along the edge of the wood on the left, by the light troops and Indians. This at last became so annoying to the American pickets, that Porter's militia and the Indians under Red Jacket were moved through the woods still farther to the left, to flank the enemy's skirmishers. Scouts carried intelligence of this movement to Riall, and Porter's force, which began the action in good order, was soon charged by a heavy column of British regulars, before which it broke and fled.
Early in the day, small fights broke out along the edge of the woods on the left, involving light troops and Native Americans. Eventually, this became so bothersome to the American pickets that Porter's militia and the Native Americans under Red Jacket were moved through the woods further to the left to outflank the enemy's skirmishers. Scouts informed Riall of this movement, and Porter's force, which started the action in good shape, was quickly charged by a large group of British regulars, causing it to break and flee.
General Brown, who had been at the front watching this movement, seeing a great cloud of dust on the left of the British lines, rode in that direction and found that Riall was pushing forward his whole force. Then he rode straight for the American rear, to hasten up Ripley's troops, who were considerably behind those of Scott. Soon after he had crossed the bridge over Street's Creek, he met Scott, who was marching over for a dress parade on the plain. "The enemy is advancing. You will have a fight," said Brown to Scott as he passed him.
General Brown, who had been at the front watching the movement, saw a huge cloud of dust on the left side of the British lines. He rode in that direction and discovered that Riall was moving his entire force forward. Then, he headed straight for the American rear to hurry Ripley's troops, who were lagging behind Scott's men. Shortly after crossing the bridge over Street's Creek, he encountered Scott, who was marching over for a dress parade on the plain. "The enemy is advancing. You're going to have a fight," Brown told Scott as he passed by him.
The British were already deployed in the plain, but hidden from Scott by a fringe of foliage along the creek. "Nothing but Buffalo militia!" said 235Riall, as the American column came in sight, and opened his guns upon it. But when he saw them pass the bridge without wavering under a heavy fire, and deploy in order of battle, he changed his mind. "Why, these are regulars!" he exclaimed.
The British were already set up in the field, but Scott couldn't see them due to a line of trees along the creek. "Just Buffalo militia!" said 235Riall as the American troops came into view and began firing on them. But when he saw the Americans cross the bridge without flinching under heavy fire and organize into battle formation, he changed his tune. "Wow, these are regulars!" he exclaimed.
Towson's battery, of three guns, included in Scott's command, was planted on the high road, and the British artillery, nine pieces, had a similar position some distance to the north. Of Scott's three battalions. Major Jesup's was thrown out on the left, Major McNeil's had the centre, and Major Leavenworth's the right. The firing along the lines began at once. Seeing that by the retreat of Porter his force was likely to be flanked on the left, Scott ordered Jesup to move obliquely in that direction, and attack the extreme right of the enemy in the woods, which order Jesup's men executed, under fire, with precision and success.
Towson's battery, made up of three guns and part of Scott's command, was set up on the main road, while the British artillery, with nine pieces, had a similar position a bit to the north. Of Scott's three battalions, Major Jesup's was positioned on the left, Major McNeil's was in the center, and Major Leavenworth's was on the right. Firing along the lines began immediately. Noticing that Porter's retreat left his force vulnerable to a flank attack on the left, Scott instructed Jesup to move diagonally in that direction and strike at the enemy's far right in the woods. Jesup's men carried out this order under fire with accuracy and success.
The British right wing, in conflict with Jesup, became detached from the main body, whose right was thereby left exposed. Scott instantly saw his advantage and profited by it. He ordered McNeil's battalion to charge obliquely upon the broken right of the main body of the enemy, and Leavenworth's at the same time to charge obliquely upon its left; the two battalions moving as if to unite at a point behind the British line. When this move236ment was made, the opposing lines were within eighty paces of each other, and the firing had all the time been increasing in rapidity and destructiveness. Two guns of Towson's battery—for one had been dismounted by a shot from the enemy's —wheeled into a position from which they could pour grape and canister through the British ranks, and their last discharge before the infantry crossed bayonets was an enfilading fire that wrought dreadful havoc.
The British right wing, in conflict with Jesup, became disconnected from the main group, leaving its right vulnerable. Scott quickly recognized his opportunity and took advantage of it. He ordered McNeil's battalion to charge diagonally at the weakened right side of the enemy's main force, while Leavenworth's battalion simultaneously charged diagonally at its left, with both battalions moving as if to unite at a point behind the British line. At this moment236the opposing lines were within eighty paces of each other, and the gunfire had been steadily increasing in speed and destructiveness. Two guns from Towson's battery—since one had been knocked out by an enemy shot—maneuvered into a position from which they could fire grape and canister directly through the British ranks, and their last shot before the infantry engaged in close combat was an enfilading fire that caused terrible devastation.
Thus decimated by the artillery, the enemy's line soon crumbled and broke into a disorderly retreat before the steady charge of the infantry. About the same time Jesup repelled a heavy charge by a counter charge, and the entire body of Riall's forces fled with all haste across the Chippewa, Scott's men following closely and securing some prisoners.
Thus devastated by the artillery, the enemy's line quickly fell apart and broke into a chaotic retreat before the steady advance of the infantry. Around the same time, Jesup countered a strong charge with his own, and the whole force of Riall's troops rushed across the Chippewa in a panic, with Scott's men close behind, capturing some prisoners.
It was a clean victory, gained by hard fighting and skilful manoeuvring; and as the battle took place in a plain where there was scarcely any cover of any kind for the troops on either side, the losses were exceedingly heavy. Just how many men were actually engaged, is a matter of dispute. But on the side of the Americans the number appears not to have been over nineteen hundred, Porter's troops going out of the action before it was fairly begun, and Ripley's not arriving in time to take any part. 237The number of Riall's troops in the fight appears to have been about twenty-one hundred. The loss of the Americans, in killed, wounded, and missing, was three hundred and twenty-seven; that of the British, five hundred and three. These are the figures of the official reports, which exclude the Indians.
It was a clear victory, achieved through tough fighting and skillful tactics; and since the battle occurred in an open field with hardly any cover for either side, the losses were extremely high. The exact number of soldiers involved is debated. However, it seems that the American side had no more than nineteen hundred troops, as Porter's unit left the battle before it really started, and Ripley's did not arrive in time to participate. 237 Riall's forces in the battle were around twenty-one hundred. The American losses, including killed, wounded, and missing, totaled three hundred and twenty-seven, while the British losses were five hundred and three. These figures come from the official reports, which do not include the Indians.
Riall did not tarry long to hold his position on the Chippewa. He soon sent a portion of his troops to the forts on the lower Niagara, while with the remainder he retreated to Burlington Heights. His Indian allies, eighty-seven of whom had been killed, while they had not taken a single scalp, all deserted him in disgust.
Riall didn't stay in his position on the Chippewa for long. He quickly sent some of his troops to the forts on the lower Niagara, while he retreated to Burlington Heights with the rest. His Indian allies, eighty-seven of whom had been killed and who hadn't taken a single scalp, all left him in disappointment.
This first battle of the new campaign on the Niagara was a great inspiration to the American people, showing them that American soldiers, if properly drilled and handled, could face and defeat the best troops of the British army; for those under Riall at Chippewa were some of the crack regiments—the Royal Scots, the King's, and the Hundredth. An English writer said: "We have now got an enemy who fights as bravely as ourselves. For some time the Americans cut no figure on land. They have now proved to us that they only wanted time to acquire a little discipline. They have now proved to us what they are made of, and they are 238the same sort of men as those who captured whole armies under Burgoyne and Cornwallis; that they are neither to be frightened nor silenced; and that if we should beat them at last, we cannot expect to do it without expending three or four hundred millions of money, keeping up all our present taxes, and adding to their amount, or imposing new taxes. These are the natural consequences of battles such as that of Chippewa."
This first battle of the new campaign at Niagara was a huge inspiration for the American people, showing them that American soldiers, if properly trained and managed, could stand up to and defeat the best troops of the British army. Those under Riall at Chippewa were among the top regiments—the Royal Scots, the King's, and the Hundredth. An English writer noted: "We now have an enemy who fights as bravely as we do. For a while, the Americans didn’t make much of an impact on land. They have now shown us that they just needed time to develop some discipline. They have demonstrated their capabilities, and they are 238the same kind of men who captured entire armies under Burgoyne and Cornwallis; they cannot be intimidated or silenced. If we ultimately defeat them, we shouldn’t expect to do so without spending three or four hundred million dollars, maintaining all our current taxes, increasing them, or imposing new ones. These are the inevitable results of battles like the one at Chippewa."
Two days after the battle, the Americans crossed Chippewa River, and marched on Fort George. On the way, Colonel Stone, of the New York militia, burned the village of St. Davids, for which he was promptly court-martialled and dismissed from the service. Fort George was invested, and then General Brown sent to Sackett's Harbor to procure heavy guns for its reduction. But Commodore Chauncey was ill, and it seems not to have occurred to him that any other officer could command the fleet for their transportation. So Brown, unable to procure siege guns, abandoned the siege, and marched back to Queenstown, whence he sent his sick across the river, and then prepared for an active campaign.
Two days after the battle, the Americans crossed the Chippewa River and marched toward Fort George. On the way, Colonel Stone of the New York militia burned the village of St. Davids, for which he was quickly court-martialed and dismissed from service. Fort George was surrounded, and then General Brown sent to Sackett's Harbor to get heavy guns for its attack. However, Commodore Chauncey was sick and it seems he didn’t think any other officer could take command of the fleet for their transport. So, Brown, unable to get siege guns, called off the siege and marched back to Queenstown, where he sent his sick across the river and then got ready for an active campaign.
His idea was, to move against Burlington Heights and capture them, then continue his march along the northern shore of the lake and capture York, 239and thence, still following the lake shore, march on Kingston. But for the execution of this plan he relied upon the cooperation of Chauncey's fleet, and that he soon found he was not likely to have.
His plan was to advance on Burlington Heights and take control of them, then continue his march along the northern edge of the lake to seize York, 239and from there, still following the lake, head towards Kingston. However, to carry out this strategy, he needed the support of Chauncey's fleet, which he soon realized was unlikely to happen.
On the 24th of July he continued his retreat to Chippewa, with the hope of drawing out Riall. In the afternoon of the 25th he received information that the enemy had thrown a thousand men across the Niagara, from Queenstown to Lewiston. Supposing they intended to capture the magazine at Schlosser and intercept supplies coming from Buffalo, General Brown determined to draw them back if possible by again threatening the forts at the mouth of the river. With this purpose, he at once sent forward General Scott with thirteen hundred men, consisting of the battalions of Colonel Brady and Majors Jesup, Leavenworth, and McNeil, Tow-son's artillery, and a detachment of cavalry under Captain Harris.
On July 24th, he continued his retreat to Chippewa, hoping to lure Riall out. In the afternoon of the 25th, he learned that the enemy had deployed a thousand troops across the Niagara, from Queenstown to Lewiston. Believing they intended to seize the magazine at Schlosser and cut off supplies from Buffalo, General Brown decided to try to draw them back by threatening the forts at the river’s mouth again. To achieve this, he immediately sent General Scott forward with thirteen hundred men, including the battalions of Colonel Brady and Majors Jesup, Leavenworth, and McNeil, Towson's artillery, and a cavalry detachment led by Captain Harris.
This force, starting about five o'clock in the afternoon, marched down the road to the Falls. As they approached the house of a widow Wilson, near Table Rock, several British officers were seen to come out, mount hastily, and ride away, but not till they had reconnoitred, through their field-glasses, the American column. The widow informed Scott that the officers were Riall and his 240staff, and that the enemy's advance consisted of eight hundred regulars and three hundred militia, with two pieces of artillery; the truth being that the force had nearly twice that strength.
This group, starting around five in the afternoon, marched down the road to the Falls. As they got closer to the house of a widow named Wilson, near Table Rock, several British officers were seen coming out, quickly getting on their horses, and riding away, but not before they had scouted the American column with their binoculars. The widow told Scott that the officers were Riall and his 240staff, and that the enemy's advance included eight hundred regular soldiers and three hundred militia, along with two pieces of artillery; the reality was that the force was nearly twice that size.
Scott pressed forward eagerly, throwing out a part of his men to the left, and sent back word to General Brown that the enemy was in front. As the Americans emerged into a cleared field, they suddenly found themselves confronted by the British line, eighteen hundred strong, which was drawn up in Lundy's Lane, a road that starts from a point near the great Falls and runs westward. In the centre of the enemy's line was a battery of nine pieces, which occupied a rounded hillock of gentle slope just high enough to give it command of the entire field. Scott saw at once that he was in presence of a greatly superior force; but retreat was almost impossible, and he judged it best to attack boldly, and trust to Brown for prompt reenforcement. As the Americans deployed in line of battle, the hostile forces were not more than a hundred and fifty paces apart, and firing began at once. The sun was now less than an hour high.
Scott moved forward eagerly, sending some of his men to the left and relaying word to General Brown that the enemy was ahead. As the Americans stepped into a cleared field, they suddenly found themselves facing the British line, eighteen hundred strong, positioned along Lundy’s Lane, a road that starts near the great Falls and extends westward. In the center of the enemy's line was a battery of nine cannons, situated on a gently sloping hill just high enough to oversee the entire field. Scott realized he was up against a significantly larger force; however, retreat was nearly impossible, so he decided it was best to attack boldly and rely on Brown for quick reinforcements. As the Americans lined up for battle, the opposing forces were no more than a hundred and fifty paces apart, and firing began immediately. The sun was now less than an hour from setting.
Towson's three guns made a gallant fight, but could effect little against the nine guns of the enemy, which were served rapidly and skilfully. The British left was east of the road that skirted 241the river, and was separated from the rest of the line by a space of two hundred yards, which was filled with brushwood. Jesup's and Brady's commands, partly hidden by this brushwood in the twilight, attacked the detached wing, and after considerable fighting forced it back upon the centre, capturing General Riall and several officers of his staff, after which Jesup and Brady resumed their place in the line. At the same time, the British right wing, which was longer than the American left, was thrown forward in an attempt to envelop it. To meet this danger, Scott sent McNeil's battalion against it, and after severe fighting, with heavy losses, the enemy's flanking movement was frustrated.
Towson's three guns put up a brave fight, but they couldn’t do much against the enemy's nine guns, which were operated quickly and skillfully. The British left was east of the road that ran alongside 241the river and was separated from the rest of the line by a gap of two hundred yards filled with brushwood. Jesup's and Brady's commands, partly hidden by this brushwood in the twilight, attacked the isolated wing and, after a lot of fighting, pushed it back to the center, capturing General Riall and several officers from his staff. After that, Jesup and Brady went back to their positions in the line. At the same time, the British right wing, which extended longer than the American left, advanced in an attempt to surround it. To counter this threat, Scott sent McNeil's battalion against it, and after intense fighting with heavy losses, the enemy's flanking move was stopped.
Both the messenger sent back by Scott and the sound of the guns announced to General Brown what was going on, and he ordered Ripley's brigade and Porter's volunteers to advance and join in the action. At the report of the first gun, Ripley had put his men in marching order, and when the word came to move they moved without a minute's delay. General Brown rode before them to the battle-field, and by the time of their arrival it was dark. About the same time, the enemy also was reënforced.
Both the messenger sent back by Scott and the sound of the guns informed General Brown of the situation, and he ordered Ripley's brigade and Porter's volunteers to advance and participate in the action. At the sound of the first gun, Ripley had his men ready to march, and when the order came to move, they did so without a moment's hesitation. General Brown rode ahead of them to the battlefield, and by the time they arrived, it was dark. Around the same time, the enemy was also reinforced.
Ripley's brigade formed on Scott's right, and joined in the battle, which had not in the least 242abated at the departure of daylight. He soon saw that the strength of the enemy lay in the destructive battery that crowned the hill in the centre, and called upon Colonel James Miller, of the Twenty-first Regiment, to take it. "I'll try, Sir," was the now famous answer of Miller, who at once put his men in motion toward the battery. They crept silently up to a fence at the foot of the slope, put their muskets softly through it, took deliberate aim at the gunners, who had lighted matches in their hands, and at a whispered command fired in volley, shooting down every one of them. Miller's men then rose, pushed the fence flat upon the ground, rushed forward, and cleared the hill of the enemy. Meanwhile Scott's men, obstinately holding their first position, had kept on steadily firing, receiving as constant a fire in return, and both inflicted and suffered heavy loss. McNeil's battalion, having lost its commander and every one of its captains, and fired away all its ammunition, retired from the field; and a little later, Colonel Brady being disabled, his regiment also retired for a similar reason. But a considerable number of the men of these two commands joined themselves to the regiments that still stood firm, and reentered the fight.
Ripley's brigade positioned itself on Scott's right and joined the battle, which hadn't lessened at all with the onset of night. He quickly realized that the enemy's strength came from the powerful artillery stationed on the hill in the center and called on Colonel James Miller of the Twenty-first Regiment to take it. "I'll try, Sir," was the now-famous response from Miller, who immediately directed his men toward the battery. They quietly crawled up to a fence at the bottom of the slope, carefully placed their muskets through it, took deliberate aim at the gunners, who had lit matches in their hands, and at a whispered command fired in unison, taking down every one of them. Miller's men then stood up, pushed the fence down flat, rushed ahead, and cleared the hill of enemy forces. Meanwhile, Scott's men stubbornly maintained their original position, continuing to fire steadily while taking return fire, leading to both sides suffering heavy losses. McNeil's battalion, having lost its commander and all its captains and exhausted its ammunition, retreated from the battlefield; shortly after, Colonel Brady was injured, and his regiment also withdrew for the same reason. However, a significant number of soldiers from these two units joined the regiments that remained steadfast and reentered the fight.
After Miller's capture of the battery, the American line was re-formed, nearly at right angles to its 243former position, facing west, and advanced so as to hold the ground occupied by the battery. The enemy also formed a new line, and for two hours made the most desperate efforts to re-take the guns. There was constant firing, aim being taken by the flashes along the opposing lines, and more than once the bayonets were crossed in bloody hand-to-hand work in the darkness. It is said that at one time the continuous blaze of the cannon and small arms made that part of the field almost as light as day. During the struggle, both parties were reenforced by fresh troops, but Ripley's men firmly held the ground, repelling every attack, till the enemy gave it up and retired.
After Miller captured the artillery position, the American line was re-formed, almost at right angles to its 243former location, facing west, and moved forward to hold the ground where the artillery was. The enemy also established a new line and for two hours made desperate attempts to retake the guns. There was constant firing, with shots taken in response to the flashes along both sides, and more than once soldiers clashed in brutal hand-to-hand combat in the darkness. It's said that at one point, the continuous fire from cannons and small arms lit up that part of the battlefield almost as brightly as day. Throughout the fighting, both sides received reinforcements, but Ripley's men held their ground, repelling every attack until the enemy eventually withdrew.
General Brown and General Scott were both wounded, and the command devolved upon General Ripley, who, an hour after the enemy had retired, withdrew the entire American force from the field, carrying off the wounded, and before morning was in camp at Chippewa. As all the artillery horses had been killed, the guns for which so costly a struggle had been made were left where they stood, and of course they fell into the hands of the enemy when he returned next morning and encamped on the deserted battle-ground. The principal reason why the Americans abandoned the field was, the want of water. 244The whole number of Americans engaged in this battle was about two thousand six hundred; the whole number of British, about four thousand five hundred. The American loss was one hundred and seventy-four killed, five hundred and sixty-five wounded, and one hundred and five missing—almost one third of the entire force. Among the killed or mortally wounded were Colonel Brady and Majors Leavenworth, McNeil, and McFarland. The British loss was eighty-four killed, five hundred and fifty-seven wounded, and two hundred and thirty-five missing or prisoners. The action has been called the Battle of Niagara, and the Battle of Bridgewater, but the most commonly accepted name is Battle of Lundy's Lane.
General Brown and General Scott were both injured, and command passed to General Ripley, who, an hour after the enemy retreated, pulled the entire American force from the field, taking the wounded with him and camped at Chippewa before morning. Since all the artillery horses had been killed, the guns, for which such a costly fight had taken place, were left behind and fell into the enemy's hands when they returned the next morning and set up camp on the abandoned battlefield. The main reason the Americans left the field was the lack of water. 244The total number of Americans involved in this battle was about two thousand six hundred, while the British numbered around four thousand five hundred. The American losses included one hundred seventy-four killed, five hundred sixty-five wounded, and one hundred five missing—almost one-third of the entire force. Among those killed or mortally wounded were Colonel Brady and Majors Leavenworth, McNeil, and McFarland. The British lost eighty-four killed, five hundred fifty-seven wounded, and two hundred thirty-five missing or captured. The engagement is known as the Battle of Niagara, the Battle of Bridgewater, but the most widely recognized name is the Battle of Lundy's Lane.
Ripley soon afterward destroyed the bridge over the Chippewa, and retired toward Buffalo. By Brown's orders, the troops were thrown into Fort Erie, where they were reenforced, and General Ripley was superseded by General Edmund P. Gaines.
Ripley soon afterward destroyed the bridge over the Chippewa and retreated toward Buffalo. By Brown's orders, the troops were moved into Fort Erie, where they received reinforcements, and General Ripley was replaced by General Edmund P. Gaines.
As soon as he was able to move, General Drummond, who had succeeded to the command of the British forces, marched on Fort Erie. A detachment which he sent across the river to attack Buffalo was met and defeated at Black Rock, but a party in boats captured two of Perry's vessels which were moored under the guns of the fort. 245At midnight on the 14th of August, the enemy, who had been busy for two weeks planting batteries and occasionally bombarding the works, attempted to carry them by storm. The Americans were expecting the attack, and the preparations for making it were not more careful and elaborate than those for receiving it. The flints were withdrawn from the British muskets, both to insure silence in the approach and because General Drummond had issued a secret order in which he "strongly recommended a free use of the bayonet," and after dark a great number of scaling-ladders were carried forward and placed in convenient positions. The Americans had their guns charged with grape and canister, dark lanterns burning, and every musket at hand and ready for immediate use. At one battery, for lack of canister, bags were made of tent-cloth, filled with musket-balls, and loaded into the guns.
As soon as he could move, General Drummond, who took over command of the British forces, marched toward Fort Erie. A group he sent across the river to attack Buffalo was confronted and defeated at Black Rock, but a team in boats captured two of Perry's ships that were anchored under the fort's guns. 245At midnight on August 14th, the enemy, who had been busy for two weeks setting up batteries and occasionally shelling the fortifications, tried to take them by storm. The Americans were ready for the attack, and their preparations were as detailed and thorough as those for defending against it. The flints were removed from the British muskets to ensure silence during the approach, and General Drummond had issued a secret order urging "a free use of the bayonet." After dark, a large number of scaling ladders were moved forward and positioned strategically. The Americans had their guns charged with grape shot and canister, dark lanterns lit, and every musket at hand and ready for immediate use. At one battery, due to a lack of canister, bags were made from tent fabric, filled with musket balls, and loaded into the guns.
The storming party was in three columns. That which assaulted the American left, where Towson's battery was placed, marched up in the face of a continuous blaze of artillery and musketry, and, in spite of the storm of shot that rolled through it, tried to scale the defences, and actually crossed bayonets with the defenders. But in vain. Four such assaults were made by this column, and all were 246bloodily repelled. The rapidity with which the guns of the American battery were served, making an almost constant flash, gave it the name of "Tow-son's lighthouse."
The attacking group was arranged in three columns. The one that charged the American left, where Towson's battery was positioned, advanced under heavy fire from artillery and rifles. Despite the hail of bullets flying around them, they attempted to climb the defenses and even clashed bayonets with the defenders. But it was for nothing. Four assaults were launched by this column, and all were 246fiercely repelled. The speed with which the American battery fired, producing almost constant flashes, earned it the nickname "Towson's lighthouse."
On the right of the American works a similar assault was made at the same time by another column, which was met in a similar way. Major Douglass filled his guns to the muzzle with the bags of musket-balls, and though his cannoneers could not distinctly see their enemies, they were so familiar with the contour of the ground in front that they knew how to sweep it as effectively as if it had been broad daylight. Here also the attack failed.
On the right side, the Americans faced a similar attack at the same time from another group, which was countered in the same way. Major Douglass loaded his guns to the top with bags of musket balls, and even though his gunners couldn’t clearly see their opponents, they were so familiar with the lay of the land in front of them that they knew how to cover it just as effectively as if it were broad daylight. Here too, the attack failed.
The central column was a little more successful. The assailants dashed forward with their scaling-ladders, and mounted the parapet of the main fort, but were met at the edge by the Americans, who in a bloody fight hand-to-hand hurled them back. Three times this was repeated, with the same result. The column then moved silently around to another point, put up the ladders again, and mounted so quickly as to get a foothold within the bastion before the Americans could rally in sufficient force at the new point of attack to prevent them. Their commander, Lieutenant-Colonel Drummond, was at their head, and repeatedly called out to his men to "give the Yankees no quarter." Troops were 247rapidly drawn to this point from other parts of the fort, and here the bloodiest work of the night was done. The highest officers present mingled personally in the fray. Lieutenant McDonough, an American, being badly wounded, asked for quarter, which Drummond refused, at the same time repeating his order to his men to refuse it in all cases. McDonough roused himself for one more effort, seized a handspike, and kept several assailants at bay, till Drummond disabled him with a pistol-shot. An American who saw this at once shot Colonel Drummond through the breast, and followed the shot with a bayonet-thrust. The Colonel had in his pocket a copy of General Drummond's secret order, and the bayonet passed through the sentence in which "a free use of the bayonet" was recommended. *
The main column had a bit more success. The attackers rushed forward with their ladders and climbed the walls of the main fort, but they were met at the edge by the Americans, who fiercely pushed them back in close combat. This happened three times, with the same outcome. The column then quietly moved to another spot, set up the ladders again, and climbed so quickly that they gained a foothold inside the bastion before the Americans could regroup in enough numbers to stop them. Leading them was Lieutenant-Colonel Drummond, who repeatedly shouted to his men to "give no mercy to the Yankees." Troops were 247quickly brought to this new location from other areas of the fort, and the most brutal fighting of the night took place here. The highest-ranking officers joined in the battle. Lieutenant McDonough, an American, was severely wounded and asked for mercy, but Drummond refused, insisting his men deny it in all situations. McDonough mustered himself for one last attempt, grabbed a handspike, and held off several attackers until Drummond incapacitated him with a gunshot. An American who witnessed this immediately shot Colonel Drummond in the chest and followed up with a bayonet thrust. The Colonel had a copy of General Drummond's secret orders in his pocket, and the bayonet pierced the line that recommended "a free use of the bayonet."
At daylight the enemy still held the bastion he had gained in the night, and several determined attempts to dislodge him failed, though the number of men he had thrown into it was being continually reduced by an irregular fire directed upon it. The British reserve was now brought up to reenforce the party in the bastion, while Douglass turned the guns of his battery so as to sweep diagonally the
At daylight, the enemy still held onto the bastion he had taken during the night, and several strong attempts to remove him failed, even though the number of men he had deployed there was continually decreasing due to sporadic fire aimed at it. The British reserve was now brought in to reinforce the group in the bastion, while Douglass adjusted the guns of his battery to fire diagonally across the
* This blood-stained document is now in the possession of the New York Historical Society.
* This blood-stained document is now held by the New York Historical Society.
248ground over which it must pass, and Fanning's battery was already playing upon the enemy with considerable effect. But at the moment when the reserves were ready to make a rush for the bastion, there was a tremendous explosion, and the platform of the bastion, with all the men upon it, was hurled into the air. Masses of earth, stones, broken timbers, and dead and living bodies of men rose two hundred feet, and in falling were scattered to a great distance. It was a chest of ammunition that had exploded; but how it happened is unknown. Some of the American officers present believed it to be purely accidental, others said that Lieutenant McDonough, lying wounded at the foot of the bastion, being exasperated at the treatment he had received, applied the match and sacrificed himself for the sake of defeating his barbarous foe. The British reserves at once fell back, the contest was abandoned, and the shattered columns returned to their camp. According to General Drummond's official report, his loss in killed, wounded, and missing, was nine hundred and five. But as he gives the number of his killed as only fifty-eight, while the Americans found two hundred and twenty-two British soldiers dead on the field, it may be that even his acknowledged total loss of nearly a thousand is an understatement. The Americans lost eighty-four, besides 249forty-five men disabled by the cannonade that preceded the night assault.
248ground that they needed to cross, and Fanning's battery was already targeting the enemy with significant impact. But just as the reserves were ready to charge the bastion, there was a massive explosion, and the platform of the bastion, along with all the men on it, was thrown into the air. Large amounts of earth, stones, broken wood, and the bodies of dead and wounded men shot up two hundred feet, and when they fell, they were scattered over a wide area. It was an ammunition chest that exploded, but how it occurred is unclear. Some American officers present thought it was purely accidental, while others believed that Lieutenant McDonough, who was wounded at the bottom of the bastion and frustrated with his treatment, lit the match and sacrificed himself to defeat his ruthless enemy. The British reserves immediately retreated, the battle was called off, and the damaged columns returned to camp. According to General Drummond's official report, his total loss from killed, wounded, and missing was nine hundred and five. However, he reported only fifty-eight killed, while the Americans found two hundred and twenty-two British soldiers dead on the battlefield, so it ’s possible that even his admitted total loss of nearly a thousand is an understatement. The Americans lost eighty-four, along with 249 forty-five men who were disabled by the cannon fire before the night assault.
General Gaines set to work at once to rebuild the ruined bastion and strengthen the whole line of works, while the enemy, after receiving reenforcements, began a siege by regular approaches. They soon brought their parallels so close that they were able to throw shells and hot shot into the fort every day. One shell descended through the roof of General Gaines's headquarters, and exploded at his feet, so injuring him that he was forced to give up the command to General Brown, and retire to Buffalo. The Americans in the fort, as well as the besiegers, had been reenforced, and General Brown planned a grand sortie to break up the siege works. The enemy's camp was two miles in the rear, and one third of his force was thrown forward at a time to work on the parallels. The Americans secretly marked out a road through the woods, leading from their left around to a point close upon the right of the besiegers. On the 17th of September two columns, of about one thousand men each, sallied out from the fort. One column followed the road through the woods and suddenly burst upon the British right, while the other marched through a ravine, against the centre. Before reënforcements could come from the British camp, the Americans 250leaped into the siege works, after bloody fighting overcame all resistance, dismounted the guns and rendered them useless, exploded the magazines, and returned to the fort with many prisoners. This operation cost the Americans five hundred and twenty men, killed, wounded, or missing, and the British six hundred and nine.
General Gaines immediately started rebuilding the damaged fort and reinforcing the entire defensive line, while the enemy, after getting reinforcements, began a siege with organized approaches. They quickly moved their trenches so close that they could launch shells and hot shot into the fort every day. One shell came through the roof of General Gaines's headquarters and exploded at his feet, injuring him so badly that he had to give command over to General Brown and retreat to Buffalo. Both the Americans in the fort and the besieging forces had received reinforcements, and General Brown devised a major attack to disrupt the siege works. The enemy's camp was two miles to the rear, and one-third of their forces were sent forward at a time to work on the trenches. The Americans secretly laid out a path through the woods, leading from their left to a point close to the right of the besiegers. On September 17th, two columns of about one thousand men each charged out from the fort. One column took the path through the woods and suddenly attacked the British right, while the other moved through a ravine in the center. Before reinforcements could arrive from the British camp, the Americans 250burst into the siege works, and after intense fighting overcame all resistance, they dismounted the cannons, made them useless, blew up the ammunition stores, and returned to the fort with many prisoners. This operation cost the Americans five hundred and twenty men, killed, wounded, or missing, while the British lost six hundred and nine.
In the night of the 21st, General Drummond raised the siege, and retired beyond the Chippewa. In October the Americans dismantled Fort Erie, and returned to the eastern shore of the Niagara.
In the night of the 21st, General Drummond lifted the siege and withdrew beyond the Chippewa. In October, the Americans took apart Fort Erie and went back to the eastern shore of the Niagara.
CHAPTER XV. THE SECOND INVASION OF NEW YORK.
251
Fight at La Colle Mill—Ship-building—Yeo's Attack on Oswego—Affairs at Charlotte and Poultneyville—Fight at Sandy Creek—Izard's Failure on the Niagara—Expedition against Michilimackinac—Prevost's Advance into New York—Its Purpose—Battle of Plattsburg.
Battle at La Colle Mill—Shipbuilding—Yeo's Assault on Oswego—Events at Charlotte and Poultneyville—Battle at Sandy Creek—Izard's Setback on the Niagara—Expedition Against Michilimackinac—Prevost's Advance into New York—Its Intent—Battle of Plattsburg.
In February General Wilkinson had removed his army from French Mills to Plattsburg, on Lake Champlain, and a month later he added one more to the futile invasions of Canada. At the head of four thousand men, he crossed the border, March 30th, met a party of British at Odelltown, with whom skirmishing was carried on for three miles along the road, and found the enemy seriously in his path at La Colle Mill, on the Sorel, four miles from Rouse's Point, where about two hundred men were posted in a stone mill and a block-house, on either side of La Colie Creek.
In February, General Wilkinson moved his army from French Mills to Plattsburg, by Lake Champlain, and a month later he launched another failed invasion of Canada. Leading four thousand men, he crossed the border on March 30th and encountered a British contingent at Odelltown, where skirmishes occurred for three miles along the road. He then faced a significant enemy presence at La Colle Mill, on the Sorel, just four miles from Rouse's Point, where about two hundred men were stationed in a stone mill and a blockhouse on either side of La Colie Creek.
Wilkinson brought up two pieces of artillery and planted them within two hundred yards of the stone mill. Then he disposed his forces in such a way as nearly to surround it and cut off the retreat of the enemy when his guns should knock the walls of the 252mill about their heads. But though the guns were served with great skill and rapidity for two hours, the walls would n't budge, and it did not occur to the enemy to attempt a retreat. On the contrary, from their secure position they used their rifles so effectively that Wilkinson's men suffered severely. Captain McPherson, commanding the battery, was wounded in the chin, but tied it up with his handkerchief and remained at his post till another shot broke his thigh, when he was borne off. His successor, Lieutenant Larrabee, was soon shot through the lungs, when he also was borne to the rear; and Lieutenant Sheldon then kept the battery in play till the close of the fight.
Wilkinson brought up two pieces of artillery and set them up within two hundred yards of the stone mill. He positioned his forces almost to surround it and cut off the enemy's escape when his guns would start breaking the walls of the 252mill. But even though the guns were operated with great skill and speed for two hours, the walls wouldn’t budge, and the enemy didn’t think to retreat. Instead, from their secure position, they used their rifles so effectively that Wilkinson's men suffered heavily. Captain McPherson, who was in charge of the battery, was wounded in the chin but wrapped it with his handkerchief and stayed at his post until another shot broke his thigh, at which point he was carried away. His replacement, Lieutenant Larrabee, was soon shot through the lungs and was also taken to the rear; Lieutenant Sheldon then kept the battery firing until the end of the fight.
Major Hancock, commanding the enemy, having received reënforcements that swelled the number of his men to about a thousand, ordered a sortie, to capture the battery. His troops suddenly burst from the mill, and made a rush for the guns. But this subjected them to a fire from the American infantry, by which they suffered heavily, and they were obliged to return to the mill and the blockhouse. A second and more desperate sortie had the same result, and the enemy then shut themselves up in the house and defied all attempts to drive them out. As the condition of the roads prevented him from bringing up heavier artillery, Wil253kinson gave up the expedition and returned through mud, snow, and rain to Plattsburg. The affair had cost him a hundred and fifty-four men, and inflicted on the enemy a loss of sixty-one. The General asked for a court-martial, and was tried and acquitted; but this ended his military career. General George Izard succeeded to his command.
Major Hancock, leading the enemy, received reinforcements that increased his forces to about a thousand soldiers. He ordered a charge to take the battery. His troops suddenly surged out from the mill and rushed toward the guns. However, they came under heavy fire from the American infantry, suffering significant losses, and were forced to retreat back to the mill and blockhouse. A second, more aggressive charge ended the same way, and the enemy then barricaded themselves inside the house, resisting all efforts to remove them. Since the condition of the roads made it impossible to bring up heavier artillery, Wil253kinson abandoned the mission and made his way back through mud, snow, and rain to Plattsburg. This operation cost him a hundred and fifty-four men, while the enemy lost sixty-one. The General requested a court-martial, was tried, and acquitted; however, this marked the end of his military career. General George Izard took over his command.
Both belligerents were still building ships for service on Lake Ontario. The British had a large one on the stocks at Kingston, and the Americans an equally large one at Sackett's Harbor. All sorts of insignificant affairs took place during the spring and summer along the shores of this lake and Lake Champlain, effecting nothing, but keeping the people in a state of alarm.
Both sides were still constructing ships for use on Lake Ontario. The British were building a large one at Kingston, while the Americans had an equally large ship at Sackett's Harbor. Many minor events occurred during the spring and summer along the shores of this lake and Lake Champlain, causing no real impact but keeping the people on edge.
On one occasion three boats approached Sackett's Harbor, carrying two barrels of powder, with which it was intended to blow up the new vessel on the stocks. But they were discovered and fired at, whereupon the crews hastily threw the powder overboard, fearing it would be exploded by a bullet, and pulled away.
On one occasion, three boats headed toward Sackett's Harbor, carrying two barrels of gunpowder meant to blow up the new ship under construction. However, they were spotted and shot at, causing the crews to quickly toss the gunpowder overboard, afraid it would explode from a bullet, and rowed away.
Finding that he could not destroy the new ship, Sir James Yeo determined to render her useless by capturing the guns, rigging, and stores intended for her, which were at Oswego. Accordingly he organized an expedition of about three thousand men, 254the troops being commanded by General Drummond, and sailed for that place early in May. The fort at Oswego, an old affair, in a dilapidated condition, was on one side of the river, and the village-on the other. Lieutenant-Colonel Mitchell, commanding at the fort, saw the approaching expedition early in the morning of May 5th. As his force was too small to be divided, he sent a large number of tents across the river, and had them pitched in front of the village. This convinced the enemy that there was a heavy force on that side of the river, and he confined his attention to the fort.
Finding that he couldn’t destroy the new ship, Sir James Yeo decided to make her useless by capturing the guns, rigging, and supplies meant for her, which were at Oswego. So, he put together an expedition of about three thousand men, 254commanded by General Drummond, and set sail for that location in early May. The fort at Oswego, an old structure in poor condition, was on one side of the river, and the village was on the other. Lieutenant-Colonel Mitchell, who was in charge of the fort, spotted the approaching expedition early in the morning of May 5th. Since his force was too small to be split up, he sent a large number of tents across the river and had them set up in front of the village. This made the enemy believe there was a strong force on that side of the river, so he focused his attention on the fort.
The ships bombarded the work, and a force attempted to land by means of boats. But Colonel Mitchell sent a few men down the shore with one old gun, and as soon as they came within range it made such havoc among the boats' crews that they pulled back to the fleet. One of the boats, sixty feet long, propelled by three sails and thirty-six oars, was so shattered that it was abandoned and drifted ashore.
The ships pounded the area, and a group tried to land using boats. But Colonel Mitchell sent a few men down the shore with an old cannon, and as soon as they were in range, it caused so much destruction among the boat crews that they retreated to the fleet. One of the boats, sixty feet long, powered by three sails and thirty-six oars, was so damaged that it was abandoned and drifted ashore.
The next day the fleet returned to the attack, and this time succeeded in landing about two thousand men. Colonel Mitchell, who had been reenforced by a small body of militia, gradually retired before the invaders, making a gallant resistance as long as it was of any use, and then retreated to a point several miles up the river, whither most of 255the stores had been removed, and destroyed the bridges behind him. The enemy raised and carried away the schooner Growler, which, as it contained some of the guns for the new vessel, the Americans had sunk on the approach of the expedition; burned the barracks, took whatever he could find that was movable, and on the 7th sailed away. The action had cost him two hundred and thirty-five men, killed, wounded, or drowned. The Americans had lost sixty-nine.
The next day, the fleet attacked again and managed to land around two thousand troops. Colonel Mitchell, who had been bolstered by a small group of militia, gradually fell back in front of the invaders, fighting bravely as long as it was practical, and then retreated to a spot several miles up the river, where most of 255the supplies had been moved, and he destroyed the bridges behind him. The enemy raised and took away the schooner Growler, which had some of the guns for the new ship that the Americans had sunk as the fleet approached; they burned the barracks, took whatever they could find that was movable, and on the 7th, they sailed away. The battle had cost them two hundred and thirty-five men, killed, wounded, or drowned. The Americans lost sixty-nine.
Five days later a British squadron appeared before Charlotte, at the mouth of Genesee River. The village was guarded by sixty men, with one field-piece. Word was sent to General Peter B. Porter, who arrived on the morning of the 13th, just in time to refuse a demand for the surrender of the place. Two gunboats then entered the river and bombarded the town for an hour and a half, throwing in shells, rockets, and round shot. The women and children were removed, a militia force of three hundred and fifty men was collected, and dispositions were made to capture the boats if they should venture farther up the river. A second demand for a surrender, with a threat to land twelve hundred men and destroy the village, was refused by Porter, and on the 15th the boats bombarded the place again for some hours, and then withdrew. 256In the evening the squadron sent a force on shore at Poultneyville, where some stores were captured; but a small body of militia under General John Swift soon appeared and drove the enemy precipitately back to their boats.
Five days later, a British squadron showed up in front of Charlotte, at the mouth of the Genesee River. The village was defended by sixty men, equipped with one field piece. A message was sent to General Peter B. Porter, who arrived on the morning of the 13th, just in time to reject a demand for the village's surrender. Two gunboats then entered the river and bombarded the town for an hour and a half, firing shells, rockets, and round shots. The women and children were evacuated, a militia force of three hundred and fifty men was assembled, and plans were made to capture the boats if they dared to go further up the river. A second demand for surrender, along with a threat to land twelve hundred men and destroy the village, was also turned down by Porter. On the 15th, the boats bombarded the town again for several hours before retreating. 256In the evening, the squadron sent a force ashore at Poultneyville, where some supplies were taken; however, a small group of militia led by General John Swift quickly showed up and drove the enemy back to their boats.
As Sir James Yeo was blockading Sackett's Harbor for the special purpose of preventing the armament of the new vessel from being carried in, the wits of the Americans were taxed to get the guns and cables there. Transportation all the way by land would have been tedious and costly. The task was assigned to Captain Woolsey, of the navy. He caused a story to be circulated, in a way that made it sure to reach the vigilant enemy, that the guns were to be transported by way of Oneida Lake. They were on nineteen boats, and on the 28th of May he ran the rapids and arrived at Oswego with them at dusk. The plan was, to coast along down the lake as far as Sandy Creek, eight miles from Sackett's Harbor, run up the creek, and thence carry them overland. Accompanied by a hundred and twenty riflemen, under Major Appling, the flotilla went down the lake by night as far as Big Salmon River, and in the morning one boat was missing. At this point a body of Oneida Indians joined the expedition, and at noon on the 29th it reached Sandy Creek. The missing boat had gone 257on to Sackett's Harbor, where—perhaps purposely—it fell into the hands of the blockaders, to whom its crew told the whole story of Woolsey's flotilla. Sir James at once sent a force, in two gunboats and four smaller craft, to capture it. This expedition sailed up Sandy Creek on the morning of the 30th, thinking to make sure prize of the flotilla and its cargo of guns and cables. But Major Appling had placed his riflemen in ambush along the bank, and near the flotilla was Captain Melville with a company of light artillery and two six-pounders. The enemy's gunboats opened fire on the flotilla as fast as they came within gunshot, and a party of troops was landed. As soon as they were within range of Appling's rifles, he poured in a deadly fire upon their flank and rear, while at the same time the artillery played upon them in front. In ten minutes the British lost eighteen men killed and fifty wounded, when the whole force surrendered. The captured boats mounted seven guns, and there were a hundred and sixty-five prisoners. The Americans had two men wounded. The Indians took no active part in the fight.
As Sir James Yeo was blockading Sackett's Harbor to specifically stop the new vessel from being armed, the Americans had to get creative to transport the guns and cables there. Moving everything by land was going to be slow and expensive. Captain Woolsey from the navy was put in charge of the operation. He spread a rumor, designed to reach the watchful enemy, that the guns would be transported via Oneida Lake. They were on nineteen boats, and on May 28th, he navigated the rapids and arrived at Oswego just before dark. The plan was to travel along the lake to Sandy Creek, which is eight miles from Sackett's Harbor, go up the creek, and then move everything overland. With one hundred and twenty riflemen led by Major Appling, the flotilla went down the lake at night until they reached Big Salmon River, but in the morning, one boat was missing. At this point, a group of Oneida Indians joined the mission, and by noon on the 29th, they reached Sandy Creek. The missing boat had continued on to Sackett's Harbor, where—perhaps intentionally—it fell into the hands of the blockaders, who learned all about Woolsey's flotilla from its crew. Sir James immediately sent a force of two gunboats and four smaller vessels to capture it. This expedition headed up Sandy Creek on the morning of the 30th, aiming to seize the flotilla and its cargo of guns and cables. But Major Appling had placed his riflemen in ambush along the riverbank, and nearby was Captain Melville with a company of light artillery and two six-pound cannons. The enemy's gunboats opened fire as soon as they were in range, and a contingent of troops disembarked. Once they were within range of Appling's rifles, he unleashed a devastating fire on their flank and rear while the artillery attacked them from the front. In ten minutes, the British lost eighteen men killed and fifty wounded, leading the entire force to surrender. The captured boats had seven guns, and there were one hundred sixty-five prisoners. The Americans only had two men wounded, and the Indians did not actively participate in the battle.
This affair inflicted so serious a loss upon the British fleet that it returned to Kingston, and remained there till another ship and more men could be obtained. The Americans arrived safely at 258Sackett's Harbor with their guns, and the new frigate, the Mohawk, was launched on the 11th of June. Chauncey's squadron then consisted of nine vessels, mounting two hundred and fifty-one guns.
This event caused such a significant loss to the British fleet that it returned to Kingston and stayed there until they could get another ship and more men. The Americans arrived safely at 258Sackett's Harbor with their cannons, and the new frigate, the Mohawk, was launched on June 11th. Chauncey's squadron then had nine ships, carrying a total of two hundred fifty-one guns.
Early in August, General Izard, being ordered to relieve General Brown in the command on the Niagara frontier, marched from Plattsburg with about four thousand troops, leaving General Alexander Macomb in command there with twelve hundred, including the invalids. After his arrival at Buffalo, Izard crossed the Niagara with about eight thousand men, and set forward to attack Drummond on the Chippewa. But the British commander, after one sharp skirmish, withdrew his forces to Fort George and Burlington Heights. Izard, who lacked the energy to follow, persuaded himself, in spite of the almanac, that the season was far advanced, and retired to Black Rock.
Early in August, General Izard was ordered to take over from General Brown in charge of the Niagara frontier. He marched from Plattsburg with about four thousand troops, leaving General Alexander Macomb in charge there with twelve hundred, including the wounded. After arriving in Buffalo, Izard crossed the Niagara with around eight thousand men and moved to attack Drummond at Chippewa. However, the British commander, after a brief skirmish, pulled his forces back to Fort George and Burlington Heights. Izard, lacking the drive to pursue, convinced himself, despite what the almanac said, that the season was already late, and retreated to Black Rock.
Another American expedition on the upper lakes was not more satisfactory or creditable in its result. It was intended for the re-capture of Michilimackinac, the first place taken by the British during the war. The garrison was strengthened in April, 1814, and three months later a detachment sent out from it captured the American post at Prairie du Chien.
Another American expedition on the upper lakes was no more successful or commendable in its outcome. It aimed to recapture Michilimackinac, the first location seized by the British during the war. The garrison was reinforced in April 1814, and three months later, a detachment sent from there captured the American post at Prairie du Chien.
The naval portion of the expedition was entrusted to Commander Arthur St. Clair, who had five ves259sels which had formed part of Perry's fleet. He took on board five hundred regular troops and about the same number of militia, commanded by Lieutenant-Colonel Croghan, who had made the gallant defence of Fort Stephenson the year before, sailed on the 12th of July, and arrived at Michilimackinac on the 26th. There was a difference of opinion as to the best mode of attack; St. Clair was unwilling to attempt it first with his vessels, because the fort was so far above the water that it could send a plunging fire upon their decks.
The naval part of the expedition was assigned to Commander Arthur St. Clair, who had five ships that were part of Perry's fleet. He brought along five hundred regular troops and about the same number of militia, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Croghan, who had bravely defended Fort Stephenson the year before. They set sail on July 12th and arrived at Michilimackinac on the 26th. There was a disagreement on the best way to attack; St. Clair was hesitant to go in first with his ships because the fort was so high above the water that it could hit their decks with heavy fire.
On the 4th of August the troops were landed on the north side of the island, to attack the fort in the rear. But Lieutenant-Colonel McDonall, who commanded it, had drawn out his entire garrison, and taken up a strong position in the path of the Americans. His men were behind a small ridge which formed a natural breastwork, the ground in front was perfectly clear, and two field-pieces commanded it. On each of their flanks was a thick wood, and in these woods McDonall posted a force of Indians. Croghan advanced with his militia in front, and attempted to turn the British left. But a volley from the Indians in the woods, whom he had not discovered, killed Major Holmes, wounded Captain Desha, and threw the American right wing into confusion. Croghan then attacked the enemy's 260centre, and drove him from his breastwork into the woods in his rear. But beyond this point it seemed impossible to accomplish anything, and the Americans soon withdrew from the field and reembarked. They had lost thirteen men killed, fifty-two wounded, and two missing. The British loss is unknown.
On August 4th, the troops landed on the north side of the island to attack the fort from the back. But Lieutenant-Colonel McDonall, who was in charge, had gathered his entire garrison and taken a strong position in the path of the Americans. His men were behind a small ridge that served as a natural barrier, the ground in front was completely clear, and two field cannons had a clear line of sight. On either side, there was thick woods, where McDonall stationed a group of Indians. Croghan moved forward with his militia to try to flank the British left. However, a volley from the Indians in the woods, which he hadn’t noticed, killed Major Holmes, wounded Captain Desha, and caused chaos in the American right wing. Croghan then attacked the enemy's 260center and pushed them back into the woods behind them. But after that point, it seemed impossible to achieve anything further, and the Americans soon withdrew from the battlefield and reboarded their ships. They had lost thirteen men killed, fifty-two wounded, and two missing. The British loss is unknown.
But while these insignificant actions were taking place along the whole length of the lakes, a serious danger threatened the country at the eastern extremity of that line, and was averted by a brilliant victory.
But while these trivial actions were happening all along the lakes, a serious threat loomed over the country at the eastern end of that line, which was avoided through a remarkable victory.
The British troops at the foot of Lake Champlain had been heavily reenforced by veterans from the armies that had conquered Napoleon, and Sir George Prevost, who had been ordered to make an invasion of New York by the route taken by Burgoyne in 1777, seized the opportunity when the Americans at Plattsburg were weakened by the absence of Izard and the four thousand men he had taken with him to the Niagara frontier.
The British troops at Lake Champlain had received significant reinforcements from veterans of the armies that had defeated Napoleon. Sir George Prevost, tasked with invading New York through the route Burgoyne used in 1777, seized the opportunity when the Americans in Plattsburgh were weakened by the absence of Izard and the four thousand men he had taken to the Niagara frontier.
The object of the movement was, to capture and hold a portion of the State of New York; so that when the pending peace negotiations were brought to a close, it might be stipulated that all territory should remain with the party in whose possession it then was, and this would give the English complete 261control of the St. Lawrence and Lake Champlain, if not of Lake Ontario also. In accordance with this purpose, Prevost issued a proclamation to the inhabitants of that sparsely settled region, calling upon them to renounce allegiance to the United States, renew their allegiance to Great Britain, and furnish his troops subsistence. Had his forces been victorious, he would have claimed that this had been done, and the English would then probably have been successful in their purpose to "change the boundary of New York."
The goal of the movement was to take control of a part of New York State so that when the ongoing peace talks were finished, it could be agreed that all territory would stay with the party that held it at that time. This would give the English complete 261control of the St. Lawrence and Lake Champlain, and possibly Lake Ontario as well. To support this aim, Prevost issued a proclamation to the residents of that sparsely populated area, urging them to give up their loyalty to the United States, reaffirm their loyalty to Great Britain, and provide his troops with supplies. If his forces had won, he would have claimed that this had been achieved, and the English would likely have succeeded in their goal to "change the boundary of New York."
General Alexander Macomb, who had been left in command at Plattsburg on the departure of General Izard, and had been told by that officer that he must expect to be driven out or made a prisoner by the enemy, had made up his mind to falsify the prediction, and exhibited wonderful energy in putting the place into a defensible condition.
General Alexander Macomb, who remained in command at Plattsburgh after General Izard left, had been warned by Izard that he could either be forced out or captured by the enemy. Determined to prove that prediction wrong, he showed incredible determination in preparing the area for defense.
Saranac River, after running parallel with the shore of Lake Champlain for a short distance, turns sharply to the east and flows into Cumberland or Plattsburg Bay. On the peninsula thus enclosed, which is about half a mile wide, the Americans constructed three redoubts and two block-houses, one of them being at the mouth of the river. The north bank is about thirty feet high; and the south bank, which was the one occupied by the Ameri262cans, about fifty. Macomb had fifteen hundred regulars, and two thousand militia.
Saranac River, after flowing alongside the shore of Lake Champlain for a short distance, makes a sharp turn to the east and empties into Cumberland or Plattsburg Bay. On the peninsula created by this bend, which is about half a mile wide, the Americans built three fortified positions and two blockhouses, one of which is at the river's mouth. The north bank reaches about thirty feet high, while the south bank, occupied by the Americans, stands about fifty feet tall. Macomb had fifteen hundred regular troops and two thousand militiamen.
Prevost, with fourteen thousand troops, began his advance on the 29th of August, crossed the border on the 1st of September, and thenceforth found his march impeded somewhat by felled trees and broken bridges. He was in no great hurry, however, as he was in advance of the fleet, commanded by Commodore George Downie, on whose cooperation he relied. He impressed the horses of farmers along the route for the transportation of his artillery and supplies, and arrived before Plattsburg on the 6th. The advance of his right column was assaulted by a small body of riflemen under Major John E. Wool, who inflicted some loss and drove it back upon the main body. Wool fell back, was joined by Captain Leonard's battery, made another stand, inflicted more loss with the artillery, and again fell back slowly till he crossed the Saranac, destroying the bridge behind him. The enemy's left column, approaching by a road nearer the lake, was annoyed by skirmishers under Lieutenant-Colonel Appling, and by the American gun-boats. Both bridges were destroyed, and when the enemy's riflemen posted themselves in several houses on the north bank, these were set on fire by hot shot.
Prevost, leading fourteen thousand troops, started his advance on August 29th, crossed the border on September 1st, and then faced some obstacles like fallen trees and broken bridges. He wasn't in a rush, though, since he was ahead of the fleet commanded by Commodore George Downie, whom he depended on for support. He requisitioned horses from farmers along the way to help transport his artillery and supplies, and reached Plattsburg on the 6th. The advance of his right column was attacked by a small group of riflemen under Major John E. Wool, who caused some casualties and pushed them back to the main force. Wool fell back, was joined by Captain Leonard's battery, made another stand, inflicted further losses with the artillery, and gradually retreated until he crossed the Saranac, destroying the bridge behind him. The enemy's left column, approaching via a road closer to the lake, was harassed by skirmishers led by Lieutenant-Colonel Appling, as well as by the American gunboats. Both bridges were demolished, and when the enemy's riflemen took position in several houses on the north bank, those were set on fire using hot shot.
His men attempted to ford the river at three places—where the two bridges had been, and at a point farther up, known as Pike's Cantonment —their movements being covered by a heavy fire from the British batteries. The troops that actually advanced to the assault numbered eight thousand, and they carried an immense number of scaling-ladders, to enable them to climb the high bank and afterward surmount the American works.
His men tried to cross the river at three locations—where the two bridges used to be, and at a spot further upstream, called Pike's Cantonment—while being heavily fired upon by the British batteries. The troops that actually moved forward to attack numbered eight thousand, and they carried a huge number of scaling ladders to help them climb the steep bank and then overcome the American defenses.
At the lower bridge, the fire from the forts and block-houses drove them back. At the upper bridge, they were prevented from landing by a steady fire of musketry. At Pike's Cantonment, where the river was easily fordable, there was only militia to dispute the passage. Yet several attempts to cross were repelled; and when finally a body of regulars succeeded in crossing, the militia rallied and drove it back again with heavy loss. At this point of time the issue of the battle had been decided by the action on the water.
At the lower bridge, the gunfire from the forts and blockhouses forced them to retreat. At the upper bridge, they couldn't land because of a constant barrage of gunfire. At Pike's Cantonment, where the river was shallow enough to cross, only the militia were there to challenge the crossing. Still, several attempts to get across were pushed back, and when a group of regular troops finally made it across, the militia regrouped and drove them back with significant losses. At this moment, the outcome of the battle had been determined by the events on the water.
The American flotilla, commanded by Lieutenant Thomas Macdonough, was drawn up in line to await 264the attack, in such manner that the British ships could not enter the bay without being exposed to a broadside fire. Macdonough's vessels were all stationed with their prows to the north, the Eagle, of twenty guns, at the head of the line; then the Saratoga, flag-ship, of twenty-six guns; then the Ticonderoga, of seventeen; and lastly the Preble, of seven, which was so near a shoal that the enemy could not pass around her. Macdonough also had ten galleys or gun-boats, which he placed inside of his line, opposite the intervals between the larger vessels. The British flotilla also consisted of four large vessels—carrying respectively thirty-seven, sixteen, eleven, and eleven guns—and twelve gun-boats. The total American force was fourteen vessels, with eighty-six guns and eight hundred and fifty men; the total British force, sixteen vessels, with ninety-five guns and one thousand and fifty men.
The American flotilla, led by Lieutenant Thomas Macdonough, was lined up to wait for the attack in a way that prevented the British ships from entering the bay without being at risk of broadside fire. Macdonough's ships were all positioned with their bows facing north, starting with the Eagle, which had twenty guns, at the front; followed by the Saratoga, the flagship, with twenty-six guns; then the Ticonderoga with seventeen; and finally, the Preble, which had seven guns and was so close to a shallow area that the enemy couldn’t maneuver around her. Macdonough also had ten galleys or gunboats, which he positioned within his line, filling the gaps between the larger ships. The British flotilla included four large vessels—armed with thirty-seven, sixteen, eleven, and eleven guns respectively—and twelve gunboats. The overall American force consisted of fourteen vessels with eighty-six guns and eight hundred and fifty men, while the total British force amounted to sixteen vessels with ninety-five guns and one thousand and fifty men.
The peculiar thing in Macdonough's preparations, and the one perhaps which secured him the victory, was an arrangement by which he made it possible to turn his flag-ship almost instantly so as to bring her broadside to bear on any point. He did this by laying a kedge anchor broad off each of her bows, and carrying the hawsers to the quarters. Thus by winding in one or the other of the hawsers the stern of the ship could be swung one way or the other, 265while the cable of the main anchor kept her bow in one place.
The interesting thing about Macdonough's preparations, and what possibly helped him win, was a setup that allowed him to turn his flagship almost instantly to bring her broadside to any target. He achieved this by laying a kedge anchor out in front of each bow and running the hawsers to the rear. By winding in one of the hawsers, he could swing the stern of the ship in either direction, 265 while the main anchor cable held the bow steady.
The English line bore down upon the American in fine style, the first two vessels firing as they approached. The flag-ship Confiance did not open fire till she had dropped anchor within a quarter of a mile of her foe.
The English fleet advanced on the American ship impressively, with the first two vessels firing as they came closer. The flagship Confiance didn’t fire until it anchored within a quarter of a mile of its opponent.
The Eagle, at the head of the American line, began firing in a wild way, without orders, before her shot could reach the enemy. The excitement was soon felt through the fleet, and was shared by a young cock which had escaped from his coop on the deck of the Saratoga. In response to the boom of the cannon, he flew upon a gun-slide, flapped his wings, and crowed loudly. The sailors burst into a hearty laugh, and gave three cheers. Then a long gun, sighted by Macdonough himself, was fired, and as the shot raked the deck of the Confiance, the whole line opened and the battle became general. The first broadside from the Confiance disabled forty men on the Saratoga; for fifteen minutes everything was ablaze, and the roar was continuous. Then the vessel at the head of the British line struck her colors.
The Eagle, leading the American line, started firing wildly without orders, long before her shots could hit the enemy. The excitement quickly spread throughout the fleet, and was echoed by a young rooster that had escaped from his coop on the deck of the Saratoga. In response to the cannon fire, he flew up onto a gun-slide, flapped his wings, and crowed loudly. The sailors erupted in hearty laughter and cheered three times. Then, a long gun, aimed by Macdonough himself, was fired, and as the shot swept across the deck of the Confiance, the entire line opened fire and the battle intensified. The first broadside from the Confiance took out forty men on the Saratoga; for fifteen minutes, everything was engulfed in flames, and the roar was nonstop. Then, the ship at the front of the British line lowered her colors.
The enemy's shot cut away the Eagle's springs—ropes fastened either to the anchor or to the cable, and passed to the quarter, in order to sway the ship 266to one side or the other and bring the guns to bear on any desired point. Her commander, Lieutenant Henley, then cut his cable, sheeted home the topsails, ran down behind the Saratoga, and took a position between her and the Ticonderoga, anchoring by the stern, which brought the fresh guns of his larboard battery to bear on the enemy, when they were served with good effect.
The enemy's shot severed the Eagle's springs—ropes attached either to the anchor or to the cable, and led to the side, to tilt the ship 266to one side or the other and aim the guns at any targeted area. Her commander, Lieutenant Henley, then cut his cable, hoisted the topsails, moved down behind the Saratoga, and positioned himself between her and the Ticonderoga, anchoring by the stern, which allowed the new guns of his port battery to engage the enemy effectively.
The Preble was attacked by the enemy's gunboats, and driven from her position; but they were stopped by the next in line, which they vainly tried to board. Every gun of the starboard battery—-the side nearest the enemy—on the American flag-ship was disabled. Then Macdonough proceeded to "wind ship," that is, to turn the vessel completely round by winding at the hawsers attached to the kedges. This was accomplished without accident, and his gunners, springing to the larboard battery, poured out fresh broadsides that made dreadful havoc with the Confiance. The commander of that vessel attempted to copy Macdonough's manoeuvre, for her battery on the side presented to the enemy was also nearly used up, but failed, and two hours and a quarter after the fight began her colors came down. The remaining British vessels also surrendered, and the victory was complete.
The Preble was attacked by the enemy's gunboats and forced from its position, but they were halted by the next ship in line, which they unsuccessfully tried to board. Every gun on the starboard side—the side closest to the enemy—of the American flagship was taken out. Then, Macdonough began to "wind ship," which means he turned the vessel completely around by using the hawsers attached to the kedges. He managed this without any problems, and his gunners quickly moved to the port side, delivering fresh broadsides that caused significant damage to the Confiance. The commander of that ship tried to mimic Macdonough's maneuver, since her battery on the side facing the enemy was nearly depleted, but he failed, and two hours and fifteen minutes after the fight started, her flag came down. The remaining British vessels also surrendered, and the victory was total.
In this bloody battle—which defeated what is known as the second invasion of New York, and preserved our territory intact—the American fleet suffered a loss of fifty two men killed and fifty-eight wounded. The British, according to their official report, lost fifty-seven killed, including Commodore Downie, and seventy-two wounded; Macdonough reported their loss at eighty-four killed and a hundred and ten wounded. The British galleys, before the Americans could take possession of them, drifted out into the lake, and escaped.
In this brutal battle—which ended what is known as the second invasion of New York and kept our territory safe—the American fleet lost fifty-two men killed and fifty-eight wounded. The British, according to their official report, lost fifty-seven killed, including Commodore Downie, and seventy-two wounded; Macdonough reported their loss at eighty-four killed and a hundred and ten wounded. The British galleys, before the Americans could take control of them, drifted out into the lake and got away.
CHAPTER XVI. OPERATIONS ALONG THE COAST.
268
Capture of Eastport and Castine—Occupation of Territory in Maine—Destruction of the Frigate Adams—Bombardment of Stonington—Affairs at Wareham, Scituate, and Boothbay.
Capture of Eastport and Castine—Occupation of Territory in Maine—Destruction of the Frigate Adams—Bombardment of Stonington—Affairs at Wareham, Scituate, and Boothbay.
The close of the war in Europe had not only enabled the English to strengthen their land forces in America, but had also liberated many of their warships, and the result was felt all along our coast. The enemy's purpose to conquer territory which might be retained after the war, apparent enough before, was now definitely proclaimed.
The end of the war in Europe not only allowed the English to bolster their ground troops in America but also freed up many of their warships, and the impact was seen all along our coast. The enemy's goal to seize territory that could be held onto after the war, which was clear before, was now openly announced.
In July, Sir Thomas Hardy, commander of the British fleet before New London, received orders to capture Moose Island, in Passamaquoddy Bay, and sailed thither with five ships of war and transports containing about fifteen hundred troops. The Americans had here a small fort, garrisoned by only fifty men, under Major Putnam, who made no resistance to the enemy, but surrendered at once, July 11th. Sir Thomas then took formal possession not only of the town of Eastport, which at that time contained about one thousand inhabitants, but 269of the whole island, and issued a proclamation in which he declared that all the islands in the bay-had been surrendered and were thenceforth British territory. He gave the inhabitants one week in which to make their choice, either to swear allegiance to the British Crown or move away. About two thirds of the people took the oath, supposing they would thereby be admitted to the privileges of British citizenship; but a month later the Provincial Council of New Brunswick ordered that they should be treated as a conquered province and placed under martial law. The fortifications of Eastport were greatly strengthened, the six guns being increased to sixty, and a large garrison placed there. But provisions were extremely scarce, the men deserted in great numbers, and the British officers were often seen on the ramparts, doing duty as sentinels.
In July, Sir Thomas Hardy, the commander of the British fleet near New London, received orders to capture Moose Island in Passamaquoddy Bay. He set sail with five warships and transports carrying about fifteen hundred troops. The Americans had a small fort there, garrisoned by only fifty men under Major Putnam, who made no effort to resist and surrendered immediately on July 11th. Sir Thomas then formally took control of not just the town of Eastport, which had about one thousand residents at the time, but 269the entire island. He issued a proclamation stating that all the islands in the bay had surrendered and were now British territory. He gave the residents one week to choose: either swear allegiance to the British Crown or leave. About two-thirds of the people took the oath, thinking they would gain the rights of British citizenship; however, a month later, the Provincial Council of New Brunswick decided they would be treated as a conquered province and placed under martial law. The fortifications of Eastport were significantly enhanced, with the six guns increased to sixty, and a large garrison was stationed there. However, supplies were extremely limited, many men deserted, and British officers were frequently seen on the ramparts, acting as sentinels.
On the 1st of September, another British force entered Penobscot River. The small American garrison at Castine blew up the fort and retreated, and the enemy took possession, and soon issued a proclamation declaring all that part of Maine east of the Penobscot to be conquered territory. It contained about forty villages, with an aggregate of more than thirty thousand inhabitants.
On September 1st, another British force entered the Penobscot River. The small American garrison at Castine blew up the fort and retreated, and the enemy took control, soon issuing a proclamation declaring all of Maine east of the Penobscot to be conquered territory. It included about forty villages, with a total population of more than thirty thousand.
Captain Morris, after a successful cruise, had re 270cently arrived in the Penobscot with the American frigate Adams, and taken her to Hampden, thirty-five miles up the river, for repairs. The British commander sent up an expedition of about a thousand men to capture her, and Captain Morris made all possible preparations for defence. He erected several batteries on the shore, collected a small force of militia from the neighborhood, and, as they were unarmed, put the ship's muskets into their hands. But on the approach of the British regulars, the militia ran away; and Morris, seeing that he could not save his vessel, sent away his sailors and marines, who retreated across a bridge over a deep creek. He and a few men whom he had retained for the service then set a slow-match to the magazine, and, as their retreat by the bridge had been cut off, swam the stream and escaped. The frigate was blown to pieces, and the enemy returned to Castine with neither prisoners nor plunder. But they made thenceforth frequent incursions among the towns of the neighborhood, and freely robbed the inhabitants of what little property they had that was worth taking.
Captain Morris, after a successful voyage, had recently arrived in the Penobscot with the American frigate Adams and taken her to Hampden, thirty-five miles up the river, for repairs. The British commander sent an expedition of about a thousand men to capture her, and Captain Morris made all possible preparations for defense. He set up several batteries on the shore, gathered a small group of local militia, and since they were unarmed, handed them the ship's muskets. However, when the British regulars approached, the militia ran away; and Morris, realizing he couldn’t save his ship, sent his sailors and marines away, who retreated across a bridge over a deep creek. He and a few men he kept for service then set a slow-match to the magazine, and since their retreat by the bridge had been blocked, they swam across the stream and escaped. The frigate was blown to pieces, and the enemy returned to Castine with neither prisoners nor loot. But from that point on, they frequently raided nearby towns, stealing whatever little property the residents had that was worth taking.
The next orders issued to the British Commodore, Sir Thomas Hardy, were to destroy the town of Stonington, Connecticut; which he found a very different task from the capture of Moose Island. With two 271frigates, a brig, and a bomb-vessel, he appeared before the town on the 9th of August, and sent in word that he should begin a bombardment in one hour. The women and children were hastily removed, and the men repaired to the defences of the place. These consisted of a small breastwork and three pieces of artillery—two eighteen-pounders, and a six-pounder. A rude, flag-staff was erected, and a small flag nailed to it. Those who had been trained as artillerists took their places at the guns, and the remainder, with muskets, were placed behind the breastwork. Word was sent to General Cushing, commanding at New London, and couriers on horseback rode through the surrounding country to rally the militia.
The new orders given to British Commodore Sir Thomas Hardy were to destroy the town of Stonington, Connecticut, which he found to be a very different task than capturing Moose Island. With two 271frigates, a brig, and a bomb vessel, he arrived off the town on August 9th and sent word that he would start bombing in one hour. The women and children were quickly evacuated, and the men rushed to the town's defenses. These included a small barricade and three pieces of artillery—two eighteen-pounders and a six-pounder. A makeshift flagpole was put up, and a small flag was attached to it. Those trained as gunners took their positions at the cannons, while the rest, armed with muskets, positioned themselves behind the barricade. A message was sent to General Cushing, who was in command at New London, and couriers on horseback rode through the area to gather the militia.
It was toward evening when Hardy opened his ports and fired upon the town every kind of missile in use at that day—round-shot, grape-shot, canister, bomb-shells, carcasses, rockets, and stink-pots. A carcass was a cylindrical cage or framework of iron, covered with canvas and filled with combustibles, intended to set the buildings on fire. About eight o'clock, while the bombardment was still going on, five barges and a launch filled with men and carrying several guns approached the shore. The Americans permitted them to come within close range, and then poured such a fire of grape-shot 272into them from the two eighteen-pounders that they were very soon compelled to retire. They then sailed around to the eastern side of the little peninsula, where they supposed it was defenceless. But the Americans dragged the six-pounder across, and were ready for them. With this gun alone, so rapidly was it served and so skilfully handled, they again drove off the fleet of barges.
It was around evening when Hardy opened his ports and fired on the town with every type of weapon available at the time—cannonballs, grape-shot, canister shots, bombs, incendiary devices, rockets, and foul-smelling bombs. A carcass was a cylindrical cage or iron framework, covered with canvas and filled with flammable materials, intended to set buildings on fire. Around eight o'clock, while the bombardment was still happening, five barges and a launch packed with soldiers and several guns approached the shore. The Americans allowed them to get close, then unleashed such a barrage of grape-shot 272from the two eighteen-pounders that they quickly had to pull back. They then moved around to the eastern side of the small peninsula, where they thought it would be unprotected. But the Americans dragged the six-pounder over and were ready for them. With just that gun, so quickly and skillfully was it operated, they once again drove off the fleet of barges.
The bombardment was kept up till midnight, and next day the fleet was increased by the arrival of another brig. The vessels now took a position nearer the shore, and the action was reopened. One brig was anchored within pistol-shot of the battery, at which it directed its guns. But the old eighteen-pounders sent several balls through her between wind and water, compelling her to haul off and repair damages. The barges made an attempt to land a force, as on the day before; but met a similar reception and once more retired. One of the barges was completely torn to pieces by the fire of the six-pounder. The fleet then drifted out of reach of the battery, but kept up the bombardment at long range during that and the following day. On the 12th, Sir Thomas, who had lost twenty-one men killed and more than fifty wounded, bore up and sailed away.
The bombing continued until midnight, and the next day the fleet grew with the arrival of another brig. The ships moved closer to the shore, and the battle resumed. One brig was anchored within range of the battery, and it started firing its cannons at it. However, the old eighteen-pound cannons fired several shots through her hull, forcing her to retreat and make repairs. The barges attempted to land troops like the day before, but faced the same resistance and withdrew again. One of the barges was completely destroyed by the fire from the six-pounder. The fleet then moved out of range of the battery but continued the bombardment from a distance throughout that day and the next. On the 12th, Sir Thomas, having lost twenty-one men killed and more than fifty wounded, turned and sailed away.
Of the Americans, six had been slightly wounded, and one mortally. Of the hundred houses in Ston273ington, forty had been more or less injured, ten of them badly, and two or three were entirely destroyed. The enemy had thrown in more than sixty tons of metal. Colonel Randall, the commanding officer, received high praise for the manner in which he had conducted the defence, as did also Lieutenants Lathrop and Hough.
Of the Americans, six were slightly injured, and one was fatally wounded. Out of the hundred houses in Ston273ington, forty had sustained varying degrees of damage, ten of which were severely impacted, and two or three were completely destroyed. The enemy had dropped over sixty tons of ammunition. Colonel Randall, the commanding officer, received high praise for how he led the defense, as did Lieutenants Lathrop and Hough.
There were smaller affairs of the same nature, at various points along the New England coast. At Wareham the enemy landed in safety by means of a flag of truce, and then burned a large cotton factory and the vessels at their moorings. At Scituate also they burned the shipping. But at Boothbay the militia rallied and drove them off with considerable loss. The attempt to land was repeated on several different days, but every time without success.
There were smaller incidents like this at various spots along the New England coast. In Wareham, the enemy landed safely under a flag of truce and then set fire to a large cotton factory and the ships at their docks. In Scituate, they also burned the shipping. However, in Boothbay, the militia gathered and pushed them back with significant losses. The attempt to land happened several times over different days, but each time it ended in failure.
CHAPTER XVII. THE WASHINGTON CAMPAIGN.
274
Ross's Expedition against Washington—Battle of Bladensburg—Destraction of the Capital—Capitulation of Alexandria—Comments of the London Times—Expedition against Baltimore—Death of Sir Peter Parker—Battle of North Point—Death of General Ross—Bombardment of Fort McHenry—How a Famous Song was written.
Ross's Expedition against Washington—Battle of Bladensburg—Destruction of the Capital—Surrender of Alexandria—Comments from the London Times—Expedition against Baltimore—Death of Sir Peter Parker—Battle of North Point—Death of General Ross—Bombardment of Fort McHenry—How a Famous Song was written.
But these little affairs along the coast were of small consequence in comparison with what befell the capital of the country. Relieved by the peace in Europe, the English Government resolved to prosecute the American war with greater vigor, and fixed upon the policy of striking at the cities. Baltimore, Washington, Charleston, Savannah, and New Orleans were all marked for capture or destruction. A powerful British fleet was sent to the Bermudas, and a large number of veteran troops transported thither, and the commanders on our coasts were directed to draw thence such forces as they might need for their expeditions.
But these small events along the coast were insignificant compared to what happened in the capital. With peace in Europe, the English Government decided to ramp up the American war effort and focused on attacking the cities. Baltimore, Washington, Charleston, Savannah, and New Orleans were all targeted for capture or destruction. A strong British fleet was sent to the Bermuda Islands, along with a large number of experienced troops, and the commanders on our coasts were instructed to take any forces they needed for their missions.
That Washington was likely to be the object of a hostile demonstration of some kind, was known to the Administration for months, but no efficient 275measures were taken to meet it. President Madison and General Armstrong, Secretary of War, did not like each other, and neither man was large enough not to let his personal feelings stand in the way of the country's interests. When the President urged that something should be done to avert the danger that threatened the capital, General Armstrong opposed the proposition with such abstruse reasons as that "militia were always most effective when first called out."
That Washington was likely to be the target of some kind of hostile protest had been known to the Administration for months, but no effective 275measures were taken to address it. President Madison and General Armstrong, the Secretary of War, didn’t get along, and neither was mature enough to put their personal feelings aside for the country’s sake. When the President pressed for action to prevent the threat facing the capital, General Armstrong countered with complex arguments like "militia are always most effective when called out for the first time."
The only effective means of defence consisted of a small flotilla commanded by Commodore Joshua Barney, who sailed the waters of Chesapeake Bay for some weeks, continually annoying the English fleet. On the 1st of June he had an engagement with two schooners in the Patuxent, and drove them off with hot shot. A few days later, he was chased into St. Leonard's Creek, where he formed his boats in line of battle across the channel and engaged the enemy's barges, ultimately chasing them down to the ships. On the 10th he was attacked by twenty barges and two schooners; but he beat them all off, and so severely handled one of the schooners, an eighteen-gun vessel, that her crew ran her aground and abandoned her. On the 26th, with the help of a corps of artillery and a detachment of the marine corps, Barney attacked the 276whole squadron that was blockading him in the St. Leonard's, and after a fight of two hours compelled them to raise the blockade.
The only effective way to defend was a small fleet led by Commodore Joshua Barney, who patrolled Chesapeake Bay for several weeks, persistently troubling the English fleet. On June 1st, he had a showdown with two schooners in the Patuxent and drove them off with cannon fire. A few days later, he was pursued into St. Leonard's Creek, where he positioned his boats in battle formation across the channel and engaged the enemy's barges, eventually forcing them back to their ships. On the 10th, he faced an attack from twenty barges and two schooners; however, he successfully defended against them all, and one of the schooners, an eighteen-gun vessel, was so badly damaged that her crew ran her aground and fled. On the 26th, with assistance from an artillery unit and a detachment of the marine corps, Barney launched an attack on the 276entire squadron that was blockading him in St. Leonard's, and after two hours of fighting, forced them to lift the blockade.
General Robert Ross, who had served in several campaigns under Wellington, and was with Sir John Moore when he fell at Corunna, was selected by the Duke to command an expedition against Washington. In July, with three thousand five hundred men, the finest regiments of Wellington's army, he sailed from Bordeaux for the Chesapeake, where he arrived in August, and was at once reenforced by a thousand marines from Cockburn's blockading squadron, and a hundred negroes from the neighboring plantations, who had been armed and drilled as British soldiers.
General Robert Ross, who had fought in several campaigns with Wellington and was with Sir John Moore when he died at Corunna, was chosen by the Duke to lead an expedition against Washington. In July, with three thousand five hundred men, the best regiments from Wellington's army, he set sail from Bordeaux to the Chesapeake, where he arrived in August. He was immediately reinforced by a thousand marines from Cockburn's blockading squadron and a hundred Black soldiers from nearby plantations, who had been armed and trained as British soldiers.
The District of Columbia and the adjacent counties of Virginia and Maryland had recently been formed into a military district, of which the command was given to General William H. Winder. His forces consisted of five hundred regulars and two thousand militia. On the approach of the enemy, Maryland and Virginia were hastily called upon for reënforcements of militia, and nearly three thousand came from Maryland; but the Virginians, from delay in receiving their flints, did not move till the fighting was over.
The District of Columbia and the nearby counties in Virginia and Maryland had recently been established as a military district, which was put under the command of General William H. Winder. His troops included five hundred regular soldiers and two thousand militia members. As the enemy approached, Maryland and Virginia were quickly asked to send reinforcements of militia, and nearly three thousand from Maryland responded; however, the Virginians delayed due to a hold-up in receiving their flints, so they didn't arrive until after the fighting had ended.
By order of the Secretary of War, Commodore Barney blew up his little flotilla, and with his five hundred seamen and marines retreated to Nottingham, where General Winder assigned to them the management of the artillery.
By order of the Secretary of War, Commodore Barney destroyed his small fleet, and with his five hundred sailors and marines retreated to Nottingham, where General Winder gave them the responsibility for managing the artillery.
The weather was fearfully hot, and the enemy proceeded by slow marches, dozens of men falling and fainting by the way. It was remarked at the time that their route might have been so impeded by felling trees, that the weather and the labor of removing them would have defeated the expedition. But nothing of the sort was done. Winder waited in a chosen position at Wood Yard, twelve miles from the city, to give battle. But Ross turned to the right after reaching Nottingham, taking the road to Marlborough, where Admiral Cockburn joined him with a body of marines and seamen. The Americans fell back to Battalion Old Fields, a detachment under Major Peters skirmishing sharply with the advancing enemy, and on the 24th to Bladensburg, six miles from Washington, where a bridge spanned the eastern branch of the 278Potomac. Here they made a stand, taking a strong position on the western bank, commanding the bridge. The President and several members of his Cabinet were on the field, all interfering more or less with the military arrangements. Monroe—then Secretary of State, afterward President—who had been a staff officer in the Continental army more than thirty years before, considered himself specially qualified as a military meddler, and actually changed the disposition of some of Winder's troops at the last moment.
The weather was extremely hot, and the enemy moved slowly, with dozens of men collapsing and fainting along the way. At the time, it was noted that their path could have been blocked by fallen trees, and the combination of the weather and the effort required to clear them could have thwarted the mission. However, nothing of that sort happened. Winder waited in a selected position at Wood Yard, twelve miles from the city, ready for battle. But Ross turned right after reaching Nottingham, taking the road to Marlborough, where Admiral Cockburn joined him with a group of marines and sailors. The Americans fell back to Battalion Old Fields, with a detachment under Major Peters skirmishing vigorously with the advancing enemy, and on the 24th to Bladensburg, six miles from Washington, where a bridge crossed the eastern branch of the 278Potomac. Here they held their ground, taking a strong position on the western bank, commanding the bridge. The President and several members of his Cabinet were on the field, all interfering to varying degrees with the military plans. Monroe—then Secretary of State, later President—who had been a staff officer in the Continental army more than thirty years earlier, thought he was especially qualified to intervene militarily, and actually changed the positioning of some of Winder's troops at the last moment.
It could not be expected that a mass of raw militia, hastily called together, and hardly knowing by whom they were commanded, would stand long, even in an advantageous position, before the onset of veteran troops. "Come, General Armstrong, come, Colonel Monroe," said the President, "let us go, and leave it to the commanding General." So Mr. Madison and his Cabinet left the field, and it was not long before the militia followed their illustrious example.
It wasn't reasonable to think that a group of inexperienced militia, quickly gathered and barely aware of their leadership, would hold out for long, even in a strong position, against seasoned troops. "Come on, General Armstrong, come on, Colonel Monroe," said the President, "let's go, and leave it to the commanding General." So Mr. Madison and his Cabinet left the battlefield, and it wasn't long before the militia followed their prominent example.
The ground on the eastern side of the river, where the British approached, was low and clear. On the western it rose in a gradual slope, and along the stream was fringed with willows and larches. A body of American riflemen was posted in the shrubbery that lined the bank. Three hundred 279yards up the slope was a slight earthwork, mounting six guns, supported by two companies of Baltimore volunteers. General Stansbury had posted three regiments to the right of it, but Secretary Monroe had moved them to a point in the rear of the battery and five hundred yards farther up the slope. At the top of the hill, one mile from the bridge, was formed a line consisting of Maryland militia on the right, Barney's seamen and marines in the centre, a detachment of regular troops and a regiment of District militia on the left, with a battery of six guns and a company of riflemen in front.
The ground on the eastern side of the river, where the British came from, was flat and clear. On the western side, it sloped gently upward, lined with willows and larches along the stream. A group of American riflemen was stationed in the bushes that bordered the bank. Three hundred 279yards up the slope was a small earthwork with six guns, supported by two companies of Baltimore volunteers. General Stansbury had positioned three regiments to its right, but Secretary Monroe moved them to a spot behind the battery and five hundred yards further up the slope. At the top of the hill, one mile from the bridge, a line was formed with Maryland militia on the right, Barney's sailors and marines in the center, a detachment of regular troops and a regiment of District militia on the left, along with a battery of six guns and a company of riflemen in front.
The enemy entered the village of Bladensburg soon after noon of the 24th, and was at once subjected to a fire that compelled him to seek the shelter of the houses. At one o'clock the advance column rushed at the double quick upon the bridge, where it met a concentrated fire from the American batteries and riflemen, and almost entirely melted away. A remnant, however, succeeded in crossing, deployed at once, and advanced upon the first line, which fell back and permitted two guns to be lost.
The enemy arrived in the village of Bladensburg just after noon on the 24th and immediately came under fire that forced them to take cover in the houses. At one o'clock, the leading troops charged quickly toward the bridge, only to face intense fire from the American batteries and riflemen, which caused almost all of them to be wiped out. A few, however, managed to cross, quickly spread out, and attacked the first line, which retreated and allowed two cannons to be lost.
Elated at this success, the thin line of British troops threw off their knapsacks and advanced toward the second line, without waiting for another column to cross the bridge to their support. When 280General Winder saw their error, he placed himself at the head of a regiment of Baltimore volunteers, gave them an effective volley, and then made a charge, and at the point of the bayonet drove them down to the very brink of the river, where with difficulty they maintained their foothold under the trees till another brigade had crossed the bridge to their relief.
Elated by this success, the thin line of British troops tossed aside their backpacks and moved forward toward the second line, without waiting for another group to cross the bridge and back them up. When 280General Winder noticed their mistake, he positioned himself at the front of a regiment of Baltimore volunteers, delivered an effective volley, and then charged ahead, driving them to the very edge of the river with the point of his bayonet. They struggled to hold their ground under the trees until another brigade crossed the bridge to rescue them.
One regiment of these fresh troops turned the left of the American line, and threw in some Congreve rockets, which so frightened the militia on that flank that they broke at once and fled in confusion. The regiment headed by Winder stood firm till both its flanks were turned, when it retired, its retreat being covered by the riflemen.
One regiment of these new troops maneuvered around the left side of the American line and launched some Congreve rockets. This terrified the militia on that side so much that they immediately panicked and ran away in chaos. The regiment led by Winder held its ground until both of its sides were flanked, at which point it fell back, with the retreat being protected by the riflemen.
The enemy then attacked the remainder of the line, all of which soon gave way, except Barney's men, who kept them in check for half an hour, and with the fire of four pieces of artillery ploughed their ranks through and through. But when the militia broke, the teamsters stampeded, without stopping to unhitch their horses from the ammunition wagons. Barney was thus left with but a single round of ammunition, while the enemy was gradually gaining a position upon his flank; and though many of his men were acting as infantry and behaved admirably, charging several times with 281great effect, he was obliged to order a retreat. He himself had been severely wounded, while two of his principal officers were killed, and two others wounded. He fell into the hands of the enemy, who took him to their hospital at Bladensburg. In this action the Americans had lost seventy-seven men killed or wounded; the British, more than five hundred. Ross's entire loss, including deserters, prisoners, and those who succumbed to the weather, was said to be nearly a thousand.
The enemy then attacked what was left of the line, which quickly gave way, except for Barney's men, who held them off for half an hour, and with the fire from four pieces of artillery made their ranks stagger. But when the militia broke, the teamsters panicked, not even pausing to unhook their horses from the ammunition wagons. Barney was left with only one round of ammunition, while the enemy was steadily gaining a position on his flank; and even though many of his men were fighting as infantry and performed remarkably, charging several times with great effect, he had to order a retreat. He had been seriously wounded, and two of his main officers were killed, while two others were injured. He fell into enemy hands and was taken to their hospital at Bladensburg. In this battle, the Americans lost seventy-seven men killed or wounded; the British lost over five hundred. Ross's total losses, counting deserters, prisoners, and those who succumbed to the weather, were reported to be nearly a thousand.
But no serious obstacle now stood in the way of General Ross's purpose to destroy the capital; and with that portion of his force which had not been engaged, he marched thither without the loss of an hour, arriving at eight o'clock that evening.
But no serious obstacle now stood in the way of General Ross's goal to destroy the capital; and with the part of his force that hadn't been engaged, he marched there without wasting any time, arriving at eight o'clock that evening.
The most valuable portion of the public archives had been removed to a place of safety, and Mrs. Madison had managed to carry away the original draft of the Declaration of Independence, a portrait of Washington that hung in the White House, and a few other articles which could not have been replaced. The magazines and shipping at the Navy Yard had already been fired by order of the Secretary of War, and everything there was destroyed.
The most important parts of the public archives had been taken to a safe location, and Mrs. Madison had successfully brought away the original draft of the Declaration of Independence, a portrait of Washington that was displayed in the White House, and a few other irreplaceable items. The magazines and shipping at the Navy Yard had already been set on fire by the Secretary of War's order, and everything there was destroyed.
It is said that General Ross offered to spare the city for a price; but there was no one at hand who 282could treat with him, if the authorities had been inclined to purchase its safety. He expected to be attacked by a more formidable force than that he had met at Brudensburg, and, as he wrote to Earl Bathurst, "judging it of consequence to complete the destruction of the public buildings with the least possible delay, so that the army might retire without loss of time, he without a moment's delay burned and destroyed everything in the most distant degree connected with the government." There was one notable exception. At the intercession of Dr. Thornton, who superintended the Patent Office, the building containing that and the Post Office was spared; because, as the doctor represented, it contained great numbers of models and papers which were of value to the whole scientific world. The jail, one hotel, and a few dwellings also escaped. All else, including the President's house, the public libraries, and the new Capitol—of which only the wings had been built—was given to the flames. The commanders of the expedition distinguished themselves personally in this vandalism. Admiral Cochrane, who had a spite against the National Intelligencer because of its strictures upon his marauding exploits along the coast, caused the office to be sacked and the type thrown into, the street, and with his own hand set 283the building on fire. Admiral Cockburn is said to have led his men into the hall of the House of Representatives, where he leaped into the Speaker's chair and shouted, "Shall this harbor of Yankee democracy be burned? All for it will say, Aye!"
It’s said that General Ross offered to spare the city for a price; however, there was no one available who 282could negotiate with him, even if the authorities had wanted to buy its safety. He anticipated being attacked by a stronger force than what he encountered at Brudensburg, and as he wrote to Earl Bathurst, "considering it important to quickly complete the destruction of public buildings so that the army could withdraw without wasting time, he immediately burned and destroyed everything even remotely connected with the government." There was one notable exception. At the request of Dr. Thornton, who managed the Patent Office, the building housing that office and the Post Office was spared; because, as the doctor argued, it contained many models and documents valuable to the entire scientific community. The jail, one hotel, and a few houses also survived. Everything else, including the President's house, the public libraries, and the new Capitol—of which only the wings had been constructed—was left to the flames. The leaders of the expedition personally distinguished themselves in this act of destruction. Admiral Cochrane, who held a grudge against the National Intelligencer because of its criticism of his raids along the coast, ordered the office to be looted and the type thrown into the street, and he personally set 283the building on fire. Admiral Cockburn is said to have led his men into the hall of the House of Representatives, where he jumped into the Speaker's chair and exclaimed, "Shall this stronghold of Yankee democracy be burned? If so, let all who support it say, Aye!"
In the night of the 25th, Ross silently withdrew from the city, leaving his camp-fires burning, for he expected and feared pursuit-, and marched with all that remained of his force to Benedict, where they reëmbarked.
In the night of the 25th, Ross quietly left the city, leaving his campfires burning because he anticipated and feared being pursued. He marched with what was left of his forces to Benedict, where they reboarded their ships.
A division of the enemy's fleet, consisting of eight vessels, ascended the Potomac to attack the city of Alexandria. Fort Warburton, a small work intended for its defence, was destroyed by the garrison at the approach of the ships, and with no opposition they passed up and laid the town under their guns. A parley was had, the result of which was that the dwellings were left unmolested, the condition being, "the immediate delivery [to the enemy] of all public and private naval and ordnance stores; of all shipping, and the furniture necessary to their equipment then in port; of all the merchandise of every description, whether in the town or removed from it since the 19th of the month; that such merchandise should be put on board the shipping at the expense of the owners; and that all vessels which might have been sunk upon the approach of 284the fleet should be raised by the merchants and delivered up with all their apparatus." These conditions, hard as they were, were complied with, and on the 6th of September the fleet, loaded with booty, returned down the river. Two batteries on the shore—at White House and Indian Head, commanded by Captains Porter and Perry, of the navy—damaged it considerably as it passed, but were not able to stop it.
A part of the enemy's fleet, made up of eight ships, traveled up the Potomac to attack the city of Alexandria. Fort Warburton, a small fort meant for its defense, was destroyed by the soldiers stationed there as the ships approached, and without any resistance, they moved on and positioned themselves over the town. A negotiation took place, resulting in the agreement that the buildings would be left untouched, with the condition being "the immediate delivery [to the enemy] of all public and private naval and ordnance supplies; of all shipping, and the equipment needed for them that were in port; of all merchandise of any kind, whether in the town or removed from it since the 19th of the month; that such merchandise should be loaded onto the ships at the owners' expense; and that all vessels that might have been sunk as the fleet approached should be raised by the merchants and handed over with all their equipment." These conditions, tough as they were, were met, and on September 6th, the fleet returned down the river, filled with spoils. Two shore batteries—at White House and Indian Head, led by Captains Porter and Perry of the navy—damaged it significantly as it passed by, but couldn’t stop it.
If the importance of General Ross's exploit was overrated by the Americans, who naturally felt chagrined that so small an invading force should have destroyed their capital and momentarily dispersed their Government, it was enormously exaggerated by the English journals. By confounding the capital of the country with its metropolis, they led their readers to believe that the chief city of the United States had been laid in ashes; whereas Washington was but a straggling place of eight thousand inhabitants, which had been made the seat of the Federal Government but a dozen years before. Taking it for granted that what would have befallen England or France with London or Paris in the possession of a foreign enemy, had actually befallen the United States, the London Times proceeded to say: "The ill-organized association is on the eve of dissolution, and the world is speed285ily to be delivered of the mischievous example of the existence of a government founded on democratic rebellion." In another issue, October 9th, 1814, it said: "Next to the annihilation of the late military despotism in Europe, the subversion of that system of fraud and malignity which constitutes the whole policy of the Jeffersonian school, was an event to be devoutly wished by every man in either hemisphere who regards rational liberty or the honorable intercourse of nations. It was an event to which we should have bent, and yet must bend, all our energies. The American Government must be displaced, or it will sooner or later plant its poisoned dagger in the heart of the parent state." In a speech in Parliament, Sir Gilbert Heathcote naively said, "it appeared to him that we feared the rising power of America, and wished to curtail it." Which, as the Scottish captain in the story said, was "a verra just remark."
If the significance of General Ross's achievement was overstated by the Americans, who understandably felt frustrated that such a small invading force had destroyed their capital and temporarily disrupted their government, it was greatly exaggerated by the English newspapers. By confusing the capital of the country with its major city, they led their readers to think that the main city of the United States had been turned to ashes; when in reality, Washington was just a small town of eight thousand residents, which had only become the seat of the Federal Government about twelve years earlier. Assuming that what would have happened to England or France if London or Paris had been under foreign occupation had indeed happened to the United States, the London Times stated: "The poorly organized alliance is on the verge of collapse, and the world is speed285ily going to be rid of the harmful example of a government built on democratic rebellion." In another issue, on October 9, 1814, it claimed: "Next to the destruction of the recent military tyranny in Europe, the overthrow of that system of deception and malevolence which defines the entire policy of the Jeffersonian faction is an outcome to be fervently wished for by anyone in either hemisphere who values rational freedom or honorable relations between nations. This is an event to which we should have dedicated, and still must dedicate, all our efforts. The American Government must be removed, or it will inevitably drive its poisoned dagger into the heart of the parent state." In a speech in Parliament, Sir Gilbert Heathcote candidly said, "it seemed to him that we feared the rising power of America and wanted to limit it." Which, as the Scottish captain in the story noted, was "a very accurate observation."
In the night of August 30th, Sir Peter Parker, commander of the frigate Menelaus, who had been blockading Baltimore with that and another vessel, landed on the Eastern Shore, with two hundred and thirty men, intending to surprise and capture a small body of Maryland volunteers at Moorfields. But the Maryland men were ready for them, and after a sharp fight of about an hour the British re286treated, leaving sixteen of their men killed or wounded on the field, and bearing away seventeen others, among whom was Sir Peter, who died almost as soon as he reached his ship. Three of the Americans were wounded.
On the night of August 30th, Sir Peter Parker, the commander of the frigate Menelaus, who had been blockading Baltimore with that ship and another, landed on the Eastern Shore with two hundred and thirty men, planning to surprise and capture a small group of Maryland volunteers at Moorfields. However, the Maryland men were prepared for them, and after a fierce fight that lasted about an hour, the British retreated, leaving sixteen of their men dead or injured on the battlefield, and taking away seventeen others, including Sir Peter, who died shortly after reaching his ship. Three Americans were wounded.
Rightly conjecturing that Baltimore would be the next place at which the enemy would strike, the people of that city had made haste to provide for its defence. The fortifications were extended, and manned by about five thousand men. On the 11th of September, forty British war-vessels appeared at the mouth of the Patapsco, and that night eight thousand men, under General Ross, were landed at North Point, a dozen miles below the city. No resistance was offered till they had marched four miles up the little peninsula, when they were met by General John Strivker with three thousand two hundred men, including an artillery company with six small guns, and a detachment of cavalry.
Rightly guessing that Baltimore would be the next target for the enemy, the people in that city quickly took steps to defend it. They expanded the fortifications and stationed about five thousand troops there. On September 11th, forty British warships showed up at the mouth of the Patapsco River, and that night, eight thousand soldiers, led by General Ross, landed at North Point, about twelve miles south of the city. They faced no resistance until they had marched four miles up the small peninsula, where they were confronted by General John Strivker and three thousand two hundred men, which included an artillery unit with six small cannons and a cavalry detachment.
The cavalry and a hundred and fifty riflemen were thrown forward to feel the enemy. General Ross, who had declared that he "did n't care if it rained militia," and had expressed his intention of making winter quarters in Baltimore, put himself at the head of his advance guard, and promptly attacked. But as he rode along the crest of a little knoll, he was shot in the side by an American rifle287man, and before his aides could bear him back to the boats, he expired.
The cavalry and one hundred fifty riflemen were sent forward to test the enemy. General Ross, who had said he "didn't care if it rained militia," and had planned to set up winter quarters in Baltimore, took the lead of his advance guard and quickly launched an attack. But as he rode along the top of a small hill, he was shot in the side by an American rifleman, and before his aides could carry him back to the boats, he died.
Notwithstanding the loss of their leader, the British forces rushed steadily forward, drove the American skirmishers back upon the main line, and brought on a general engagement. The battle lasted two or three hours with varying fortune, till a heavy attack on the American left turned it, when the whole body retreated to an intrenched position near the city.
Despite losing their leader, the British troops pressed forward, pushed the American skirmishers back to the main line, and initiated a full-scale battle. The fight continued for two to three hours with fluctuating outcomes until a strong assault on the American left flank caused them to retreat to a fortified position near the city.
The British followed the next day, but found their enemy strongly placed and reenforced, whereupon they took advantage of a dark night and retraced their steps. They had lost two hundred and ninety men, killed or wounded, and had inflicted upon the Americans a loss of two hundred and thirteen, including fifty prisoners. This action is known as the battle of North Point, but has sometimes been called the battle of Long-log Lane.
The British followed the next day but discovered their enemy was well-positioned and reinforced, leading them to take advantage of a dark night and retreat. They had lost two hundred and ninety men, either killed or wounded, while inflicting a loss of two hundred and thirteen on the Americans, including fifty prisoners. This conflict is known as the battle of North Point but has sometimes been referred to as the battle of Long-log Lane.
While Ross's men were approaching Baltimore by land, sixteen vessels of the British fleet moved up the bay, and opened fire upon its immediate defences. The shallowness of the water prevented them from getting near enough to bombard the town itself; but for twenty-four hours they poured an almost uninterrupted shower of rockets and shells into Fort McHenry, Fort Covington, and the 288connecting intrenchments. Most of the firing was at long range; whenever any of the vessels came within reach of the batteries, they were subjected to a fire that quickly drove them back, and in some cases sank them. Fort McHenry, garrisoned by six hundred men under Major George Armistead, bore the brunt of the attack.
While Ross's men were nearing Baltimore by land, sixteen ships from the British fleet sailed up the bay and started firing on the local defenses. The shallow water kept them from getting close enough to bombard the town itself; however, for twenty-four hours, they unleashed a nearly constant barrage of rockets and shells on Fort McHenry, Fort Covington, and the 288connecting trenches. Most of the firing was long-range; whenever any of the ships got within range of the batteries, they faced fire that quickly pushed them back, and in some cases, sank them. Fort McHenry, manned by six hundred soldiers under Major George Armistead, took the brunt of the assault.
At the dead of night the enemy attempted to land a strong force above the forts, for an attack in the rear; but it was discovered and subjected to a concentrated fire of red-hot shot, which speedily drove it off with serious loss. This practically put an end to the attempt to take Baltimore, and a few hours later the fleet withdrew. The loss of the Americans by the bombardment was four killed and twenty-four wounded. The loss in the fleet is unknown.
At the dead of night, the enemy tried to bring in a large force above the forts for a surprise attack from the rear. However, they were discovered and hit with concentrated fire of red-hot cannonballs, which quickly drove them away with heavy losses. This pretty much put an end to the effort to capture Baltimore, and a few hours later, the fleet pulled back. The American casualties from the bombardment were four dead and twenty-four wounded. The losses in the fleet are unknown.
This bombardment of Fort McHenry gave us one of our national songs. Francis S. Key had gone out to the British fleet in a row-boat, under a flag of truce, to ask for the release on parole of a friend who had been made prisoner. Admiral Cockburn, who had just completed his plans for the attack, detained him, and in his little boat, moored to the side of the flag-ship, he sat and watched the bombardment. When the second morning broke, and he saw that the flag of the fort—which Cockburn 289had boasted would "yield in a few hours"—was still flying, he took an old letter out of his pocket, and on the back of it wrote the first draft of "The Star-Spangled Banner." The flag is now in the possession of the Massachusetts Historical Society.
This bombardment of Fort McHenry gave us one of our national anthems. Francis S. Key had gone out to the British fleet in a small boat, under a flag of truce, to ask for the release of a friend who had been captured. Admiral Cockburn, who had just finished his plans for the attack, detained him, and in his little boat, tied to the side of the flagship, he sat and watched the bombardment. When the second morning arrived, and he saw that the flag of the fort—which Cockburn 289had claimed would "fall in a few hours"—was still flying, he took an old letter out of his pocket and wrote the first draft of "The Star-Spangled Banner" on the back of it. The flag is now held by the Massachusetts Historical Society.
CHAPTER XVIII. NAVAL BATTLES OF 1814.
290
Porter's Cruise in the Essex—His Campaign Against the Typees—Destruction of the British Whaling Interest in the Pacific—Battle with the Phoebe and the Cherub—The Peacock and the Epervier—The Wasp and the Reindeer—The Wasp and the Avon—Destruction of the General Armstrong—Loss of the President—The Constitution Captures the Cyane and the Levant—The Hornet and the Penguin.
Porter's Cruise on the Essex—His Campaign Against the Typees—Destruction of the British Whaling Industry in the Pacific—Battle with the Phoebe and the Cherub—The Peacock and the Epervier—The Wasp and the Reindeer—The Wasp and the Avon—Destruction of the General Armstrong—Loss of the President—The Constitution Captures the Cyane and the Levant—The Hornet and the Penguin.
The naval contests of 1814 and the winter of 1815 repeated and emphasized the lesson of the first year of the war; they were all, with but two exceptions, American victories.
The naval battles of 1814 and the winter of 1815 reinforced the lesson from the first year of the war; they were all American victories, except for two.
The remarkable cruise of the Essex, commanded by Captain David Porter, begun late in 1812, extended along the coast of South America, around Cape Horn, and throughout almost the entire eastern half of the Pacific, ending in a bloody battle in the harbor of Valparaiso, in March, 1814. The prizes taken in the Atlantic were of little value, except one. The packet ship Nocton, captured just south of the equator, had $55,000 in specie, on board, with which Porter subsequently paid off his men. She was put in charge of a prize crew, and 291sailed for the United States, but was recaptured on the way by a British frigate.
The remarkable voyage of the Essex, led by Captain David Porter, began late in 1812 and traveled along the coast of South America, around Cape Horn, and throughout almost all of the eastern half of the Pacific, concluding in a bloody battle in the harbor of Valparaiso in March 1814. The prizes taken in the Atlantic were mostly not worth much, except for one. The packet ship Nocton, captured just south of the equator, had $55,000 in cash on board, which Porter later used to pay his crew. It was handed over to a prize crew and 291sailed for the United States, but was recaptured on the way by a British frigate.
Porter had sailed under orders to meet Commodore Bainbridge, who had gone to sea with the Constitution and the Hornet. But after failing to find either of those vessels at three successive rendezvous, he determined to carry out a plan which he had submitted to the Secretary of the Navy some time before, for a cruise against the British whalers in the Pacific. After the usual stormy passage, he doubled Cape Horn in February, 1813. His description of one of the gales shows us that the greatest dangers undergone by a man-of-war are not always from the guns of the enemy.
Porter had set sail under orders to meet Commodore Bainbridge, who was at sea with the Constitution and the Hornet. However, after failing to locate either ship at three scheduled meet-ups, he decided to go ahead with a plan he had suggested to the Secretary of the Navy earlier, to target British whalers in the Pacific. After the usual rough journey, he rounded Cape Horn in February 1813. His account of one of the storms illustrates that the biggest threats faced by a warship aren’t always from enemy fire.
"It was with no little joy we now saw ourselves fairly in the Pacific Ocean, calculating on a speedy end to all our sufferings. We began also to form our projects for annoying the enemy, and had already equipped, in imagination, one of their vessels of fourteen or sixteen guns, and manned her from the Essex, to cruise against their commerce. Indeed, various were the schemes we formed at this time, and had in fancy immense wealth to return with to our country. But the wind freshened up to a gale, and by noon had reduced us to our storm stay-sail and close-reefed main-top-sail. In the afternoon it hauled around to the westward, and blew 292with a fury far exceeding anything we had yet experienced, bringing with it such a tremendous sea as to threaten us every moment with destruction, and appalled the stoutest heart on board. Our sails, our standing and running rigging, from the succession of bad weather, had become so damaged as to be no longer trustworthy; we took, however, the best means in our power to render everything secure, and carried as heavy a press of sail as the ship would bear, to keep her from drifting on the coast of Patagonia, which we had reason to believe was not far distant.
"It was with great joy that we found ourselves officially in the Pacific Ocean, hopeful for a quick end to all our struggles. We also started to brainstorm ways to annoy the enemy, and we had already imagined equipping one of their ships with fourteen or sixteen guns, manned by crew members from the Essex, to patrol against their trade. In fact, we came up with various plans during this time, dreaming of returning home with immense wealth. But then the wind picked up to a gale, and by noon we had to revert to our storm stay-sail and tightly reefed main-top-sail. In the afternoon, the wind shifted to the west and blew with a force far beyond anything we had encountered before, generating a massive sea that threatened our safety every moment and horrified even the bravest sailors on board. Our sails and rigging, both standing and running, had suffered so much damage from the relentless bad weather that they were no longer reliable; nevertheless, we took every possible measure to secure everything and carried as much sail as the ship could handle to prevent her from drifting toward the coast of Patagonia, which we believed was not far away."
"From the excessive violence with which the wind blew, we had strong hopes that it would be of short continuance; until, worn out with fatigue and anxiety, greatly alarmed with the terrors of a lee shore, and in momentary expectation of the loss of our masts and bowsprit, we almost considered our situation hopeless. To add to our distress, our pumps had become choked by the shingle ballast, which, from the violent rolling of the ship, had got into them, and the sea had increased to such a height as to threaten to swallow us at every instant. The whole ocean was one continual foam of breakers, and the heaviest squall that I ever experienced had not equalled in violence the most moderate intervals of this tremendous hurricane. We had, however, done 293all that lay in our power to preserve the ship, and turned our attention to our pumps, which we were enabled to clear, and to keep the ship from drifting on shore, by getting on the most advantageous tack. We were enabled to wear but once; for the violence of the wind and sea was such as afterward to render it impossible to attempt it, without hazarding the destruction of the ship and the loss of every life on board. Our fatigue had been constant and excessive; many had been severely bruised by being thrown, by the violent jerks of the ship, down the hatchways, and I was particularly unfortunate in receiving three severe falls, which at length disabled me from going on deck.
"From the intense violence of the wind, we hoped it wouldn't last long; but, exhausted from fatigue and anxiety, terrified by the dangers of a lee shore, and expecting to lose our masts and bowsprit at any moment, we began to feel our situation was hopeless. To make matters worse, our pumps had clogged with shingle ballast, which had gotten into them due to the ship's violent rolling, and the sea had risen high enough to threaten to swallow us at any second. The entire ocean was a constant churn of waves, and even the strongest storm I had ever faced didn’t compare to the violent lulls of this terrifying hurricane. However, we had done 293everything we could to save the ship and focused on getting our pumps clear, managing to prevent the ship from drifting ashore by adjusting our tack for the best advantage. We only managed to change tack once; the wind and sea's force made it impossible to try again without risking the ship's destruction and the loss of all lives on board. Our fatigue was relentless and overwhelming; many were seriously injured from being thrown down the hatchways by the ship's violent movements, and I was particularly unfortunate, suffering three bad falls that ultimately left me unable to go on deck."
"We had shipped several heavy seas, that would have proved destructive to almost any other ship. About three o'clock of the morning of the 3d, the watch only being on deck, an enormous sea broke over the ship, and for an instant destroyed every hope. Our gun-deck ports were burst in, both boats on the quarter stove, our spare spars washed from the chains, our head-rails washed away, and hammock stanchions burst in, and the ship perfectly deluged and water-logged. Immediately after this tremendous shock, which threw the crew into consternation, the gale began to abate, and in the morning we were enabled to set our reefed foresail. 294In the height of the gale, Lewis Price, a marine, who had long been confined with a pulmonary complaint, departed this life, and was in the morning committed to the deep; but the violence of the sea was such that the crew could not be permitted to come on deck to attend the ceremony of his burial, as their weight would have strained and endangered the safety of the ship.
"We had faced several rough seas that would have been disastrous for almost any other ship. Around three o'clock in the morning of the 3rd, with only the watch on deck, a huge wave crashed over the ship, momentarily destroying all hope. Our gun-deck ports were broken in, both boats on the quarter were wrecked, our spare spars were washed away, our head-rails were gone, and the hammock stanchions were smashed, leaving the ship completely flooded and waterlogged. Right after this massive impact, which threw the crew into panic, the storm began to die down, and by morning we were able to set our reefed foresail. 294During the height of the storm, Lewis Price, a marine who had long been suffering from a lung disease, passed away and was buried at sea in the morning; however, the severity of the waves meant the crew could not come on deck for his burial, as their weight would have compromised the safety of the ship."
"When this last sea broke on board us, one of the prisoners exclaimed that the ship's broadside was stove in, and that she was sinking. This alarm was greatly calculated to increase the fears of those below, who, from the immense torrent of water that was rushing down the hatchways, had reason to believe the truth of his assertion. Many who were washed from the spar- to the gun-deck, and from their hammocks, and did not know the extent of the injury, were also greatly alarmed; but the men at the wheel, and some others, who were enabled by a good grasp to keep their stations, distinguished themselves by their coolness and activity after the shock."
"When the last wave hit us, one of the prisoners shouted that the ship's side was crushed and that we were sinking. This alarmed those below, who saw the massive surge of water pouring down the hatchways and had good reason to believe him. Many who were tossed from the spar to the gun deck, and from their hammocks, were also extremely frightened, not knowing how serious the damage was. However, the men at the wheel and a few others, who managed to hold on firmly to their positions, stood out for their calmness and quick action after the impact."
Porter touched at the island of Mocha, and afterward ran into the harbor of Valparaiso, where he learned that his arrival in the Pacific was most opportune; for there were many American whalers that had left home before the war began, and knew 295nothing of it, while some English whalers, sailing later, had taken out letters of marque, and carried guns, and were making prizes of the unsuspecting Americans.
Porter stopped at the island of Mocha and then sailed into the harbor of Valparaiso, where he found out that his timing in the Pacific was perfect. Many American whalers had left home before the war started and had no idea about it, while some English whalers, who set sail later, had obtained letters of marque, were armed, and were capturing the unsuspecting Americans.
Porter soon captured a Peruvian privateer, and two English whalers, and recaptured an American ship that had been taken by the enemy. One of the whalers carried six guns, and the other ten. He placed the entire armament in the faster sailer, cut away her try-works, and with some other alterations converted her into a war-vessel, giving the command of her to John Downes, his first lieutenant. Subsequently a still better ship for the purpose was captured, and the armament was shifted to that, which was then re-christened Essex Junior.
Porter quickly captured a Peruvian privateer and two English whalers, and reclaimed an American ship that had been taken by the enemy. One whaler had six guns and the other had ten. He transferred all the weapons to the faster ship, cut away her try-works, and made a few other modifications to turn her into a war vessel, giving the command to John Downes, his first lieutenant. Later, he captured an even better ship for this purpose, moved the armament to that one, and renamed it Essex Junior.
With these two ships Porter scoured the ocean for the next six months, and took numerous prizes, nearly all English whalers, several of which had armed themselves as privateers. One he loaded with oil and sent home. Two or three, as he could spare no more men for prize crews, he disarmed and allowed to go home in charge of their own crews, carrying also the other prisoners, all of whom were paroled. One captain, whom he found cruising as a privateer without a commission as such, he put in irons, to be tried as a pirate when the Essex should return home. In that six months, Porter and 296Downes had captured four thousand tons of British shipping, taking four hundred prisoners; and as they could now hear of no more in that part of the Pacific, they went in October to the Marquesas Islands, to refit their vessels and let the crews have a rest and a run on shore.
With these two ships, Porter searched the ocean for the next six months and captured many prizes, almost all of them English whalers, several of which were armed as privateers. He loaded one with oil and sent it home. He disarmed two or three others, as he couldn’t spare any more crew for prize crews, and let them go home with their own crews, taking all the other prisoners, who were all paroled. He put one captain, who was found operating as a privateer without a proper commission, in irons to be tried as a pirate when the Essex returned home. In those six months, Porter and 296Downes had captured four thousand tons of British shipping, taking four hundred prisoners; and since they could no longer find any more in that part of the Pacific, they headed to the Marquesas Islands in October to refit their ships and let the crews take a break and enjoy some time on land.
There in the beautiful harbor of Nukahiva they made repairs and wooded and watered at their leisure. Porter formally took possession of the island in the name of the United States, called it Madison's Island, and the harbor Massachusetts Bay, and built a fort on the shore, in which he mounted four guns. Near the fort he constructed a small village, consisting of six houses, a rope-walk, a bakery, and other buildings, which he named Madisonville.
There in the beautiful harbor of Nukahiva, they made repairs and gathered wood and water at their convenience. Porter officially took possession of the island on behalf of the United States, named it Madison's Island, and called the harbor Massachusetts Bay. He built a fort on the shore, mounting four cannons. Next to the fort, he set up a small village with six houses, a rope-making area, a bakery, and other buildings, naming it Madisonville.
His "Journal" gives an interesting account of their life for four or five weeks among the natives of that romantic and then almost unknown group. One of the most exciting incidents of it was a war between two tribes—the Happahs and the Typees—occupying different parts of the island. All the tribes of the island except the Typees had made a sort of treaty of friendship and alliance with Porter. As he and his men were guests of the Happahs, and the Typees had begun to treat them as enemies, Porter felt obliged to join in the war, when the superiority of the fire-arms over the native 297weapons ended it in the disastrous defeat of the Typees. But this was not accomplished without severe fighting, in which the Typees exhibited the most determined courage, and a great degree of military skill, making the best of such weapons and advantages as they had. Porter's campaign in the Typee valley is one of the most singular episodes in all the annals of war, and the reader will probably be interested in some passages from his account of it, though it has no necessary connection with the subject to which this volume is devoted.
His "Journal" provides an engaging look at their life for four to five weeks among the natives of that intriguing and then nearly untouched group. One of the most thrilling events was a conflict between two tribes—the Happahs and the Typees—living in different parts of the island. All the tribes on the island except the Typees had formed a sort of friendship and alliance with Porter. Since he and his men were guests of the Happahs, and the Typees started treating them as enemies, Porter felt he had to participate in the war, especially when the superiority of the guns over the native weapons led to a crushing defeat for the Typees. However, this victory didn’t come easy; there was intense fighting, and the Typees showed incredible bravery and a notable level of military skill, making the most of the weapons and resources they had. Porter's campaign in the Typee valley is one of the most unique episodes in the history of warfare, and the reader will likely find some excerpts from his account of it interesting, even though it's not directly related to the topic this volume focuses on.
"We arrived at the Typee landing at sunrise, and were joined by ten war-canoes from the Happahs. The Essex Junior soon after arrived and anchored. The tops of all the neighboring mountains were covered with the Taeeh and Happah warriors, armed with their spears, clubs, and slings. The beach was covered with the warriors who came with the canoes, and who joined us from the hills. Our force did not amount to a less number than five thousand men; but not a Typee or any of their dwellings were to be seen. For the whole length of the beach, extending upward of a quarter of a mile, was a clear level plain which extended back about one hundred yards. A high and almost impenetrable swampy thicket bordered on this plain, and 298the only trace we could perceive which, we were informed, led to the habitations, was a narrow pathway which winded through the swamp.
"We arrived at the Typee landing at sunrise and were joined by ten war canoes from the Happahs. The Essex Junior arrived shortly after and anchored. The tops of all the surrounding mountains were filled with the Taeeh and Happah warriors, armed with their spears, clubs, and slings. The beach was crowded with the warriors who came with the canoes and those who joined us from the hills. Our force numbered at least five thousand men, but there were no Typee or any of their homes in sight. The entire length of the beach, stretching over a quarter of a mile, was a clear flat area that went back about one hundred yards. A tall and nearly impenetrable swampy thicket bordered this plain, and 298the only sign we could see that, we were told, led to the homes, was a narrow path winding through the swamp."
"The canoes were all hauled on the beach, the Taeehs on the right, the Happahs on the left, and our four boats in the centre. We only waited for reënforcements from the Essex Junior, our interpreter, our ambassadors, and Gattanewa [chief of the Happahs], I went on board to hasten them on shore, and on my return to the beach I found everyone in arms. The Typees had appeared in the bushes, and had pelted our people with stones while they were quietly eating their breakfast.
"The canoes were all pulled up on the beach, the Taeehs on the right, the Happahs on the left, and our four boats in the center. We were just waiting for reinforcements from the Essex Junior, our interpreter, our ambassadors, and Gattanewa [chief of the Happahs]. I went onboard to speed them up coming ashore, and when I returned to the beach, I found everyone armed. The Typees had shown up in the bushes and started throwing stones at our people while they were calmly having their breakfast."
"I had a man with me who had intermarried with the Typees, and was privileged to go among them, and I furnished him with a white flag and sent him to tell them I had come to offer peace, but was prepared for war. In a few minutes he came running back, and informed me he had met in the bushes an ambuscade of Typees, who had threatened to put him to death if he again ventured among them. In an instant afterward a shower of stones came from the bushes, and at the same moment one of the Typees darted across the pathway and was shot through the leg, but was carried off by his friends.
"I had a guy with me who had married into the Typees and was allowed to go among them. I gave him a white flag and sent him to let them know I came in peace but was ready for battle. A few minutes later, he came running back, telling me he had encountered a group of Typees hiding in the bushes, who threatened to kill him if he tried to go back. Just then, a bunch of stones started flying from the bushes, and at the same time, one of the Typees darted across the path and got shot in the leg, but his friends managed to carry him off."
"Lieutenant Downes arrived with his men, and I 299gave the order to march. We entered the bushes, and were at every instant assailed by spears and stones, which came from different parts of the enemy in ambuscade. We could hear the snapping of the slings, the whistling of the stones; the spears came quivering by us, but we could not perceive from whom they came. No enemy was to be seen, not a whisper was to be heard among them.
"Lieutenant Downes showed up with his troops, and I 299gave the command to move out. We pushed into the bushes and were immediately attacked by spears and stones coming from various hidden spots in the enemy ranks. We could hear the slings snapping and the stones whistling through the air; the spears whizzed past us, but we couldn’t see who was throwing them. There was no enemy in sight, not a sound could be heard from them."
"We had advanced about a mile, and came to a small opening on the bank of a river, from the thicket on the opposite side of which we were assailed with a shower of stones, when Lieutenant Downes received a blow which shattered the bone of his left leg, and he fell. The allied tribes sat as silent observers of our operations; the sides of the mountains were still covered with them, and I as well as the Taeehs had no slight grounds to doubt the fidelity of the Happahs. A defeat would have sealed our destruction.
"We had walked about a mile and reached a small clearing by the riverbank when we were hit with a barrage of stones from the thicket on the other side. Lieutenant Downes was struck and suffered a shattered bone in his left leg, causing him to fall. The allied tribes watched our actions in silence; the mountainsides were still filled with them, and both the Taeehs and I had serious doubts about the loyalty of the Happahs. A defeat would have meant our end."
"The Indians began to leave us, and all depended on our own exertions. I directed Mr. Shaw with four men to escort Lieutenant Downes to the beach, which reduced the number of my men to twenty-four. We soon came to a place for fording the river, in the thick bushes of the opposite bank of which the Typees made a bold stand. We endeavored in vain to clear the bushes with our musketry. 300The stones and spears flew with augmented numbers. I directed a volley to be fired, three cheers to be given, and to dash across the river. We soon gained the opposite bank, and continued our march, rendered still more difficult by the underwood, which was here so interlaced as to make it necessary sometimes to crawl on our hands and knees.
"The Native Americans started to leave us, and everything relied on our own efforts. I instructed Mr. Shaw and four men to escort Lieutenant Downes to the beach, which left me with just twenty-four men. We quickly reached a spot to cross the river, where the Typees made a strong stand behind the dense bushes on the other side. We tried unsuccessfully to clear the bushes with our gunfire. 300Stones and spears were flying at us in greater numbers. I ordered a volley to be fired, we cheered three times, and we rushed across the river. We soon reached the other bank and continued our march, which became even more difficult due to the tangled undergrowth that sometimes forced us to crawl on our hands and knees."
"On emerging from the swamp, we perceived a strong and extensive wall of seven feet in height, raised on an eminence crossing our road, and flanked on each side by an impenetrable thicket. In an instant afterward we were assailed by such a shower of stones, accompanied by the most horrid yells, as left no doubt that we had here to encounter their principal strength. A tree which afforded shelter from their stones enabled me, accompanied by Lieutenant Gamble, to annoy them as they rose above the wall to throw at us; but these were the only muskets that could be employed to advantage.
"After coming out of the swamp, we saw a tall, solid wall about seven feet high, built on a hill that cut across our path, with dense thickets on either side. A moment later, we were hit by a barrage of stones, along with terrifying shouts, making it clear we were up against their main force. A tree that shielded us from their missiles allowed me, along with Lieutenant Gamble, to shoot at them as they peeked over the wall to throw things at us; but those were the only rifles we could effectively use."
"Finding we could not dislodge them, I gave orders for taking the place by storm. But some of my men had expended all their cartridges, few had more than three or four remaining, and our only safety depended on holding our ground till we could procure a fresh supply. I despatched Lieutenant Gamble and four men to the Essex Junior, and from the time of their departure we were chiefly occupied 301in eluding the stones, which came with redoubled force and numbers. Three of my men were knocked down by them. As a feint, we retreated a few paces, and in an instant the Indians rushed on us with hideous yells. The first and second that advanced were killed at the distance of a few paces, and those who attempted to carry them off were wounded. They abandoned their dead, and precipitately retreated to their fort. Taking advantage of the terror they were thrown into, we marched off with our wounded, returning to the beach much fatigued and with no contemptible opinion of the enemy.
"Finding we couldn't dislodge them, I ordered an assault on the place. However, some of my men had used up all their ammunition, and few had more than three or four bullets left. Our only hope was to hold our ground until we could get fresh supplies. I sent Lieutenant Gamble and four men to the Essex Junior, and from the moment they left, we were mostly focused on dodging the stones that came with increased intensity and in greater numbers. Three of my men were struck down by them. As a tactic, we fell back a few steps, and in an instant, the Indians charged us with terrifying screams. The first and second ones who advanced were shot down from just a few paces away, and those who tried to retrieve their bodies got injured. They left their dead behind and quickly retreated to their fort. Taking advantage of the panic they were in, we marched off with our wounded, returning to the beach extremely tired and with a newfound respect for the enemy."
"The next day I determined to proceed with a force which I believed they could not resist, and selected two hundred men from the Essex, the Essex Junior, and the prizes. As some of the boats were leaky, I determined to go by land, over the mountain ridge. We had a fine, moonlight night, and I hoped to be down in the Typee valley long before daylight.
"The next day, I decided to move forward with a force that I thought they wouldn't be able to resist, and I picked two hundred men from the Essex, the Essex Junior, and the prizes. Since some of the boats were leaking, I chose to go overland, through the mountain ridge. We had a beautiful, moonlit night, and I hoped to reach the Typee valley long before dawn."
"Not a whisper was heard from one end of the line to the other. Our guides marched in front, and we followed in silence up and down the steep sides of rocks and mountains, through rivulets, thickets, and reed-brakes, and by the sides of precipices which sometimes caused us to shudder. At twelve o'clock we could hear the drums beating in 302the Typee valley, accompanied by loud singing, and the number of lights in different parts of it induced me to believe they were rejoicing. I inquired the cause, and was informed by the Indians that they were celebrating the victory they had obtained over us, and calling on their gods to give them rain in order that it might render our bouhier [muskets] useless.
"Not a sound was heard from one end of the line to the other. Our guides led the way, and we followed in silence up and down the steep rocks and mountains, through streams, thickets, and patches of reeds, and along the edges of cliffs that sometimes made us uneasy. At noon, we could hear the drums beating in 302the Typee valley, accompanied by loud singing, and the number of lights spread out in different areas made me think they were celebrating. I asked what was going on, and the Indians told me they were celebrating the victory they had achieved over us, calling on their gods to send them rain so it could make our muskets useless."
"The Indians told us it would be impossible to descend without daylight; and when it was light enough to see down the valley, we were surprised at the height and steepness. A narrow pathway pointed out the track, but it was soon lost among the cliffs. Before I left the hill, I determined by firing a volley to show the natives that our muskets had not received as much injury as they had expected from the rain. As soon as they heard the report, and discovered our number, which, with the multitude of Indians of both tribes who had now assembled, was very numerous, they shouted, beat their drums, and blew their war-conchs from one end of the valley to the other; and what with the squealing of the hogs, which they now began to catch, the screaming of the women and children, and the yelling of the men, the din was horrible.
"The Indians told us it would be impossible to go down without sunlight; and when it was light enough to see down the valley, we were shocked by the height and steepness. A narrow path marked the way, but it quickly disappeared among the cliffs. Before I left the hill, I decided to fire a shot to show the natives that our muskets hadn't suffered as much damage from the rain as they had thought. As soon as they heard the gunfire and saw how many of us there were, along with the large group of Indians from both tribes that had now gathered, they shouted, beat their drums, and blew their war conchs from one end of the valley to the other. With the squealing of the hogs they started to catch, the screaming of the women and children, and the yelling of the men, the noise was unbearable."
"We descended with great difficulty into the village of the Happahs, where everything bore the ap303pearance of a hostile disposition on their part. I sent for their chief, and required to know if they were hostilely disposed. I told him it was necessary we should have something to eat, and that I expected his people to bring us hogs and fruit, and if they did not do so, I should be under the necessity of sending out parties to shoot the hogs and cut down their fruit-trees, as our people were too fatigued to climb them. I also directed that they should lay by their spears and clubs. No notice being taken of these demands, I caused many of their spears and clubs to be taken from them and broken, and sent parties out to shoot hogs, while others were employed in cutting down cocoanut and banana trees until we had a sufficient supply. The chiefs and people now became intimidated, and brought baked hogs in greater abundance than was required.
"We struggled to make our way down into the village of the Happahs, where everything seemed to suggest they were unfriendly. I called for their chief and asked if they were hostile. I told him we needed food and expected his people to bring us pigs and fruit. If they didn’t, I'd have to send teams to hunt the pigs and cut down their fruit trees since our people were too tired to climb them. I also instructed them to put away their spears and clubs. When my requests were ignored, I ordered many of their spears and clubs taken and destroyed, and sent teams out to hunt pigs while others worked on cutting down coconut and banana trees until we had enough food. The chiefs and villagers became scared and brought us baked pigs in greater quantities than we needed."
"At daylight next morning the line of march was formed. On ascending the ridge where we had passed such a disagreeable night, we halted to take breath, and view for a few minutes the delightful valley which was soon to become a scene of desolation. We had a distant view of every part. The valley was about nine miles in length, and three or four in breadth, surrounded on every part, except the beach, by lofty mountains. The upper part 304was bounded by a precipice many hundred feet in height, from the top of which a handsome sheet of water was precipitated, and formed a beautiful river which ran meandering through the valley. Villages were scattered here and there; the bread-fruit and cocoanut trees flourished luxuriantly and in abundance; plantations laid out in good order, enclosed with stone walls, were in a high state of cultivation; and everything bespoke industry, abundance, and happiness. Never in my life did I witness a more delightful scene or experience more repugnance than I now felt for the necessity which compelled me to punish a happy and heroic people.
At daylight the next morning, we formed our line of march. As we climbed the ridge where we had spent such an uncomfortable night, we stopped to catch our breath and take in the beautiful valley that was soon to become a scene of destruction. We had a distant view of every part of it. The valley stretched about nine miles long and three or four miles wide, surrounded on all sides, except for the beach, by tall mountains. The upper part 304was bordered by a steep cliff several hundred feet high, from the top of which a stunning waterfall cascaded down, creating a lovely river that flowed gently through the valley. Villages were dotted throughout; breadfruit and coconut trees thrived richly and abundantly; well-organized plantations enclosed by stone walls were well tended; and everything reflected hard work, plenty, and happiness. Never in my life had I seen a more beautiful scene or felt such strong reluctance as I did now for the necessity that forced me to punish a joyful and brave people.
"A large assembly of Typee warriors were posted on the opposite banks of the river, and dared us to descend. In their rear was a fortified village, secured by strong stone walls. Drums were beating and war-conchs sounding, and we soon found they were making every effort to oppose us.
"A big group of Typee warriors was stationed on the opposite banks of the river, challenging us to come down. Behind them was a fortified village, protected by strong stone walls. Drums were pounding and war conchs were blaring, and we quickly realized they were doing everything they could to stop us."
"As soon as we reached the foot of the mountain we were annoyed by a shower of stones from the bushes and from behind stone walls. After resting a few minutes, I directed the scouting parties to gain the opposite bank of the river, and followed with the main body. The fortified village was taken without loss on our side; but their chief warrior and another were killed, and several wounded. They 305retreated only to stone walls on higher ground, where they continued to sling their stones and throw their spears. Three of my men were wounded, and many of the Typees killed, before we dislodged them.
"As soon as we got to the bottom of the mountain, we were pelted by a barrage of stones from the bushes and behind stone walls. After taking a short break, I sent the scouting teams to reach the other side of the river and followed with the main group. We took the fortified village with no losses on our side; however, their chief warrior and another were killed, along with several wounded. They 305retreated only to the stone walls on higher ground, where they kept slinging their stones and throwing their spears. Three of my men were injured, and many of the Typees were killed before we managed to drive them out."
"Parties were sent out to scour the woods, and another fort was taken after some resistance; but the party, overpowered by numbers, were compelled to retreat to the main body, after keeping possession of it half an hour. We were waiting, in the fort first taken, for the return of our scouting parties. A multitude of Tayees and Happahs were with us, and many were on the outskirts of the village, seeking for plunder. Lieutenant McKnight had driven a party from a strong wall on the high ground, and had possession of it, when a large party of Typees, who had been lying in ambush, rushed by his fire and darted into the fort with their spears. The Tayeehs and Happahs all ran. The Typees approached within pistol-shot, but on the first fire retreated precipitately, crossing the fire of McKnight's party, and although none fell, we had reason to believe that many were wounded. The spears and stones were flying from the bushes in every direction; and although we killed and wounded in this place great numbers of them, we were satisfied that we should have to fight our way through the whole valley. 306"I sent a messenger to inform the Typees that we should cease hostilities when they no longer made resistance, but so long as stones were thrown I should destroy their villages. No notice was taken of this message.
"Teams were sent out to search the woods, and we took another fort after some resistance, but the team, overwhelmed by numbers, had to fall back to the main group after holding it for about half an hour. We were waiting in the first fort we captured for the return of our scouting teams. A lot of Tayees and Happahs were with us, and many were on the edges of the village looking for loot. Lieutenant McKnight had pushed a group from a strong position on the high ground and held it, when a large group of Typees, who had been hiding in ambush, rushed past his fire and charged into the fort with their spears. The Tayeehs and Happahs all fled. The Typees got within pistol range, but retreated quickly after the first shots were fired, running through the fire from McKnight's group, and while no one was hit, we had reason to believe many were injured. Spears and stones were flying from the bushes in every direction; and although we killed and wounded a significant number of them here, we realized we would have to fight our way through the entire valley. 306I sent a messenger to tell the Typees that we would stop fighting when they stopped resisting, but as long as stones were being thrown, I would destroy their villages. They ignored this message."
"We continued our march up the valley, and met in our way several beautiful villages, which we set on fire, and at length arrived at their capital—for it deserves the name of one. We had been compelled to fight every inch of ground, and here they made considerable opposition. The place was soon carried, however, and I very reluctantly set fire to it. The beauty and regularity of this place were such as to strike every spectator with astonishment. Their public square was far superior to any other we had met with. Numbers of their gods were here destroyed; several large and elegant new war-canoes were burned in the houses that sheltered them, and many of their drums were thrown into the flames. Our Indians loaded themselves with plunder, after destroying bread-fruit and other trees and all the young plants they could find. We had now arrived at the upper end of the valley, about nine miles from the beach, and at the foot of the waterfall above mentioned.
We continued our march up the valley and encountered several beautiful villages along the way, which we set on fire. Eventually, we reached their capital—it's worthy of the name. We had to fight for every inch of ground, and here they put up significant resistance. However, we soon took the place, and I reluctantly set it on fire. The beauty and order of this place amazed everyone who saw it. Their public square was much better than any we had seen before. Many of their gods were destroyed here; several large and elegant new war canoes were burned in the houses that held them, and many of their drums were thrown into the flames. Our Indians filled themselves with loot after destroying breadfruit and other trees, along with all the young plants they could find. We had now reached the upper end of the valley, about nine miles from the beach, at the foot of the waterfall mentioned earlier.
"After resting about half an hour, I directed the Indians to take care of our wounded, and we formed 307the line of march and proceeded down the valley, in our route destroying several other villages, at all of which we had some skirmishing. At one of these places, at the foot of a steep hill, the enemy rolled down enormous stones, with a view of crushing us to death. The number of villages destroyed amounted to ten; and the destruction of trees and plants, and the plunder carried off by the Indians, was almost incredible. The Typees fought us to the last, and even at first harassed our rear on our return; but parties left in ambush soon put a stop to further annoyance.
"After resting for about half an hour, I told the Native Americans to take care of our wounded, and we organized the line of march and moved down the valley, destroying several other villages along the way, where we had some skirmishes. At one location, at the bottom of a steep hill, the enemy rolled down huge stones, trying to crush us to death. The number of villages destroyed was ten, and the amount of trees and plants destroyed, along with the loot taken by the Native Americans, was almost unbelievable. The Typees fought us until the end and even initially troubled our rear on the way back; however, groups hidden in ambush quickly stopped any further harassment."
"We at length came to the formidable fort which checked our career on our first day's enterprise, and although I had witnessed many instances of the great exertion and ingenuity of these islanders, I never had supposed them capable of contriving and erecting a work like this. It formed the segment of a circle, and was about fifty yards in extent, built of large stones, six feet thick at the bottom and gradually narrowing to the top. On the left was a narrow entrance, merely sufficient to admit one person's entering. The wings and rear were equally guarded, and the right was flanked by another fortification of greater magnitude and equal strength and ingenuity. I directed the Indians and my own men to put their shoulders to the wall and endeavor 308to throw it down; but no impression could be made upon it. It appeared of ancient date, and time alone can destroy it. We succeeded in making a small breach, through which we passed on our route to the beach,—a route which was familiar to us, but had now become doubly intricate from the number of trees which had since been cut down and placed across the pathway.
"We finally reached the imposing fort that had stopped us during our first day's journey. Even though I had seen many examples of the incredible effort and creativity of these islanders, I never imagined they could build something like this. It was shaped like a segment of a circle, about fifty yards long, constructed from large stones, six feet thick at the base and tapering off towards the top. On the left was a narrow entrance, just wide enough for one person to fit through. The flanks and rear were equally fortified, and on the right side, there was an even larger and equally strong fortification. I instructed the Indians and my own men to push against the wall and try to bring it down, but we couldn't make a dent in it. It looked ancient, and only time could wear it away. We managed to create a small breach, through which we continued on our way to the beach—a path we knew well, but it had become even more complicated due to the number of trees that had been cut down and placed across it."
"The chiefs of the Happahs invited me to return to their valley, assuring me that an abundance of everything was already provided for us; and the girls, who had assembled in great numbers, dressed out in their best attire, welcomed me with smiles. Gattanewa met me on the side of the hill as I was ascending. The old man's heart was full; he could not speak; he placed both my hands on his head, rested his forehead on my knees, and after a short pause, raising himself, placed his hands on my breast, and exclaimed Gattanewa! and then on his own and said Apotee! [Porter] to remind me we had exchanged names.
"The leaders of the Happahs invited me to come back to their valley, assuring me that everything we needed was already ready for us; the girls who had gathered in large numbers, dressed in their best outfits, welcomed me with smiles. Gattanewa met me on the hillside as I was climbing up. The old man's heart was full; he couldn’t speak; he placed both my hands on his head, rested his forehead on my knees, and after a brief pause, he raised himself, placed his hands on my chest, and exclaimed Gattanewa! then pointed to himself and said Apotee! [Porter] to remind me we had swapped names."
"When I reached the summit of the mountain, I stopped to contemplate that valley which in the morning we had viewed in all its beauty. A long line of smoking ruins now marked our traces from one end to the other, the opposite hills were covered with the unhappy fugitives, and the whole presented 309a scene of desolation and horror. Unhappy and heroic people! the victims of your own courage and mistaken pride. While the instruments of your fate shed the tear of pity over your misfortunes, thousands of your countrymen—nay, brethren of the same family—triumphed in your distresses.
"When I got to the top of the mountain, I paused to reflect on the valley that we had admired in all its beauty that morning. A long stretch of smoking ruins now marked our path from one end to the other, the hills on the other side were filled with the unfortunate survivors, and the whole scene was one of devastation and horror. Unfortunate and brave people! You are the victims of your own bravery and misplaced pride. While the tools of your destiny weep with pity for your misfortunes, thousands of your fellow countrymen—indeed, relatives of the same kin—are celebrating your suffering."
"The day of our return was devoted to rest. But a messenger was despatched to the Typees to inform them I was still willing to make peace, and that I should not allow them to return to their valley until they had come on terms of friendship with us, and exchanged presents. They readily consented to the terms, and requested to know the number of hogs I should require. I told them I should expect from them four hundred, which they assured me should be delivered without delay.
"The day we came back was all about resting. Still, I sent a messenger to the Typees to let them know I was ready to make peace and that I wouldn’t let them return to their valley until we had settled our friendship and exchanged gifts. They agreed without hesitation and asked how many pigs I wanted. I told them I expected four hundred, and they promised to deliver them right away."
"Flags were now sent from all the other tribes, with large presents of hogs and fruit, and peace was established throughout the island. The chiefs, the priests, and the principal persons of the tribes were very solicitous of forming a relationship with me by an exchange of names with some of my family. Some wished to bear the name of my brother, my son-in-law, my brother-in-law, etc., and when all the male stock were exhausted, they as anxiously solicited the names of the other sex. The name of my son, however, was more desired than any other, 310and many old men, whose long gray beards rendered their appearance venerable, were known by the name of Pickaneenee Apotee; the word 'pickaninny' having been introduced among them by the sailors."
"Flags were sent from all the other tribes, along with large gifts of hogs and fruit, and peace was established across the island. The chiefs, priests, and key members of the tribes were eager to form a relationship with me by exchanging names with some of my family. Some wanted to take the name of my brother, my son-in-law, my brother-in-law, etc., and when all the male names were taken, they eagerly requested names from the female side as well. However, my son's name was more sought after than any other, 310and many old men, with their long gray beards giving them a dignified look, were known by the name of Pickaneenee Apotee; the word 'pickaninny' having been introduced to them by the sailors."
Captain Porter was undoubtedly sincere in the belief that what he had done was a necessity of war. But when we consider that it arose simply from the refusal of a people, standing on their own ground, to enter into a treaty of amity with strangers whose language they could not speak, and whose purposes they did not understand, it looks as if the captain had imposed a pretty heavy penalty for a small offence, and given the unfortunate Typees as unfair treatment as he himself experienced a few months later in the harbor of Valparaiso.
Captain Porter truly believed that his actions were necessary for the war. However, when we think about the fact that this situation came about just because a community, on their own land, refused to make a friendship treaty with outsiders whom they couldn't communicate with and whose intentions they didn't grasp, it seems like the captain placed a really harsh punishment for a minor offense. He treated the unfortunate Typees just as unfairly as he himself was treated a few months later in the harbor of Valparaiso.
Meanwhile, Captain Porter had learned that an English frigate had been sent out to stop his career; and as whalers had now become scarce, and he had taken as many prizes as he could well manage, after refitting at the Marquesas Islands, he sailed in search of his enemy. The truth was, Captain James Hillyar, of the British navy, was looking for him with two ships, the Phoebe and the Cherub, mounting respectively fifty-three and twenty-eight guns; and there is good reason to believe that the Admiralty had sent him out with stringent orders to find and 311destroy or capture the Essex at all hazards. He found her at Valparaiso, and blockaded her there for six weeks. On one occasion the Essex and the Phoebe almost fouled, through the fault of the latter, and Porter called away his boarders and in a moment more would have been on the Englishman's deck; but Hillyar protested so earnestly that he had no intention of attacking in a neutral port, that he was permitted to withdraw from his suspicious position. Had Porter been more shrewd and less chivalrous, he would perhaps have seen that there was no way to account for the position of the Phoebe, except on the supposition that Hillyar was intending to carry the Essex by boarding, had he not found her commander and crew too ready for him. That he cared nothing for the neutrality of the port, was demonstrated by his subsequent conduct.
Meanwhile, Captain Porter found out that an English frigate had been sent to put an end to his activities; since whalers had become rare and he had taken as many prizes as he could handle, he set sail after refitting at the Marquesas Islands in search of his enemy. The reality was that Captain James Hillyar of the British navy was on his trail with two ships, the Phoebe and the Cherub, armed with fifty-three and twenty-eight guns, respectively. There is strong evidence to suggest that the Admiralty had given him strict orders to find and 311destroy or capture the Essex at all costs. He located her in Valparaiso and blockaded her there for six weeks. On one occasion, the Essex and the Phoebe nearly collided due to the latter's error, and Porter was about to send his boarders over when Hillyar urgently insisted that he had no plan to attack in a neutral port, which allowed him to escape from his questionable position. If Porter had been more cunning and less gallant, he might have realized that the Phoebe's position could only mean that Hillyar intended to seize the Essex by boarding her, had he not found her commander and crew ready for action. Hillyar's disregard for the neutrality of the port was later evident in his actions.
After vainly offering battle on equal terms, Porter, on the 28th of March, attempted to put to sea. But his ship was struck by a heavy squall, which carried away the main-top-mast. Being pursued by the Phoebe and Cherub, he tacked about, reentered the harbor, and anchored within pistol-shot of the shore. Paying not the slightest regard to the neutrality of the port, the enemy followed the Essex, took a position under her stern, and opened fire. Even under this disadvantage, Porter got three long 312guns out at the stern ports, and fought them so skilfully that in half an hour both the Phoebe and the Cherub drew off for repairs. They next took a position on the starboard quarter, out of reach of the carronades that composed the Essex's broadside, and fired at her with their long guns. Under his flying jib, the only sail he could set, Porter ran down upon the enemy, and after a short and intense action at close range, drove off the Cherub. But the Phoebe edged away again out of reach of his carronades, and kept up a steady fire from her long guns. The slaughter on board the Essex was sickening. At one gun, three whole crews were swept away in succession. Says Captain Porter, in his 'Journal', "I was informed that the cockpit, the steerage, the ward-room, and the berth-deck could contain no more wounded; that the wounded were killed while the surgeons were dressing them; and that, unless something was speedily done to prevent it, the ship would soon sink from the number of shot-holes in her bottom."
After unsuccessfully trying to fight on equal terms, Porter, on March 28th, attempted to set sail. But his ship was hit by a strong squall that took down the main-top-mast. Being chased by the Phoebe and Cherub, he turned around, reentered the harbor, and anchored within pistol range of the shore. Ignoring the neutrality of the port, the enemy followed the Essex, took a position behind her, and opened fire. Despite this disadvantage, Porter managed to get three long 312guns out at the stern ports and operated them so effectively that within half an hour both the Phoebe and the Cherub withdrew for repairs. They then moved to the starboard quarter, out of range of the carronades on the Essex's broadside, and continued to fire at her with their long guns. With only his flying jib set, the only sail he could use, Porter charged at the enemy, and after a brief but intense close-range battle, he drove off the Cherub. However, the Phoebe retreated again out of reach of his carronades and maintained a steady fire with her long guns. The carnage on board the Essex was gruesome. At one gun, three full crews were wiped out one after the other. Captain Porter noted in his 'Journal', "I was told that the cockpit, the steerage, the ward-room, and the berth-deck could hold no more wounded; that the wounded were being killed while the surgeons were trying to treat them; and that, unless something was done quickly to stop it, the ship would soon sink from the number of shot holes in her bottom."
The captain next tried to run her ashore; but while she was still nearly a mile from the land, the wind suddenly shifted. A hawser was bent to the sheet anchor, and the ship swung round so as to bring her broadside to bear on the enemy, but the hawser soon parted. Indeed, she had anchored in 313the first place with springs on her cables, but the springs had been repeatedly shot away. *
The captain then attempted to run her ashore, but while she was still almost a mile from land, the wind suddenly changed. A hawser was secured to the sheet anchor, and the ship pivoted to face the enemy, but the hawser quickly broke. In fact, she had originally anchored with springs on her cables, but those springs had been repeatedly shot away. 313
With all these misfortunes, the ship took fire, and as the flames burst up the hatchways Porter ordered all who could swim to jump overboard and strike out for the shore, as the boats had been destroyed by the enemy's shot. The flames were extinguished; but the Essex was now a wreck, deliberately raked by every discharge from her antagonist, and the colors were struck. The Essex Junior had been in no condition to assist in the fight, but was included in the surrender. Out of two hundred and fifty-five men, Porter had lost one hundred and fifty-four in killed, wounded, or missing. Hillyar reported the loss on his two ships as five killed and ten wounded.
With all these disasters, the ship caught fire, and as the flames shot up through the hatches, Porter ordered everyone who could swim to jump overboard and swim to the shore since the boats had been destroyed by enemy gunfire. The flames were put out; however, the Essex was now a wreck, intentionally targeted by every shot from her opponent, and the flag was lowered. The Essex Junior was not in a position to help in the fight but was included in the surrender. Out of two hundred and fifty-five men, Porter lost one hundred and fifty-four killed, wounded, or missing. Hillyar reported the losses on his two ships as five killed and ten wounded.
The battle had been witnessed by thousands of people on shore. So near were the vessels to land a part of the time, that many of the Phoebe's shot struck the beach. The United States Consul, Joel R. Poinsett, protested to the Chilian authorities
The battle was watched by thousands of people on the shore. The ships were so close to land at times that many of the Phoebe's cannonballs hit the beach. The United States Consul, Joel R. Poinsett, raised concerns with the Chilean authorities.
* A "spring" of this sort is a rope, one end of which is attached to the cable and the other end carried to the after part of the ship, so that by hauling upon it she can be swung round to point her broadside in any desired direction. A high authority—Farragut—says one of Porter's serious mistakes in this action was in fastening the springs to the cable, when they should have been fastened to the anchor, which would have carried the greater part of them below the surface of the water, out of the reach of shot.
* A "spring" like this is a rope, with one end attached to the cable and the other end pulled to the back of the ship, so that by pulling on it, the ship can be turned to aim its broadside in any direction needed. A respected authority—Farragut—points out that one of Porter's major mistakes in this situation was attaching the springs to the cable instead of to the anchor, which would have kept most of them underwater, out of the line of fire.
Among the crew of the Essex was a midshipman twelve years old, who subsequently became the greatest of all naval commanders, David G. Farragut.
Among the crew of the Essex was a twelve-year-old midshipman, who later became the greatest of all naval commanders, David G. Farragut.
In his "Journal" he describes vividly the battle and the part he took in it. Some passages will be of interest here, as they present pictures seldom found in the descriptions of such contests:
In his "Journal," he vividly describes the battle and his role in it. Some passages will be interesting here, as they offer images rarely seen in descriptions of such conflicts:
"I well remember the feelings of awe produced in me by the approach of the hostile ships; even to my young mind it was perceptible in the faces of those around me, as clearly as possible, that our case was hopeless. It was equally apparent that all were ready to die at their guns, rather than surrender; and such I believe to have been the determination of the crew, almost to a man. There had been so much bantering of each other between the men of the ships, through the medium of letters and songs, with an invariable fight between the boats' crews when they met on shore, that a very hostile sentiment was engendered. Our flags were flying from every mast, and the enemy's vessels displayed 315their ensigns, jacks, and motto-flags, as they bore down grandly to the attack.
I clearly remember the feeling of awe I felt when the enemy ships approached; even my young mind could see in the faces of those around me that our situation was hopeless. It was also obvious that everyone was ready to fight to the death at their posts, rather than surrender, and I believe that was the crew's determination, almost unanimously. There had been so much teasing amongst the sailors from both ships through letters and songs, and a constant brawl between the boat crews when they met on land, that a very hostile attitude grew. Our flags were flying from all the masts, while the enemy's ships displayed 315their flags, jacks, and mottoes as they confidently approached to attack.
"I performed the duties of captain's aid, quarter-gunner, powder-boy, and in fact did everything that was required of me. I shall never forget the horrid impression made upon me by the sight of the first man I had ever seen killed. He was a boatswain's mate, and was fearfully mutilated. It staggered and sickened me at first; but they soon began to fall around me so fast that it all appeared like a dream, and produced no effect on my nerves. I can remember well, while I was standing near the captain, just abaft the mainmast, a shot came through the water-ways and glanced upward, killing four men who were standing by the side of the gun, taking the last one in the head and scattering his brains over both of us. But this awful sight did not affect me half as much as the death of the first poor fellow. I neither thought of nor noticed anything but the working of the guns.
"I served as the captain's aide, quarter-gunner, powder-boy, and pretty much did everything that was needed. I’ll never forget how horrifying it was to see the first man I ever saw killed. He was a boatswain's mate and was terribly mutilated. It shocked and nauseated me at first, but soon, with so many falling around me, it all felt like a dream and didn't really affect my nerves anymore. I clearly remember, while standing near the captain, just behind the mainmast, a shot came through the water-ways and angled upward, killing four men who were standing by the gun, with the last one hit in the head, splattering his brains on both of us. But that awful sight didn’t impact me nearly as much as the death of that first poor guy. I didn’t think about or notice anything except for the operation of the guns."
"On one occasion Midshipman Isaacs came up to the captain and reported that a quarter-gunner named Roach had deserted his post. The only reply of the captain, addressed to me, was, 'Do your duty, sir.' I seized a pistol and went in pursuit of the fellow, but did not find him.
"One time, Midshipman Isaacs approached the captain and reported that a quarter-gunner named Roach had abandoned his post. The captain's only response, directed at me, was, 'Do your duty, sir.' I grabbed a pistol and went after the guy, but I couldn't find him."
"Soon after this, some gun-primers were wanted. 316and I was sent after them. In going below, while I was on the ward-room ladder, the captain of the gun directly opposite the hatchway was struck full in the face by an eighteen-pound shot, and fell back on me. We tumbled down the hatch together. I struck on my head, and fortunately he fell on my hips. As he was a man of at least two hundred pounds' weight, I would have been crushed to death if he had fallen directly across my body. I lay for some moments stunned by the blow, but soon recovered consciousness enough to rush up on deck. The captain, seeing me covered with blood, asked if I was wounded, to which I replied, 'I believe not, sir.' 'Then,' said he, 'where are the primers?' This first brought me completely to my senses, and I ran below again and carried the primers on deck. When I came up the second time, I saw the captain fall, and in my turn ran up and asked if he was wounded. He answered me almost in the same words, 'I believe not, my son; but I felt a blow on the top of my head.' He must have been knocked down by the windage of a passing shot.
Soon after this, we needed some gun primers. 316and I was sent to get them. While I was going below and on the ward-room ladder, the captain of the gun directly opposite the hatchway was hit in the face by an eighteen-pound shot and fell onto me. We tumbled down the hatch together. I hit my head, and luckily, he landed on my hips. Since he weighed at least two hundred pounds, I would have been crushed if he had fallen directly on me. I lay there for a few moments, dazed from the impact, but soon I regained enough awareness to rush back on deck. The captain, seeing me covered in blood, asked if I was hurt, to which I replied, "I believe not, sir." "Then," he said, "where are the primers?" This snapped me back to reality, and I ran below again to grab the primers and bring them on deck. When I came up the second time, I saw the captain fall, and I rushed over to ask if he was wounded. He replied almost the same way, "I believe not, my son; but I felt a blow on the top of my head." He must have been knocked down by the wind pressure from a passing shot.
"When my services were not required for other purposes, I generally assisted in working a gun; would run and bring powder from the boys, and send them back for more, until the captain wanted me to carry a message. 317"I have already remarked how soon I became accustomed to scenes of blood and death during the action; but after the battle had ceased, when, on going below, I saw the mangled bodies of my shipmates, dead and dying, groaning and expiring with the most patriotic sentiments on their lips, I became faint and sick. As soon as I recovered from the first shock, however, I hastened to assist the surgeon. Among the badly wounded was one of my best friends, Lieutenant J. G. Cowell. When I spoke to him he said, 'O Davy, I fear it is all up with me.' I found that he had lost a leg just above the knee, and the doctor informed me that his life might have been saved if he had consented to the amputation of the limb an hour before; but when it was proposed to drop another patient and attend to him, he replied, 'No, doctor, none of that; fair play is a jewel. One man's life is as dear as another's; I would not cheat any poor fellow out of his turn.' Thus died one of the best officers and bravest men among us.
"When my skills weren't needed for other tasks, I usually helped operate a gun; I would run and get powder from the guys and send them back for more, until the captain needed me to deliver a message. 317I’ve mentioned how quickly I got used to scenes of blood and death during the battle, but after it was over, when I went below deck and saw the mangled bodies of my shipmates—dead and dying, groaning and fading away with the most patriotic sentiments on their lips—I felt faint and sick. However, as soon as I got over the initial shock, I rushed to help the surgeon. Among the seriously injured was one of my closest friends, Lieutenant J. G. Cowell. When I spoke to him, he said, 'Oh Davy, I fear it’s all over for me.' I found out that he had lost a leg just above the knee, and the doctor told me that his life could have been saved if he had agreed to the amputation an hour earlier; but when it was suggested to drop another patient and focus on him, he replied, 'No, doctor, let’s not do that; fair play is essential. One man's life is just as valuable as another's; I wouldn’t take a chance away from any poor fellow.' Thus, one of the best officers and bravest men among us died."
"It was wonderful to find dying men, who had hardly ever attracted notice among the ship's company, uttering sentiments worthy of a Washington. You might have heard in all directions, 'Don't give her up, Logan!'—a sobriquet for Porter—'Hurrah for liberty!' and similar expressions. A young 318Scotchman named Bissley had one leg shot off close to the groin. He used his handkerchief for a tourniquet, and said to his comrades, 'I left my own country and adopted the United States, to fight for her. I hope I have this day proved myself worthy of the country of my adoption. I am no longer of any use to you or to her, so good-by!' With these words, he leaned on the sill of the port and threw himself overboard.
"It was amazing to hear dying men, who had barely received any attention from the crew, expressing thoughts worthy of a Washington. You could hear cries all around like, 'Don't give her up, Logan!'—a nickname for Porter—'Cheers for liberty!' and other similar statements. A young Scotsman named Bissley had one leg shot off near the groin. He used his handkerchief as a tourniquet and said to his fellow soldiers, 'I left my own country and adopted the United States to fight for her. I hope I have shown myself worthy of the country I chose. I'm no longer of any use to you or to her, so goodbye!' With those words, he leaned on the edge of the port and jumped overboard."
"Lieutenant Wilmer, who had been sent forward to let go the sheet anchor, was knocked overboard by a shot. After the action, his little Negro boy, Ruff, came on deck and asked me what had become of his master, and when I imparted to him the sad news, he deliberately jumped into the sea and was drowned.
"Lieutenant Wilmer, who was sent out to drop the anchor, was knocked overboard by a shot. After the battle, his little Black boy, Ruff, came on deck and asked me what happened to his master, and when I told him the sad news, he jumped into the sea and drowned."
"I went on board the Phoebe about 8 A.M. on the 29th, and was ushered into the steerage. I was so mortified at our capture that I could not refrain from tears. While in this uncomfortable state, I was aroused by hearing a young reefer call out, 'A prize! a prize! Ho, boys, a fine grunter, by Jove!' I saw at once that he had under his arm a pet pig belonging to our ship, called Murphy. I claimed the animal as my own. 'Ah,' said he, 'but you are a prisoner, and your pig also.' 'We always respect private property,' I replied, and as I 319had seized hold of Murphy I determined not to let go, unless compelled by superior force. This was fun for the oldsters, who immediately sung out, 'Go it, my little Yankee! If you can thrash Shorty, you shall have your pig!' 'Agreed!' said I. A ring was formed, and at it we went. I soon found that my antagonist's pugilistic education did not come up to mine. In fact, he was no match for me, and was compelled to give up the pig. So I took Master Murphy under my arm, feeling that I had in some degree wiped out the disgrace of our defeat." Porter and his surviving men were paroled, and the Essex Junior was converted into a cartel, in which they were sent home to New York. When she was within about thirty miles of her destination, she was overhauled by a British war-vessel and detained all night, which by the terms of the agreement with Captain Hillyar absolved them from their parole. In the morning Captain Porter with a few men left the ship in a small boat, unnoticed, and pulled for shore, landing at Babylon, Long Island, about sunset. He was immediately made a prisoner by the militia; but when he exhibited his commission, they fired a salute of twenty-one guns and furnished a horse and cart to carry his boat. On reaching New York, he received a grand ovation, and as he rode through the streets the people unhitched 320his horses and drew the carriage themselves. Thus ended one of the most exciting, varied, and romantic cruises ever made by a modern sailor.
I boarded the Phoebe around 8 A.M. on the 29th and was taken to the steerage. I was so embarrassed by our capture that I couldn't help but cry. While I was in this uncomfortable state, I heard a young crew member shout, "A prize! A prize! Hey, boys, a nice pig!" I quickly realized he was holding a pet pig from our ship named Murphy. I claimed the pig as mine. "Ah," he said, "but you're a prisoner, and so is your pig." "We always respect private property," I replied, and since I had grabbed hold of Murphy, I decided not to let go unless forced to. This turned into entertainment for the older guys, who immediately called out, "Go for it, my little Yankee! If you can beat Shorty, you can keep your pig!" "Deal!" I said. A circle formed, and we went at it. I soon realized that my opponent's boxing skills weren't up to par with mine. In fact, he was no match for me and had to give up the pig. So I took Master Murphy under my arm, feeling like I had partly wiped away the shame of our defeat. Porter and his surviving crew were paroled, and the Essex Junior was turned into a cartel, sending them home to New York. When she was about thirty miles from her destination, she was caught by a British warship and held overnight, which, according to the agreement with Captain Hillyar, canceled their parole. The next morning, Captain Porter and a few men left the ship in a small boat, unnoticed, and headed for shore, landing in Babylon, Long Island, around sunset. He was immediately captured by the militia, but when he showed his commission, they fired a salute of twenty-one guns and provided a horse and cart to transport his boat. Upon arriving in New York, he received a huge welcome, and as he rode through the streets, people unhitched 320his horses and pulled the carriage themselves. Thus ended one of the most exciting, diverse, and romantic voyages ever undertaken by a modern sailor.
On the 29th of April the American sloop-of-war Peacock, carrying eighteen guns and commanded by Captain Lewis Warrington, was cruising off the coast of Florida when she sighted the British brig-of-war Epervier, eighteen guns, convoying three merchantmen. The two men-of-war hauled up for action, and after a battle of forty-two minutes the English flag was struck. The Epervier had lost twenty-two men killed or wounded, her rigging was badly cut up, and there was five feet of water in the hold, more than forty shot having entered her hull. The Peacock, which was much heavier than her antagonist, had received very little injury, and but two of her crew were wounded. The prize had $118,000 in specie on board. Soon after this the Peacock cruised in the Bay of Biscay and along the coast of Portugal, and captured fourteen merchantmen.
On April 29th, the American sloop-of-war Peacock, armed with eighteen guns and commanded by Captain Lewis Warrington, was patrolling off the coast of Florida when it spotted the British brig-of-war Epervier, also with eighteen guns, escorting three merchant ships. The two warships prepared for battle, and after forty-two minutes of fighting, the British flag was lowered. The Epervier suffered twenty-two men killed or wounded, her rigging was severely damaged, and there was five feet of water in her hold, with more than forty cannonballs having struck her hull. The Peacock, which was significantly larger than her opponent, had only minor damage, and just two of her crew were injured. The captured ship carried $118,000 in gold and silver. Shortly after this, the Peacock sailed in the Bay of Biscay and along the Portuguese coast, capturing fourteen merchant ships.
Captain Johnston Blakeley, in the Wasp, a sister ship to the Peacock, sailed from Portsmouth, N. H., for a cruise in the chops of the English Channel. At daylight on the 28th of June he sighted two sail on the lee beam and one on the weather beam. Avoiding the former, he made for the latter, which proved to be the British brig Reindeer, of eighteen 321guns. There was considerable manoeuvring for the weather-gauge, but the Englishman succeeded in keeping it, and by three o'clock had come within sixty yards. At that short distance she had five shots at the Wasp, with a shifting carronade, firing round shot and grape, before the Wasp could bring a single gun to bear on her. But Blakeley then made a half-board, and by firing from aft forward finally brought every gun into use. This was too heavy for the Reindeer, and she ran into the Wasp and attempted to board, her crew being led by Captain Manners in person. But every attempt was repelled by the crew of the Wasp, and when Captain Blakeley ordered them in turn to board the enemy, they were on her deck and the British flag was hauled down in one minute. The whole action had lasted but half an hour. The Reindeer had lost twenty-five killed, including her captain, and forty-two wounded; the Wasp, five killed and twenty-two wounded. The upper half of the hull of the Reindeer was a complete wreck, and she had to be burned. A few weeks later, September 1st, the Wasp, after making three prizes, discovered four sail and bore up for the most weatherly of them. Between nine and ten o'clock at night the two ships came close together, and broadsides were exchanged till the enemy became silent. Blakeley hailed, and 322was answered that she surrendered. She was the British brig Avon, of eighteen guns. But before the Americans had taken possession of her, another British man-of-war came up. The Wasp made ready to engage her; but before she could do so, two others appeared, and she then put up her helm and ran off before the wind. It was afterward learned that the Avon had sunk, and her consort with difficulty rescued the survivors of her crew. In the next twenty days the Wasp took three prizes, and then, continuing her cruise, was never heard from again.
Captain Johnston Blakeley, aboard the Wasp, a sister ship to the Peacock, set sail from Portsmouth, N.H., for a cruise in the English Channel. At dawn on June 28th, he spotted two ships on his left and one on his right. He chose to avoid the former and headed toward the latter, which turned out to be the British brig Reindeer, armed with eighteen 321guns. After a lot of maneuvering to gain the upper hand, the British ship managed to maintain its position, and by three o'clock, it was within sixty yards. From that distance, the Reindeer fired five shots at the Wasp, using a shifting carronade and firing round shot and grape, before the Wasp could return fire. However, Blakeley then made a half-board turn, and by firing from the back to the front, he was able to bring all his guns into action. The firepower was too much for the Reindeer, which tried to board the Wasp with Captain Manners leading the attack. But every attempt was fought off by the crew of the Wasp, and when Blakeley commanded them to board the enemy in turn, they were on the deck and had taken down the British flag in just one minute. The entire battle lasted only half an hour. The Reindeer suffered twenty-five fatalities, including her captain, and forty-two wounded; the Wasp had five killed and twenty-two wounded. The upper portion of the Reindeer's hull was completely destroyed, and she had to be burned. A few weeks later, on September 1st, the Wasp, after capturing three prizes, spotted four ships and headed for the most windward one. Between nine and ten o'clock at night, the two ships closed in on each other, exchanging broadsides until the enemy fell silent. Blakeley hailed them and was told they surrendered. It was the British brig Avon, also armed with eighteen guns. However, before the Americans could take possession, another British warship arrived. The Wasp prepared to engage, but before she could act, two more ships appeared, prompting her to change course and flee with the wind. It was later revealed that the Avon had sunk, and her companion had a hard time rescuing the survivors. In the next twenty days, the Wasp captured three more prizes, but after that, as she continued her cruise, she was never heard from again.
One of the bloodiest sea-fights of this year took place in the harbor of Fayal, Azores. The American privateer General Armstrong, carrying fourteen guns and ninety men, commanded by Captain Samuel C. Reid, put in there for water on the 26th of September. A few hours later, three British war-vessels—the Plantagenet, Carnation, and Rota—entered the harbor. It was a neutral port, but they cared no more for its neutrality than Hillyar had cared for that of Valparaiso.
One of the bloodiest naval battles of this year happened in the harbor of Fayal, Azores. The American privateer General Armstrong, which had fourteen guns and ninety men, led by Captain Samuel C. Reid, stopped there for water on September 26th. A few hours later, three British warships—the Plantagenet, Carnation, and Rota—came into the harbor. It was a neutral port, but they didn't care about its neutrality any more than Hillyar cared about that of Valparaiso.
In the evening, under a full moon, four armed boats were sent from these vessels to cut out the privateer. As they approached her, they were warned off several times, but paid no attention to it, and attempted to board. Reid then opened fire on them, and drove them off with heavy loss. For 323greater security, the Armstrong was hauled up close to the fort, and moored. The Governor remonstrated with Captain Van Lloyd, commander of the English fleet; to which the captain answered that he was determined to destroy the privateer, and if the fort protected her he would bombard the town till not a house was left standing.
In the evening, under a full moon, four armed boats were launched from these vessels to capture the privateer. As they got closer, they were warned off several times, but ignored the warnings and tried to board. Reid then opened fire on them, forcing them to retreat with significant losses. For 323greater security, the Armstrong was pulled in close to the fort and anchored. The Governor protested to Captain Van Lloyd, the commander of the English fleet; the captain replied that he was determined to take out the privateer, and if the fort protected her, he would bomb the town until not a single house was standing.
At midnight the Armstrong was attacked again, this time by fourteen launches, each carrying about fifty men. Reid promptly opened his broadside on them, with terrible effect; yet two or three of them succeeded in reaching the vessel, and the crew then met them with cutlass and pistol, and scarcely a man in them was left alive. A letter written from Fayal at the time, by an Englishman, says the officers in charge of the boats cheered on their men with a shout of "No quarter!" and that "the Americans fought with great firmness, but more like bloodthirsty savages than anything else. They rushed into the boats, sword in hand, and put every soul to death, as far as came within their power. Several boats floated on shore, full of dead bodies."
At midnight, the Armstrong was attacked again, this time by fourteen launches, each carrying around fifty men. Reid quickly opened fire on them, causing devastating damage; however, two or three of the boats managed to reach the ship, where the crew confronted them with cutlasses and pistols, leaving hardly any of them alive. A letter from an Englishman in Fayal at the time mentions that the officers in charge of the boats encouraged their men with shouts of "No quarter!" and that "the Americans fought fiercely, but more like bloodthirsty savages than anything else. They jumped into the boats, swords drawn, and killed everyone they could reach. Several boats washed ashore, filled with dead bodies."
Next morning, the Carnation sailed in and engaged the Armstrong; but after a short action she was badly cut up and obliged to haul off for repairs. Several guns on the Armstrong had been dismounted; and as Captain Reid now saw that her 324ultimate destruction was certain, he cut away her masts, blew a hole in her bottom, and went ashore with his men. Two of the crew had been killed, and seven wounded. The ascertained loss of the British was one hundred and twenty killed and ninety wounded.
Next morning, the Carnation arrived and went after the Armstrong; but after a brief fight, she was severely damaged and had to retreat for repairs. Several guns on the Armstrong had been knocked out; and as Captain Reid realized that her 324total destruction was inevitable, he cut her masts, blew a hole in her hull, and went ashore with his crew. Two of the crew members had been killed, and seven were wounded. The confirmed loss for the British was one hundred and twenty killed and ninety wounded.
After burning the abandoned wreck, Van Lloyd demanded of the Governor that the gallant little crew he had failed to capture should be given up to him as prisoners. This modest request was of course refused, and Captain Reid and his men then took possession of an old convent, declaring that they would defend themselves to the last. But they were not molested.
After burning the abandoned wreck, Van Lloyd demanded that the Governor hand over the brave little crew he had failed to capture as prisoners. This simple request was, of course, refused, and Captain Reid and his men then occupied an old convent, stating that they would defend themselves to the last. However, they were left undisturbed.
The vessel that was despatched to England to take home the British sailors wounded in this action, was not permitted to carry a single letter from anybody. Indeed, not only this affair, says Cobbett in his "Letters," but the loss of the Avon, the battle of Plattsburg, and other actions not creditable to the English arms, were carefully concealed from the English public. At the demand of Portugal, the British Government apologized for the violation of neutrality; but the owners of the Armstrong never obtained any indemnity.
The ship that was sent to England to bring back the British sailors injured in this conflict wasn’t allowed to carry a single letter from anyone. In fact, not just this incident, as Cobbett mentions in his "Letters," but also the loss of the Avon, the battle of Plattsburg, and other engagements that didn’t reflect well on the English military, were all carefully kept from the English public. At Portugal's request, the British Government apologized for breaching neutrality, but the owners of the Armstrong never received any compensation.
This was the last naval action before the declaration of peace; but as that declaration did not imme325diately reach the cruisers at sea, three others were fought. On the 15th of January, 1815, Commodore Decatur, in the President, had a prolonged battle with the frigate Endymion, off Long Island, and reduced her to a wreck. But two other British cruisers came up, and he was compelled to surrender.
This was the last naval battle before peace was declared; however, since the declaration didn't immediately reach the ships at sea, three more battles took place. On January 15, 1815, Commodore Decatur, commanding the President, engaged in a lengthy fight with the frigate Endymion off Long Island, which he severely damaged. But two other British ships arrived, forcing him to surrender.
He had lost eighty men killed or wounded. On the 20th of February, the Constitution, Captain Charles Stewart, off the coast of Portugal, captured both the Cyane, of thirty-four guns, and the Levant, of twenty-one, after a battle of forty minutes, in which he lost fifteen men, and inflicted a loss of about forty. The Levant was subsequently recaptured by three English cruisers, while she was in Port Praya, another neutral harbor. On the 23d of March, the American brig Hornet, Captain James Biddle, and the British brig Penguin, Captain Dickenson, being almost exactly matched in men and metal, fought a battle of twenty-two minutes' duration, off the island of Tristan d'Acunha, at the close of which the Penguin, having lost forty-two men and been badly crippled, surrendered. Her commander was killed. The Hornet had one man killed and ten wounded. This was the last of what the London Times had fallen into the habit of calling "the painful events at sea."
He had lost eighty men, either killed or injured. On February 20th, the Constitution, commanded by Captain Charles Stewart, off the coast of Portugal, captured both the Cyane, which had thirty-four guns, and the Levant, which had twenty-one, after a battle that lasted forty minutes. He lost fifteen men during this skirmish and inflicted around forty casualties on the enemy. The Levant was later recaptured by three British cruisers while it was in Port Praya, another neutral harbor. On March 23rd, the American brig Hornet, led by Captain James Biddle, and the British brig Penguin, commanded by Captain Dickenson, almost evenly matched in crew and firepower, fought a battle lasting twenty-two minutes off the island of Tristan da Cunha. At the end of this engagement, the Penguin surrendered after losing forty-two men and suffering serious damage. Her commander was killed. The Hornet had one man killed and ten wounded. This was the last of what the London Times had come to refer to as "the painful events at sea."
CHAPTER XIX. THE HARTFORD CONVENTION.
326
Attitude of the Federalists, Real and Imputed—The Convention at Hartford—Its Popular Reputation—What General Scott did not say at Chippewa.
Attitude of the Federalists, Real and Imputed—The Convention at Hartford—Its Popular Reputation—What General Scott didn’t say at Chippewa.
When a destructive war had been carried on for two years, when recruiting was slow, and the Government heavily in debt, and yet no way appeared but to fight it out, it might have been expected that harsh criticism of the policy of the Administration, coming from the party that had steadily opposed the war, would subject that party to the charge of being unpatriotic and untrue to the Union. It might also have been expected that an opposition which had become chronic could not but become in some respects unjust. So when the Federalists in 1814 were flooding the Legislatures of New England with memorials on the conduct of the war, they could hardly restrain themselves from overdrawing the picture of its failures, or from representing the condition of things before the war as rather more paradisiacal than anybody had suspected. And on the other hand, they were accused not only of 327rejoicing in defeats of the national arms, but of plotting a separation of New England from the other States, with a view of ultimately making her again a part of the British Empire. That there were some Federalists who contemplated a dissolution of the Union as a possible remedy for certain difficulties, is quite probable, for such views were at that time not confined to either party. The contingency of disunion was frequently discussed by men of both parties. But that anybody seriously contemplated a reunion with England, there has never been any evidence worth considering. The story was gotten up by the Administration party, in order to cast odium upon the Federalists; and the occurrence most freely used to give color to it was the Hartford Convention, which unfortunately sat with closed doors, and thus was easily misrepresented as a treasonable gathering.
When a brutal war had been ongoing for two years, with slow recruitment and the Government deep in debt, yet no alternative but to keep fighting, it was expected that harsh criticism of the Administration's policy from the party that had consistently opposed the war would lead to accusations of unpatriotism and disloyalty to the Union. It was also anticipated that an opposition that had become entrenched might be, in some ways, unfair. So when the Federalists in 1814 began flooding the New England Legislatures with petitions about the war's management, they could hardly help but exaggerate its failures or portray the pre-war conditions as much better than anyone had believed. Conversely, they faced accusations not only of 327celebrating the national defeats, but also of conspiring to separate New England from the other States, with the aim of eventually rejoining it to the British Empire. It is quite likely that some Federalists considered disbanding the Union as a potential solution to certain challenges, as such ideas weren't limited to just one party at that time. The possibility of disunion was often debated by individuals from both parties. However, there has never been any credible evidence that anyone seriously considered reconnecting with England. This narrative was fabricated by the Administration party to discredit the Federalists; the event most commonly cited to support this claim was the Hartford Convention, which unfortunately held its sessions behind closed doors, making it easy to mischaracterize as a treasonous meeting.
In the third year of the war the hand of the enemy had fallen heavily upon the coast of New England, and at the same time an unpleasant feeling had arisen from the refusal of the United States Government to pay the militia that had been in service under State officers. In this crisis, the Legislature of Massachusetts, on the 16th of October, by a vote of 260 to 90, passed a series of resolutions, the fifth of which authorized the calling of a con328vention to confer "upon the subject of their [the New England States] public grievances and concerns; and upon the best means of preserving our resources; and of defence against the enemy; and to devise and suggest for adoption by those respective States such measures as they may deem expedient; and also to take measures, if they shall think it proper, for procuring a convention of delegates from all the United States, in order to revise the Constitution thereof, and more effectually to secure the support and attachment of all the people, by placing all upon the basis of fair representation." The letter addressed to the governors of other States set forth the general objects of the proposed conference to be, "to deliberate upon the dangers to which the eastern section of the Union is exposed by the course of the war, and to devise, if practicable, means of security and defence which may be consistent with the preservation of their resources from total ruin, and adapted to their local situation, mutual relations, and habits, and not repugnant to their obligations as members of the Union."
In the third year of the war, the enemy's grip on the coast of New England had become severe, and simultaneously, there was growing dissatisfaction due to the United States Government's refusal to pay the militia that had served under State officers. In response to this crisis, the Legislature of Massachusetts, on October 16th, voted 260 to 90 to pass a series of resolutions, the fifth of which authorized the calling of a convention to discuss "the public grievances and concerns of the New England States; the best ways to preserve our resources; defend against the enemy; and to propose measures for adoption by those respective States that they consider necessary; and also to take steps, if they see fit, to gather a convention of delegates from all the United States, to revise the Constitution and more effectively secure the support and loyalty of all the people by ensuring fair representation." The letter sent to the governors of other States outlined the main goals of the proposed conference: "to discuss the dangers faced by the eastern part of the Union due to the war and to find, if possible, ways to ensure security and defense that would help preserve their resources from total ruin, while considering their local situation, relationships, and habits, and remaining true to their responsibilities as members of the Union."
In response to this call, a convention of twenty-six delegates met at Hartford, Conn., December 15th, and sat for three weeks. All sorts of absurd rumors as to the purpose of the Convention were set 329afloat, and the President so far participated in the vague fears thus excited, or pretended to, as to station a regiment of troops in Hartford.
In response to this call, a convention of twenty-six delegates met in Hartford, Conn., on December 15th, and sat for three weeks. All kinds of ridiculous rumors about the purpose of the convention were spread, and the President got involved in the general fears this caused, or at least acted like it, by stationing a regiment of troops in Hartford.
On the 5th of January, 1815, the Convention adjourned, and published a long report, wherein were set forth the difficulties that the country labored under, and methods proposed by the Convention for adjusting them. These were first discussed at length, and then summarized in a series of resolutions: That unconstitutional drafts of militia should be prevented; that the New England States should be empowered to defend their own territory against the enemy; that representatives and direct taxes should be apportioned among the States according to the number of their free inhabitants; that a two-third vote of Congress should be required to admit a new State; that embargoes for more than sixty days should be forbidden; that a two-third Congressional vote should be required for the interdiction of commercial intercourse, or for the declaration of offensive war; that naturalized citizens should not be eligible to Federal offices; that the President should be ineligible for a second term, and should not be chosen from the same State twice in succession; and, finally, that if these ends were not attained, and peace not concluded, another convention should be held in Boston in the following June. 330This ought to have been plain enough for anybody to understand; and yet allusions to "the old blue-lights of the Hartford Convention," as a synonym for treason, have come down to our own day. Its popularity as a bugbear has never been exceeded. So great was its influence in this regard, that it caused General Scott to remember something which had never taken place. In his account of the battle of Chippewa he says: "And now the New England States were preparing to hold a convention—it met at Hartford—perhaps to secede from the Union —possibly to take up arms against it. Scott's brigade, nearly all New England men, were most indignant, and this was the subject of the second of the three pithy remarks made to them by Scott just before the final conflict of Chippewa. Calling aloud to the gallant Major Hindman, he said, 'Let us put down the Federal Convention by beating the enemy in front. There's nothing in the Constitution against that.'" * There can be no question as to the intrinsic pithiness of this remark; but if Scott made it, he must have been somewhat of a prophet, for the battle of Chippewa was fought on the 5th of July, and the call for the Convention was not issued till October. This shows the danger of writing
On January 5, 1815, the Convention adjourned and released a detailed report outlining the challenges the country faced and the solutions proposed by the Convention to address them. These were thoroughly discussed before being summarized in a series of resolutions: Prevent unconstitutional drafts of militia; empower the New England States to protect their own territory against the enemy; allocate representatives and direct taxes among the States based on their free population; require a two-thirds vote in Congress to admit a new State; ban embargoes lasting more than sixty days; mandate a two-thirds Congressional vote to restrict commercial trade or declare offensive war; disallow naturalized citizens from holding Federal offices; make the President ineligible for a second term and prohibit choosing a President from the same State twice in a row; and finally, if these goals were not met and peace was not achieved, hold another convention in Boston the following June. 330This should have been clear enough for anyone to grasp, yet references to "the old blue-lights of the Hartford Convention" as a term for treason have persisted to this day. Its notoriety as a scare tactic has never been surpassed. Its influence was so profound that it led General Scott to recall something that never occurred. In his account of the battle of Chippewa, he states: "And now the New England States were preparing to hold a convention—it met at Hartford—perhaps to secede from the Union—possibly to take up arms against it." Scott's brigade, mostly New Englanders, was outraged, and this became the topic of the second of three significant comments made to them by Scott just before the final conflict at Chippewa. Calling out to the brave Major Hindman, he said, "Let’s put down the Federal Convention by defeating the enemy in front. There’s nothing in the Constitution against that." * There’s no doubt about the inherent sharpness of this comment; but if Scott said it, he was somewhat prophetic since the battle of Chippewa occurred on July 5, and the call for the Convention wasn’t made until October. This illustrates the risks of writing.
* Scott's Memoirs, vol. i., page 133.
* Scott's Memoirs, vol. i., page 133.
The great news from the South, and the tidings of peace, followed so quickly upon the adjournment of the Convention that its labors went for nought, its members were subjected to merciless ridicule, and the new convention proposed for June was never held.
The great news from the South and the announcements of peace came so quickly after the Convention ended that all its efforts were in vain, its members faced harsh mockery, and the new convention planned for June never took place.
CHAPTER XX. THE CAMPAIGN ON THE GULF COAST.
332
British Occupation of Pensacola—Negotiations with Lafitte—Expedition against Mobile—Capture of Pensacola—Defence of New Orleans—The Battles before the City—Defeat of the British—Losses.
British Occupation of Pensacola—Talks with Lafitte—Mission against Mobile—Taking of Pensacola—Defense of New Orleans—The Battles around the City—British Defeat—Casualties.
Though Pensacola was a Spanish town, in Spanish territory, the British forces used it as a station for fitting out expeditions against Mobile and New Orleans. Here they gathered arms and munitions of war; here their vessels found safe anchorage in a spacious harbor, where they were afforded every facility for refitting; and here the savage allies were equipped for war and murder. The British commander sent an embassy to Jean Lafitte, at Barataria Bay, offering him a captain's commission, together with a free pardon for all his gang, and grants of land to be carved out of such territory as might be conquered from the United States, on condition that he and his men would assist with their fleet the expeditions then fitting out. The English commander also hinted darkly at something which he called "the blessings of the British constitution"—probably meaning the abundant bone and muscle of a beef-eater—as an additional inducement 333to the famous little Frenchman. Lafitte was commonly called a pirate, but that was not precisely his character. He was a receiver of stolen goods captured by half-piratical privateers, which he smuggled into New Orleans. But, pirate or no pirate, he seems to have been too shrewd for the Englishman. He appeared to acquiesce till he obtained the terms in black and white, and then despatched the letters to Governor Claiborne of Louisiana, together with one in which he offered his services in defending the coast against the British, on condition that the proscription of himself and his adherents be terminated by an act of oblivion. The Governor laid the letters before a council of military and naval officers, who decided that they were forgeries and Lafitte a scoundrel. Consequently an expedition under Commodore Patterson was sent against him, by which his establishment was broken up, nine of his vessels were seized, and many of his men made prisoners.
Though Pensacola was a Spanish town in Spanish territory, the British forces used it as a base to prepare expeditions against Mobile and New Orleans. Here, they collected arms and war supplies; here, their ships found safe harbor in a large port, where they had every opportunity to refit; and here, their savage allies were armed for battles and violence. The British commander sent a message to Jean Lafitte at Barataria Bay, offering him a captain's commission, along with a full pardon for his crew and land grants from any territory they might conquer from the United States, on the condition that he and his men would support the expeditions being prepared. The English commander also subtly referenced something he called "the blessings of the British constitution"—likely referring to the ample food and resources available to entice the famous little Frenchman. Lafitte was often labeled a pirate, but that wasn't exactly accurate. He was more of a receiver of stolen goods taken by semi-pirate privateers, which he smuggled into New Orleans. Regardless of the pirate label, Lafitte seemed too clever for the English. He indicated he was interested until he secured clear terms in writing, then sent the letters to Governor Claiborne of Louisiana, along with one offering his help in defending the coast against the British, provided that the ban on him and his followers was lifted through an act of forgiveness. The Governor presented the letters to a council of military and naval officers, who concluded they were forgeries and deemed Lafitte a scoundrel. As a result, an expedition led by Commodore Patterson was dispatched against him, breaking up his operations, seizing nine of his ships, and capturing many of his men.
One morning in July, General Jackson was presented with a new English musket, brought to his headquarters by a friendly Indian who had received it from the Creeks at Appalachicola. This told an alarming story, which the General at once communicated to Governor Claiborne and the Secretary of War. Of the latter he asked permission to make a 334descent upon Pensacola. Before an answer was received, Jackson was joined by new levies of troops from Tennessee, which he hurried to Mobile.
One morning in July, General Jackson received a new English musket, brought to his headquarters by a friendly Native American who had gotten it from the Creeks at Appalachicola. This raised alarming concerns, which the General immediately shared with Governor Claiborne and the Secretary of War. He asked the latter for permission to launch a 334attack on Pensacola. Before he got a response, Jackson was joined by fresh troops from Tennessee, which he quickly sent to Mobile.
On Mobile Point, commanding the entrance to the bay, stood a ruinous earthwork known as Fort Bowyer. Major William Lawrence, with a garrison of one hundred and sixty men, took possession of this, and proceeded to put it in shape for defence. On the 12th of September, the British landed a detachment of marines and six hundred Indians on the peninsula of which Mobile Point is the extremity, and a few hours later four war-vessels, under Captain Percy, appeared at the entrance of the bay. Two or three days were passed in feeble demonstrations on the land side, and attempts to sound the channel; but on the afternoon of the 15th the fleet sailed up in line, dropped anchor in the channel, and opened the battle. For an hour the firing was incessant; it ceased for a moment when the colors of the flag-ship Hermes were shot away; but was soon renewed, when a chance shot cut the cable of the Hermes, the current swung her bow-on to the fort, and for twenty minutes she was raked mercilessly. She drifted down the channel and ran aground, when Captain Percy abandoned her and set her on fire. Another vessel was crippled and driven off, and the other two then withdrew.
On Mobile Point, which overlooks the entrance to the bay, there was a dilapidated earthwork called Fort Bowyer. Major William Lawrence, leading a garrison of one hundred sixty men, took control of it and began reinforcing it for defense. On September 12th, the British landed a group of marines and six hundred Indians on the peninsula at the tip of Mobile Point. A few hours later, four warships under Captain Percy appeared at the entrance of the bay. They spent the next couple of days making weak attempts to engage from land and checking the depth of the channel. However, on the afternoon of the 15th, the fleet moved in a line, dropped anchor in the channel, and started the battle. For an hour, the cannon fire was nonstop; it paused momentarily when the flag-ship Hermes lost its colors, but resumed quickly when a stray shot severed the Hermes's anchor cable, causing her to point directly at the fort as she was bombarded for twenty minutes. She drifted down the channel and ran aground, after which Captain Percy abandoned her and set her on fire. Another ship was damaged and forced to retreat, and the remaining two ships pulled back as well.
Early in November, Jackson, with three thousand men, marched on Pensacola, where he proposed to garrison the forts till the Spanish authorities were able to maintain for themselves the neutrality of the port. This proposition being rejected by the Spanish Governor, Jackson's men charged into the town and captured a battery, and took possession. That night Fort Barrancas, commanding the entrance to the harbor, was blown up, and the British vessels sailed away.
Early in November, Jackson, with three thousand men, marched on Pensacola, where he planned to garrison the forts until the Spanish authorities could maintain their own neutrality at the port. When the Spanish Governor rejected this proposal, Jackson's men charged into the town, captured a battery, and took control. That night, Fort Barrancas, which overlooked the entrance to the harbor, was blown up, and the British ships sailed away.
Hurrying back to Mobile, where he feared a second attack, Jackson learned of the revelations of Lafitte and was urged to go to the defence of New Orleans. He arrived in that city on the 2d of December, was enthusiastically welcomed, and at once set to work to prepare it for defence. He called out the Louisiana militia, appealed to the free negroes, released and enrolled convicts whose terms were within two months of expiration, accepted the services of Lafitte and his men, assigning them to duty as artillerists, and ordered Coffee with his two 336thousand men to join him from Mobile. While looking anxiously for new levies from Kentucky and Tennessee, who were to come by way of the river, he fortified the city, and proclaimed martial law.
Rushing back to Mobile, where he was worried about a second attack, Jackson found out about Lafitte's revelations and was encouraged to defend New Orleans. He arrived in the city on December 2nd, received a warm welcome, and immediately began preparing it for defense. He mobilized the Louisiana militia, reached out to free Black individuals, released and enlisted convicts whose sentences were about to end, accepted the help of Lafitte and his crew, assigning them as gunners, and ordered Coffee with his two 336thousand men to join him from Mobile. While anxiously awaiting new recruits from Kentucky and Tennessee, who were supposed to arrive by boat, he fortified the city and declared martial law.
On the 10th of December the British fleet entered Lake Borgne, where on the 14th it defeated and captured the American gunboats. On the 23d a body of two thousand four hundred British troops reached the bank of the Mississippi nine miles below New Orleans, and with two thousand one hundred Jackson went down to meet them.
On December 10th, the British fleet entered Lake Borgne, where on the 14th it defeated and captured the American gunboats. On the 23rd, a group of two thousand four hundred British troops arrived at the banks of the Mississippi, nine miles below New Orleans, and Jackson went down with two thousand one hundred men to meet them.
New Orleans was the largest prize which had been contended for in this war. It was a city of twenty thousand inhabitants; and a hundred and fifty thousand bales of cotton, worth two shillings a pound, were stored there. But it was not so much its immediate pecuniary value that tempted the enemy, as the commercial and strategical importance of its position, for they expected not only to capture but to hold it permanently. Lieutenant Gleig, author of "The Subaltern," who was connected with the expedition, after describing the Mississippi and its tributaries, wrote: "Whatever nation, therefore, chances to possess this place, possesses in reality the command of a greater extent of country than is included within the boundary line of the whole United States," and the London Times, an337nouncing that all the disposable shipping had been sent from Bermuda, to the Mississippi, added that, "most active measures are pursuing for detaching from the dominion of the enemy an important part of his territory."
New Orleans was the biggest prize in this war. It was a city with twenty thousand residents and held a hundred and fifty thousand bales of cotton, valued at two shillings per pound. But it wasn't just its immediate financial value that attracted the enemy; it was the commercial and strategic significance of its location, as they intended not only to capture it but to hold it permanently. Lieutenant Gleig, the author of "The Subaltern," who was part of the expedition, described the Mississippi and its tributaries, stating: "Whatever nation, therefore, happens to control this place, effectively commands a larger area of land than what is encompassed within the borders of the entire United States." The London Times, announcing that all available shipping had been sent from Bermuda to the Mississippi, added, "most active measures are being taken to detach an important part of his territory from the control of the enemy."
Wellington's veterans, fresh from their victories in the Spanish peninsula, were now before the city, and the inhabitants, knowing how hasty had been the preparations for defence, trembled for its safety. The expectation was, that, if captured, it would at once be sacked.
Wellington's veterans, just back from their victories in the Spanish peninsula, were now at the city's gates, and the residents, aware of how rushed the defense preparations had been, were anxious about its safety. The general belief was that if the city fell, it would be immediately looted.
It was late in the day when Jackson moved to the attack. He sent Coffee and his Tennesseeans to gain the right flank and rear of the enemy, while the rest of his forces were to deploy across the narrow strip of land between the river and a morass, and attack in front. The schooner Carolina was ordered to move down to a point opposite the British left, and enfilade the position; her first discharge to be the signal for the land attack. It was half-past seven o'clock when she opened the battle with a broadside that tore through the British camp and swept down a large number of men. The moon was young and obscured by clouds, so that there was almost absolute darkness, except when the flashes of the guns momentarily lighted up one or another part of the field. 338The two armies soon became intermingled, and, as one of the participants wrote, "no man could tell what was going forward in any quarter, except where he himself chanced immediately to stand; no one part of the line could bring assistance to another, because in truth no line existed." The fighting was mostly hand-to-hand; few of the Americans had bayonets, but many carried long knives, and the most ghastly wounds were given and received. Officers on either side would gather little companies of men and go out into the darkness to find the enemy; but when they had come in contact with an armed party like themselves, it was often impossible to say whether they were friends or foes.
It was late in the day when Jackson launched the attack. He sent Coffee and his Tennessee troops to flank the right side and rear of the enemy, while the rest of his forces were to spread out across the narrow strip of land between the river and a swamp, and attack from the front. The schooner Carolina was ordered to move down to a point opposite the British left and hit their position from the side; her first shot would signal the land attack. It was half-past seven when she started the battle with a broadside that tore through the British camp and took down a large number of men. The moon was new and hidden by clouds, creating almost complete darkness, except when gun flashes briefly lit up parts of the battlefield. 338The two armies soon got mixed up, and, as one participant wrote, "no one could tell what was happening anywhere, except where they stood; no part of the line could help another because, in reality, no line existed." The fighting was mostly hand-to-hand; few Americans had bayonets, but many carried long knives, and the wounds exchanged were horrific. Officers on both sides would gather small groups of men and venture into the darkness to find the enemy; but when they encountered an armed group like themselves, it was often impossible to tell if they were friends or foes.
After three hours of this bloody work, the Americans withdrew to works four miles from the city. They had lost twenty-four killed, one hundred and fifteen wounded, and seventy-four missing. General Keane's official report made the British loss forty-six killed, one hundred and sixty-seven wounded, and sixty-four missing. Lieutenant Gleig, in his "Narrative," says, "Not less than five hundred men had fallen, many of whom were our finest soldiers and best officers; and yet we could not but consider ourselves fortunate in escaping from the toils, even at the expense of so great a sacrifice." A journal found upon a British officer 339who was killed in the battle of January 8th, puts the loss in this action at "two hundred and twenty-four killed, and an immense number wounded."
After three hours of brutal fighting, the Americans pulled back to positions four miles from the city. They had suffered twenty-four killed, one hundred and fifteen wounded, and seventy-four missing. General Keane's official report stated the British losses were forty-six killed, one hundred and sixty-seven wounded, and sixty-four missing. Lieutenant Gleig, in his "Narrative," notes, "Not less than five hundred men had fallen, many of whom were our finest soldiers and best officers; and yet we could not but consider ourselves fortunate in escaping from the toils, even at the cost of such a great sacrifice." A journal found belonging to a British officer 339who was killed in the battle on January 8th records the loss in this engagement at "two hundred and twenty-four killed, and an immense number wounded."
Heavy reënforcements of British troops soon arrived, and with them Generals Sir Edward Pakenham and Samuel Gibbs. Pakenham, a brother-in-law of the Duke of Wellington, had won considerable distinction in the Peninsular War. He found the army before New Orleans in a pitiful plight. It was encamped on a strip of low and level land, on one side a broad river where it had no vessels, and on the other an almost impassable morass. In front were fortifications that were continually being strengthened, and of the enemy behind them almost nothing was known; while two armed vessels kept up day and night an enfilading fire. With all this, alternate rain and frost left them scarcely a comfortable hour.
Heavy reinforcements of British troops soon arrived, along with Generals Sir Edward Pakenham and Samuel Gibbs. Pakenham, who was the brother-in-law of the Duke of Wellington, had gained significant recognition in the Peninsular War. He found the army before New Orleans in a dire situation. They were camped on a narrow stretch of low, flat land, with a wide river on one side where they had no boats, and an almost impassable swamp on the other. In front of them were fortifications that were constantly being reinforced, and they knew almost nothing about the enemy behind them; meanwhile, two armed vessels maintained a continuous barrage day and night. On top of all this, alternating rain and frost left them with hardly any comfortable moments.
Pakenham's first movement was to bring heavy guns and a furnace across the peninsula by night, and plant them on the levee; from which on the morning of the 27th he opened a fire with hot shot, and in half an hour had driven the Louisiana up stream and set the Carolina on fire, so that she was abandoned and blew up.
Pakenham's first move was to bring heavy artillery and a furnace across the peninsula at night and set them up on the levee. On the morning of the 27th, he began firing hot shot, and within half an hour, he had pushed the Louisiana upstream and set the Carolina on fire, causing it to be abandoned and ultimately explode.
On the 28th he made a reconnoissance in force. As the left wing approached the American lines, a 340group of buildings which Jackson's men had filled with combustibles was fired by a hot shot from one of his guns, and amid the heat and smoke the British saw before them an impassable ditch, from behind which a few pieces of artillery, handled with the utmost skill, poured destruction through their ranks. The right wing found the left of Jackson's position weak, effected a lodgment within the lines, and might perhaps have changed the fortunes of the campaign, had not its leader been instructed that this was to be a reconnoissance, not a battle.
On the 28th, he conducted a strong reconnaissance. As the left wing neared the American lines, a 340group of buildings that Jackson's troops had filled with flammable materials was ignited by a hot shot from one of his cannons. Amid the heat and smoke, the British faced an impassable ditch, behind which a few expertly handled artillery pieces rained destruction on their ranks. The right wing discovered that the left side of Jackson's position was weak, managed to establish a foothold within the lines, and might have altered the outcome of the campaign if its leader hadn’t been directed that this was just a reconnaissance, not an engagement.
Pakenham now resolved upon regular siege operations, and brought thirty guns from the fleet, which in the night of the 31st he mounted within three hundred yards of the American lines. His troops were encamped in the midst of sugar plantations, and a considerable portion of his new ramparts was formed of hogsheads of sugar, set on end.
Pakenham decided to start formal siege operations and brought thirty cannons from the fleet, which he set up overnight on the 31st, just three hundred yards from the American lines. His troops were stationed in the middle of sugar plantations, and a significant part of his new defenses was made from upright sugar barrels.
When day dawned, and the Americans saw thirty guns frowning down upon them from high bastions that had risen as if by magic in the darkness, the sight was rather appalling; but as soon as fire was opened upon these apparently formidable works, it was seen that the balls passed right through the hogsheads of sugar, and the whole fabric began to crumble away. There was also a vulnerable element in Jackson's works; for he had used cotton 341bales as his enemy used sugar, and though the cotton resisted the passage of a ball, it was easily set on fire, and the bales knocked out of position.
When day broke and the Americans saw thirty cannons looming over them from high fortifications that seemed to have appeared overnight, the scene was quite daunting. However, once they opened fire on these apparently intimidating structures, they realized the cannonballs went right through the barrels of sugar, and the entire structure began to disintegrate. There was also a weak point in Jackson's defenses; he had used cotton bales just like the enemy used sugar, and although the cotton could stop a cannonball, it was easily ignited, and the bales could be knocked out of place. 341bales
Commodore Patterson had erected a battery on the opposite bank of the Mississippi, to rake the ground held by the British, who at the same time had erected one on the levee to oppose it. For an hour these guns were all blazing at once; and when the firing ceased and the smoke rolled away, it was found that the British works had been completely ruined, and seventy of their men killed or wounded; the American works were not seriously damaged, but they had lost thirty-four men.
Commodore Patterson had built a battery on the opposite bank of the Mississippi to target the area held by the British, who had set up their own battery on the levee to counter it. For an hour, both sides fired relentlessly; when the shooting stopped and the smoke cleared, it was revealed that the British stronghold had been entirely destroyed, with seventy of their soldiers killed or wounded. The American fortifications were not significantly harmed, but they had lost thirty-four men.
Jackson made haste to throw away his cotton bales, supply their place with earth, and construct a second line of works a mile and a half in the rear, and for a week nervously awaited the next move of the enemy. In that week he was joined by nearly three thousand Kentucky and Louisiana militia; but as they were in rags and had scarcely a firelock among them, they could hardly be considered a reënforcement. The British were reenforced by two regiments under General John Lambert.
Jackson hurried to discard his cotton bales, replace them with soil, and build a second line of defense a mile and a half back. For a week, he anxiously waited for the enemy's next move. During that week, he was joined by almost three thousand militia from Kentucky and Louisiana; however, since they were in tatters and barely had any firearms, they couldn't really be seen as a reinforcement. The British received reinforcements from two regiments led by General John Lambert.
Pakenham's final plan was to send a heavy force across the river to capture Patterson's batteries and turn them upon Jackson's lines, and at the same time push forward the remainder of his force to as342sault those lines in front, the advance guard to fill the ditch with fascines and plant scaling-ladders against the ramparts. Preparatory to this, it was necessary to dig a canal across the isthmus, to drag boats through from Lake Borgne to the Mississippi, and this occupied his troops nearly six days.
Pakenham's final plan was to send a strong force across the river to capture Patterson's artillery and turn it against Jackson's lines. At the same time, he aimed to push forward the rest of his troops to attack those lines head-on, with the advance guard tasked with filling the ditch with fascines and setting up scaling ladders against the walls. To prepare for this, it was essential to dig a canal across the isthmus to transport boats from Lake Borgne to the Mississippi, which took his troops almost six days.
On Saturday, January 7th, Jackson stood upon the tallest building within his lines, and through a large spy-glass which a planter had mounted for him, saw the red-coats making fascines by binding up sheaves of sugar-cane, and constructing ladders. At the same time, Pakenham was surveying the American works from the top of a pine-tree.
On Saturday, January 7th, Jackson stood on the tallest building within his lines, and through a large telescope that a planter had set up for him, saw the redcoats making bundles by tying up sheaves of sugarcane and building ladders. At the same time, Pakenham was checking out the American defenses from the top of a pine tree.
The British general intended to make an attack on both sides of the river simultaneously, before daylight on the 8th. But there was great difficulty in navigating the canal, the sides of which had caved in; only enough boats were brought through to carry over five hundred troops, instead of fourteen hundred, and these were delayed several hours. A detachment under Colonel Thornton embarked in them, but were swept down by the current and reached the western shore far below the intended landing-place.
The British general planned to launch an attack on both sides of the river at the same time, just before dawn on the 8th. However, navigating the canal was very challenging because the banks had collapsed. Only enough boats were able to pass through to transport five hundred troops instead of the planned fourteen hundred, and these were delayed for several hours. A group led by Colonel Thornton boarded these boats, but they were carried away by the current and ended up landing on the western shore much farther down than intended.
Meanwhile the sun had risen, the fog was rolling away, Pakenham was impatient, and before Thornton could get near his enemy he saw the signal 343rocket which announced the attack. The Americans understood the signal quite as well as he did, and were ready to meet the shock. One thirty-two pounder was loaded to the muzzle with musket-balls. A deserter had told the British commander that the weak spot in Jackson's line was the extreme left; true enough when he said it, but now that spot was strengthened by two thousand Tennessee and Kentucky riflemen. The heaviest attack was accordingly made at this point, a column of three thousand men, under General Gibbs, moving against it. They were to be preceded by an Irish regiment bearing the fascines and ladders. At the same time, a column of one thousand moved along the river road, under the cross-fire from Patterson's battery, to attack Jackson's right. These were to be preceded by a West India black regiment with the necessary fascines and ladders. Midway between stood nearly a thousand Highlanders, under General Keane, ready to support either column, as circumstances might require. The British had also a battery of six eighteen-pounders; and, drawn up behind all, a considerable reserve.
Meanwhile, the sun had risen, the fog was clearing, Pakenham was getting anxious, and before Thornton could approach his enemy, he saw the signal 343rocket that announced the attack. The Americans understood the signal just as well as he did and were ready to confront the offense. A thirty-two-pounder cannon was loaded to the brim with musket balls. A deserter had informed the British commander that the weak point in Jackson's line was at the far left; he was correct at the time, but now that area was reinforced by two thousand riflemen from Tennessee and Kentucky. Consequently, the most intense attack was launched at this location, with a column of three thousand men under General Gibbs moving towards it. They were to be led by an Irish regiment carrying the fascines and ladders. At the same time, a column of one thousand advanced along the river road, under fire from Patterson's battery, to assault Jackson's right. This group was to be led by a West Indian black regiment with the necessary fascines and ladders. Situated in the middle were nearly a thousand Highlanders, under General Keane, ready to assist either column as needed. The British also had a battery of six eighteen-pounders and a significant reserve positioned behind them.
The battle was what Bunker Hill would have been if the Americans had had stronger works and plenty of ammunition. The beautiful British columns moved forward only to be mowed down. When 344the thirty-two pounder discharged its musket-balls, the head of one column melted away before it, two hundred men being disabled. Both the Irish and the Negro regiment failed in their duty, so that when the main columns arrived at the ditch they had no means of crossing, and the terrible blunder had to be remedied under a continuous and withering fire. The ranks were badly broken. Pakenham, trying to re-form them, was killed, falling into the arms of Captain McDougall, the same officer who had caught General Ross when he fell at North Point. General Gibbs was wounded mortally; General Keane seriously. Colonel Dale fell at the head of the Highland regiment, which was almost entirely destroyed. It went into the fight with over nine hundred men, and came out with one hundred and forty. A major and a lieutenant, with twenty men, crossed the ditch before the American left, and the two officers mounted the breastwork. The major was instantly riddled with bullets; the lieutenant demanded the swords of two officers who confronted him, and was told to look behind him. He turned, and saw, as he expressed it, that the men he supposed to be following "had vanished as if the earth had opened and swallowed them up."
The battle was what Bunker Hill could have been if the Americans had better defenses and enough ammunition. The impressive British columns advanced only to be cut down. When 344the thirty-two-pounder fired its musket balls, the front of one column disintegrated, leaving two hundred men incapacitated. Both the Irish and the Black regiments failed in their duties, so when the main columns reached the ditch, they had no way to cross, and the serious mistake had to be fixed under constant and intense fire. The ranks were badly scattered. Pakenham, attempting to regroup them, was killed, falling into the arms of Captain McDougall, the same officer who had caught General Ross when he fell at North Point. General Gibbs was fatally wounded; General Keane was seriously injured. Colonel Dale fell at the front of the Highland regiment, which was almost completely wiped out. It entered the battle with over nine hundred men and came out with just one hundred and forty. A major and a lieutenant, along with twenty men, crossed the ditch before the American left, and the two officers climbed onto the breastwork. The major was immediately shot full of bullets; the lieutenant demanded the swords of two officers facing him, and they told him to look behind him. He turned and saw, as he put it, that the men he believed were following "had vanished as if the earth had opened up and swallowed them whole."
On the American right, the British carried a small outwork; but the guns of the main line were turned 345upon it and cleared it. Of this column, only three men—a colonel, a major, and a captain—reached the breastwork, and as they mounted they were all shot and tumbled into the ditch together.
On the American right, the British had a small fortification; but the cannons from the main line were aimed 345at it and took it out. From this group, only three men—a colonel, a major, and a captain—made it to the barricade, and as they climbed up, they were all shot and fell into the ditch together.
The action lasted but twenty-five minutes. Seven hundred of the British were killed, fourteen hundred wounded, and five hundred prisoners. The Americans lost four killed and thirteen wounded; in the entire campaign, three hundred and thirty-three.
The battle lasted just twenty-five minutes. Seven hundred British soldiers were killed, fourteen hundred were wounded, and five hundred were taken prisoner. The Americans had four killed and thirteen wounded; throughout the whole campaign, the total was three hundred and thirty-three.
The force under Thornton, on the western bank of the river, carried the American works, where but brief resistance was made, and were pursuing the retreating militia, when news of the disaster on the other bank was brought to Thornton, together with an order to return. He had lost a hundred men, killed or wounded, and inflicted a loss of but six.
The troops led by Thornton, positioned on the west bank of the river, took control of the American fortifications after only a short fight and were chasing the fleeing militia when he received word about the disaster on the opposite bank, along with an order to pull back. He had suffered a loss of a hundred men, either killed or injured, while causing only six casualties on the other side.
The 9th was spent, under an armistice, in burying the dead and caring for the wounded. General Lambert then determined to withdraw to the shipping and abandon the enterprise, but was ten days about it, during which time his troops were annoyed by incessant cannonading by day and "hunting parties" by night. The British fleet had entered the Mississippi at its mouth, and from the 10th to the 17th bombarded Fort St. Philip, seventy-five miles below New Orleans, but effected nothing, and on the 18th withdrew.
The 9th was spent, under a ceasefire, burying the dead and taking care of the wounded. General Lambert then decided to pull back to the ships and give up on the mission, but it took him ten days to do it, during which his troops faced constant cannon fire during the day and "hunting parties" at night. The British fleet had come into the Mississippi at its mouth, and from the 10th to the 17th, they bombarded Fort St. Philip, seventy-five miles below New Orleans, but achieved nothing, and on the 18th, they withdrew.
CHAPTER XXI. PEACE.
346
The Treaty of Ghent—Treatment of Prisoners—Losses and Gains by the War—Conclusion.
The Treaty of Ghent—Dealing with Prisoners—Losses and Gains from the War—Conclusion.
Had there been an Atlantic cable, or even a transatlantic steamer, with land telegraphs, in those days, the slaughter before New Orleans might have been prevented; for a treaty of peace had been signed at Ghent on the 24th of December, 1814. It made the usual stipulations for the exchange of prisoners and the return of property, guaranteed peace to the Indians, and provided for a settlement by commissioners of questions as to boundary and the islands in Passamaquoddy Bay,—and it provided for little else. The negotiations had been going on for five months, and more than once were in danger of being broken off on account of the insolent and supercilious bearing of the English Commissioners. So says Adams in his diary.
Had there been an Atlantic cable, or even a transatlantic steamer, along with land telegraphs, back then, the bloodshed before New Orleans might have been avoided; because a peace treaty was signed in Ghent on December 24, 1814. It included the usual terms for exchanging prisoners and returning property, ensured peace for the Native Americans, and set up a process for resolving boundary disputes and issues regarding the islands in Passamaquoddy Bay—and not much else. The talks had been ongoing for five months and were nearly derailed multiple times due to the rude and arrogant attitude of the English Commissioners, according to Adams in his diary.
At the outset, the British Commissioners had insisted that the Indians should have a territory set off to them, as neutral ground between the British and the American possessions, and that the United States should have no armament on the great lakes 347and no fortifications on their shores, while Canada was not to be restricted. On the other hand, the American Commissioners had insisted on formal abrogation of the right of search and impressment. But all these points were ultimately given up. As early as June the American Commissioners had been instructed by the President that they might omit any stipulation on the subject of impressment, if it was found indispensably necessary to do so in order to terminate the war; and acting under this instruction they yielded to the argument that, as Europe was now at peace, there was no longer any occasion for exercising the right, and therefore no practical necessity for mentioning it.
At the beginning, the British Commissioners insisted that the Indians should have a designated area as neutral ground between British and American lands, and that the United States should not have any military presence on the Great Lakes 347or any fortifications along their shores, while Canada faced no such restrictions. On the flip side, the American Commissioners pushed for an official end to the right of search and impressment. However, all these issues were ultimately set aside. As early as June, the American Commissioners had been told by the President that they could drop any demands related to impressment if it was absolutely necessary to end the war. Following this instruction, they conceded to the argument that since Europe was now at peace, there was no longer a need to exercise that right, and thus, no real necessity to bring it up.
The treaty was severely criticised and mercilessly ridiculed as a meaningless document. It might have been answered that the Federalists at least had no right to complain, since they had clamored only for peace, and the treaty brought peace. Better than this, it might have been answered that when a point has been practically settled by war, it is of little consequence whether it is conceded on paper; since every nation is likely to heed a lesson taught by force of arms, and equally likely, when interest dictates, to abrogate a treaty; and, whatever might be said of the campaigns on land, it could not be denied that American mariners had abundantly vin348dicated their right to an unmolested navigation of the high seas—a right which British cruisers have never since interfered with.
The treaty faced harsh criticism and was ruthlessly mocked as a meaningless document. One could argue that the Federalists had no grounds to complain since they had only called for peace, and the treaty provided that peace. Furthermore, it could be said that when a matter has been largely decided by war, it hardly matters if it is acknowledged on paper; because every nation is likely to respect a lesson learned through military force, and just as likely, when it serves their interests, to cancel a treaty. Regardless of what could be said about the land campaigns, it could not be denied that American sailors had clearly demonstrated their right to navigate the high seas without interference—a right that British cruisers have not challenged since then.
There had been no exchange of prisoners during the war, though many had been paroled, and there were bitter complaints of the treatment received by Americans in British prisons. This was especially true of those confined at Dartmoor, the most unhealthful spot in the dreary highlands of Devonshire. These men were not only not released, but were not even informed that peace had been concluded, till three months after the treaty was signed. There seemed to be a special spite against them because they were mostly American sailors, who had audaciously and successfully disputed England's sovereignty of the seas.
There had been no prisoner exchanges during the war, although many had been paroled, and there were strong complaints about the treatment of Americans in British prisons. This was especially true for those held at Dartmoor, the most unhealthy place in the bleak highlands of Devonshire. These men were not only not released, but they weren't even told that peace had been reached until three months after the treaty was signed. It seemed like there was a particular resentment toward them because they were mostly American sailors, who had boldly and successfully challenged England's control of the seas.
If it be a matter of pride, as an English poetess appears to think, for a nation to strew its dead over the face of the globe, * then Great Britain certainly won fresh laurels in this war; for her soldiers who fell in it found graves six thousand miles apart: in the depths of Lake Erie, about the great falls of Niagara, and along the Thames and St. Lawrence; in the Atlantic, both near the American coast and almost within sight of their own shores; in Long Island Sound,
If it’s a point of pride, as an English poet seems to believe, for a nation to scatter its dead across the globe, then Great Britain definitely gained new honors in this war; because her soldiers who died in it were buried six thousand miles apart: in the depths of Lake Erie, near the great falls of Niagara, and along the Thames and St. Lawrence; in the Atlantic, both close to the American coast and almost visible from their own shores; in Long Island Sound,
* Wave may not foam, nor wild wind sweep,
* Wave may not foam, nor wild wind blow,
Where rest not England's dead.
Where England's dead do not rest.
—Mrs. Hemans
—Mrs. Hemans
349in the Chesapeake, and beyond the western edge of civilization; before the defences of Baltimore and New Orleans, and in the waters of the South Pacific. And her expeditions had been especially fatal to their commanders: Gen. Brock had fallen at Queenstown, Gen. Tecumseh at the Thames, Ross and Sir Peter Parker before Baltimore, Pakenham and Gibbs at New Orleans, with many of lower rank but hardly less responsibility; while seven commanders of her men-of-war—Lambert, Downie, Dickenson, Manners, Peake, Barrette, and Blythe—had all died on their bloody decks. But by her sacrifice of life and property she had gained absolutely nothing. She had not acquired an inch of territory, or established any principle of international law, or purchased for herself any new privilege, or secured any old one. The war had cost the United States a hundred million dollars in money, and thirty thousand lives; and a large portion of both the money and the lives had been squandered, when with ordinary skill and care they might have been saved. But she had something to show for it. If she had not fully relieved her from tier of the atrocities of the Indians, she had at least cut off their supplies from British sources, and possessed herself of all the western posts; she had put an end to the systematic violation of her rights on 350the ocean, and in so doing had demonstrated the superiority of American seamanship; she had completely established her national independence.
349in the Chesapeake, and beyond the western edge of civilization; before the defenses of Baltimore and New Orleans, and in the waters of the South Pacific. Her expeditions had particularly taken a toll on their commanders: Gen. Brock had fallen at Queenstown, Gen. Tecumseh at the Thames, Ross and Sir Peter Parker before Baltimore, Pakenham and Gibbs at New Orleans, along with many others of lower rank but still significant responsibility; seven commanders of her warships—Lambert, Downie, Dickenson, Manners, Peake, Barrette, and Blythe—had all died on their bloody decks. However, despite her loss of life and resources, she gained absolutely nothing. She hadn’t acquired an inch of territory, established any principle of international law, bought any new privilege, or secured any existing ones. The war had cost the United States a hundred million dollars and thirty thousand lives; much of both the money and lives were wasted, when with reasonable skill and care they could have been saved. But she had something to show for it. Even if she hadn’t completely relieved herself from the Indian atrocities, she had at least cut off their supply lines from British sources and taken control of all the western posts; she had ended the systematic violation of her rights on 350the ocean, and in doing so had proven the superiority of American seamanship; she had completely established her national independence.
It is to be hoped that no American youth who reads this little history will cherish any feeling of resentment or hatred toward the people whose fathers were so grievously unjust to ours. The day for that—if ever there was a day for it—has gone completely by. England has evidently passed the zenith of her power and glory; America is still rising toward hers, and how great she shall ultimately become, will be measured mainly by the breadth and generosity of the American mind. In the past sixty years we have lived down the most celebrated sneer in history. Five years after this war, the Rev. Sydney Smith wrote in the Edinburgh Review: "In the four quarters of the globe, who reads an American book? or goes to an American play? or looks at an American picture or statue? What does the world yet owe to American physicians or surgeons? What new substances have their chemists discovered, or what old ones have they analyzed? What new constellations have been discovered by the telescopes of Americans? What have they done in mathematics? Who drinks out of American glasses, or eats from American plates, or wears American coats or gowns, or sleeps in 351American blankets? Finally, under which of the old tyrannical governments of Europe is every sixth man a slave, whom his fellow citizens may buy and sell and torture?" If Mr. Smith were now living, he might be answered—if it were worth while to answer him at all—that the most widely circulated of all novels was written by an American woman; that the poet most read in England was an American; that our two standard dictionaries of the English language are both American; that several American magazines count their subscribers in Great Britain by tens of thousands; that the world owes its use of anaesthetics to an American physician; that American sculptors, painters, and actors hold their own with those of other nations; that America has the largest telescopes, and the most successful astronomers; that American reapers cut the world's harvests, and American sewing machines make its garments; that the telegraph and the telephone are American inventions; that the first steamboat was built in America, and it was an American steamship that first crossed the Atlantic, while our country contains more miles of railway than all Europe; that those who eat from American plates, eat the largest and best dinners in the world; and as for American glasses, altogether too many people drink out of them. Unless we mercifully left his final 352question unanswered, we should be obliged to say, that the United States had gotten rid of slavery, while to-day five million British subjects, all within two days' journey of the throne, tell us they find themselves virtually slaves.
It is hoped that no American young person reading this brief history will hold any resentment or hatred toward the people whose ancestors were so unjust to ours. That time—if it ever existed—has completely passed. England has clearly passed the peak of her power and glory; America is still moving up toward hers, and how great she ultimately becomes will depend mainly on the openness and generosity of the American mindset. In the past sixty years, we have overcome the most famous insult in history. Five years after this war, Rev. Sydney Smith wrote in the Edinburgh Review: "In the four corners of the earth, who reads an American book? Who goes to an American play? Who looks at an American picture or statue? What does the world owe to American doctors or surgeons? What new substances have their chemists discovered, or what old ones have they analyzed? What new constellations have been found by American telescopes? What have they achieved in mathematics? Who drinks from American glasses, or eats from American plates, or wears American coats or gowns, or sleeps under American blankets? Finally, under which of the old oppressive governments of Europe is every sixth man a slave, whom his fellow citizens can buy, sell, and torture?" If Mr. Smith were alive today, he might be told—if it were even worth replying—that the most widely read novel was written by an American woman; that the most read poet in England is American; that our two standard dictionaries of the English language are both American; that several American magazines have subscribers in Great Britain numbering in the tens of thousands; that the world owes its knowledge of anesthetics to an American doctor; that American sculptors, painters, and actors are on par with those from other countries; that America has the largest telescopes and the most successful astronomers; that American reapers harvest the world's crops, and American sewing machines make its clothing; that the telegraph and the telephone are American inventions; that the first steamboat was made in America, and it was an American steamship that first crossed the Atlantic, while our country has more miles of railroads than all of Europe; that those who eat from American plates enjoy the largest and best meals in the world; and as for American glasses, too many people drink from them. Unless we mercifully left his final 352question unanswered, we would have to say that the United States has ended slavery, while today five million British subjects, all within two days' journey of the throne, tell us they find themselves practically enslaved.
Yet with all our material and intellectual progress, we have hardly a right to be proud. For we have enjoyed peculiar advantages. The Mayflower did not land her pilgrims on a narrow island, but on the edge of a great continent. Of that continent we have the most productive zone, stretching from ocean to ocean, and a thousand miles in breadth; while within that zone our Government has given us, for the support of educational institutions, as much land as the entire area of Great Britain and Ireland. At the same time, we have not been loaded down with a standing army, an established church, a vast landed aristocracy, and all the rubbish of royalty. In America labor receives its highest wages, and pauperism finds its least excuse. It will be no special credit to us if we become in the next half century the most powerful and prosperous and generous of nations; but it will be a great shame to us if we do not.
Yet, despite all our material and intellectual progress, we really don't have much to be proud of. We've had unique advantages. The Mayflower didn't land its pilgrims on a small island, but on the edge of a vast continent. In that continent, we have the most productive area, stretching from ocean to ocean and about a thousand miles wide; within that area, our Government has provided us with enough land for educational institutions that's equal to the entire size of Great Britain and Ireland. At the same time, we haven’t had the burden of a standing army, an established church, a huge landed aristocracy, and all the trappings of royalty. In America, workers get their highest wages, and there's the least justification for poverty. It won't be particularly impressive if we become, in the next fifty years, the most powerful, prosperous, and generous of nations; but it will be a great shame if we don’t.
As we read the history of our country's early struggles, it may help us to avoid any unworthy feeling of resentment if we bear in mind the fact 353that there is a wide and peculiar discrepancy of character between the English people and the English Government. That people perhaps at present the most enlightened on earth, are justly noted for their innate love of fair play; for their continual struggles toward liberty, and their development of the great principles of jurisprudence; but that Government, in its dealings with other powers, has been for centuries arbitrary, selfish, barbarous, and inconsistent to the last degree. Priding itself upon legitimacy, it has befriended a bloody usurpation in France, because it hated the alternative of French republicanism. It has opened the ports of China with its cannon, for the purpose of selling there a narcotic drug of which it holds the monopoly. It boasted its abolition of the slave trade; yet when our country was at war over the slavery question, its sympathies were all with the slaveholders. Seventy years ago, as we have seen, its cruisers cared nothing for the neutrality of any harbor in which a hostile ship of fewer guns was riding at anchor; but twenty years ago it could not offer its neutral hospitalities too lavishly to privateers that had not a port of their own to hail from or sail to, and were burning all their prizes at sea without adjudication. It witnessed the dismemberment of Denmark with scarcely a protest, but has 354sacrificed thousands of English lives to maintain the Turk in Europe. It has stood for years at the head of a great conspiracy to keep Russia shut up in the centre of a continent long after her industrial growth and commercial importance have entitled her to a broad and unobstructed outlet to the highway of nations. It has eaten India into famine, and is now laying its kleptic fingers on the great island of Borneo, and apparently making ready to consume the continent of Africa.
As we read about our country's early struggles, it might help us avoid any feelings of resentment if we remember that there’s a huge and unique difference between the English people and the English Government. The English people, perhaps the most enlightened on earth today, are known for their natural love of fairness, their constant fights for freedom, and their development of important legal principles. However, the Government, in its interactions with other nations, has been arbitrary, selfish, brutal, and extremely inconsistent for centuries. While priding itself on legitimacy, it has supported a bloody coup in France because it opposed the alternative of French republicanism. It forced open China’s ports using its cannons to sell a narcotic drug that it had a monopoly on. It celebrated its abolition of the slave trade; yet when our country was at war over slavery, it sided with the slaveholders. Seventy years ago, as we’ve seen, its naval ships didn’t care about the neutrality of any harbor where a hostile ship with fewer guns was anchored; but twenty years ago, it couldn’t shower enough hospitality on privateers that had no home port to return to and were burning their captured ships at sea without any legal process. It watched Denmark get torn apart with hardly a protest, yet has sacrificed thousands of English lives to keep the Turks in Europe. It has spent years leading a major conspiracy to keep Russia confined in the center of a continent, long after her industrial growth and commercial significance deserved a wide and clear pathway to the world. It has caused famine in India and is now reaching out greedily towards the large island of Borneo, seemingly preparing to consume the continent of Africa.
We must blush for these things while we execrate them; for we ourselves are Englishmen. That famous little island, with its green lanes and waving woodlands, its busy towns and historical hamlets, was the home of our ancestors, and must ever have for us the highest romantic interest of any spot on earth; and we cannot too warmly sympathize with those who are still bearing burdens of feudal days, when the bravery of feudal leadership has long since passed away. Let us never forget how near of kin we are to the English people; but God forbid that we should inherit the vices of the English Government, or copy its crimes!
We should feel embarrassed by these things while hating them because we are English. That famous little island, with its green paths and swaying woodlands, its busy towns and historic villages, was the home of our ancestors, and will always hold the most romantic significance for us of any place on earth; we cannot help but deeply sympathize with those still carrying the burdens of feudal times, when the valor of feudal leadership has long disappeared. Let’s never forget how closely related we are to the English people; but God forbid that we should inherit the flaws of the English Government or mimic its wrongdoings!
If the story of a war like that we have been reading of teaches anything, it teaches the broad wisdom of dealing justly, and the ultimate folly of all chicanery, violence, and wrong.
If the story of a war like the one we've been reading about teaches us anything, it teaches the importance of acting fairly and the ultimate foolishness of all deception, violence, and wrongdoing.
INDEX
Adams, John Quincy, American minister at St. Petersburg, 225.
Adams, John Quincy, American minister in St. Petersburg, 225.
Alexandria, capitulation of, 283.
Alexandria, surrender of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Allen, Capt. W. H., killed, 202.
Allen, Capt. W. H., killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Alwyn, Master, 069.
Alwyn, Master, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Angus, Capt., 169.
Angus, Capt., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Armistead, Major George, in command at Fort McHenry, 288.
Armistead, Major George, in charge at Fort McHenry, 288.
Armstrong, Gen. John, made Secretary of War, and plans Wilkinson's expedition, 149.
Armstrong, Gen. John, became Secretary of War and organized Wilkinson's expedition, 149.
Austill, J., in canoe battle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Autosse, battle of, 187.
Autosse, battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Bailey, Capt., at Fort Mims, 181.
Bailey, Captain, at Fort Mims, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Barney, Com. Joshua, in the defence of Washington, 275.
Barney, Com. Joshua, in the defense of Washington, 275.
Barrette, Capt. G. W., killed, 220.
Barrette, Capt. G. W., killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Barron, Capt. James, in command of the Chesapeake, 010.
Barron, Capt. James, in charge of the Chesapeake, 010.
Bayard, James A., made a peace commissioner, 225.
Bayard, James A., appointed as a peace commissioner, 225.
Beasley, Major Daniel, killed, 181.
Beasley, Major Daniel, killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Beatty, Col., at Craney Island, 173.
Beatty, Col., at Craney Island, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Beaver Dams, fight at, 122.
Beaver Dams, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Beckwith, Sir S., at Hampton, 173.
Beckwith, Sir S., at Hampton, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Bennett, Major, at Lewiston, 164.
Bennett, Major, in Lewiston, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Biddle, Capt. James, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ in the Hornet, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Bissley, a sailor, his heroism, 318.
Bissley, a sailor, his courage, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Bladensburg, battle of, 278.
Bladensburg, Battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Blakely, Capt., in the Wasp, 320.
Capt. Blakely, aboard the Wasp, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Blue-Lights, origin of the term, 205.
Blue Lights, origin of the term, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Blythe, Capt. Samuel, killed, 204.
Blythe, Capt. Samuel, deceased, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Boothbay, fight at, 273.
Boothbay, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Bounties, 224.
Bounties, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Boyle, Capt., in the Comet, 216.
Boyle, Capt., on the Comet, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Brody, Col., at Lundy's Lane, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Brant, John, at Beaver Dams, 122.
Brant, John, at Beaver Dams, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Bridgewater, battle of, 244.
Battle of Bridgewater, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
British Government, character of, 353.
British Government, nature of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Brownstown, fight at, 031.
Brownstown, fight at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Buffalo burned, 166.
Buffalo on fire, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Bum, Col., at Fort George, 111.
Bum, Col., at Fort George, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Burnt Corn Creek, fight at, 179.
Burnt Corn Creek, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Burrows, Lieut. Wm., killed, 204.
Burrows, Lt. Wm., killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Bush, Lieut., 069.
Bush, Lieutenant, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Canada, invasion planned, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Canoe fight, Dale's, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Carronades described, 076.
Carronades explained, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Castine, Me., captured, 269.
Castine, ME, captured, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Castlereagh, Lord, quoted, 015.
Castlereagh, Lord, quoted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Champlin, Capt. Guy R., his fight in the Armstrong, 218.
Champlin, Capt. Guy R., his battle in the Armstrong, 218.
Chandler, Gen., at Stony Creek, 118.
Chandler, Gen., at Stony Creek, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Chapin, Maj., at Beaver Dams, 124.
Chapin, Maj., at Beaver Dams, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Charlotte, NY, stores hit at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ attacked, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Chateaugua, battle of, 157.
Chateauguay, battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Chesapeake, frigate, attacked by the Leopard, 010.
Chesapeake, frigate, attacked by the Leopard, 010.
Chicago, battle of, 033.
Chicago, battle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Chippewa, battle of, 233.
Chippewa, Battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Chrysler's Field, battle of, 154.
Chrysler's Field, battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Chrystie, Lieut.-Col. John, at Queenstown, 051.
Chrystie, Lieutenant Colonel John, at Queenstown, 051.
Cochrane, Admiral, in the burning of Washington, 282.
Cochrane, Admiral, in the burning of Washington, 282.
Coombs, Leslie, 084.
Coombs, Leslie, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Cooper, Capt., at Hampton, 175.
Cooper, Capt., in Hampton, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Cost of the northern campaigns, 160.
Cost of the northern campaigns, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Covington, Gen. L., killed, 155.
Covington, Gen. L., dead, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Craney Island, fight at, 172.
Craney Island, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Crutchfield, Major, at Hampton, 174.
Crutchfield, Major, at Hampton, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Dacres, Capt., loses the Guerriere, 070.
Dacres, Capt., loses the Guerriere, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Dale, Col., killed, 344.
Dale, Col., dead, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Darnell, Elias, his journal, 039.
Darnell, Elias, his journal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Dartmoor, prisoners at, 348.
Dartmoor, prisoners at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Davis, John, his heroism, 216.
Davis, John, his bravery, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Dearborn, Fort, 032.
Dearborn, Fort, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Decrees, the Berlin and Milan, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Dennis, Capt., at Queenstown, 052.
Dennis, Capt., in Queenstown, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Deserters, reclaiming, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Desha, Capt., wounded, 259.
Desha, Capt., injured, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Diron, Capt., in the Decatur, 220.
Diron, Capt., on the Decatur, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Dorchester, Lord, calls a council of Indians, 003.
Dorchester, Lord, calls a meeting of Native Americans, 003.
Douglass, Major, at Fort Erie, 246.
Douglass, Major, at Fort Erie, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Downes, Lieut. J., with Porter, 295.
Downes, Lt. J., with Porter, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Downie, Com. George, at Plattsburgh, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Dudley, Col., at Fort Meigs, 091.
Dudley, Colonel, at Fort Meigs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Eastport, Me., captured, 268.
Eastport, ME, captured, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Econochaca, battle of, 187.
Econochaca, battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Emucfau, fight at, 227.
Emucfau, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Enotachopco Creek, fight at, 227.
Enotachopco Creek, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Eustis, Hon. Wm., 026.
Eustis, Hon. Wm., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Fanning, Lieut., at Sackett's Harbor, 115.
Fanning, Lieutenant, at Sackett's Harbor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Fitzgibbon, Lieut., at Beaver Dams, 123.
Fitzgibbon, Lt., at Beaver Dams, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Fort Wayne, siege of, 040.
Fort Wayne, siege of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Franklin, Benj., his prediction, 001.
Franklin, Benj., his forecast, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Fredericktown, Md., ravaged, 171.
Fredericktown, MD, devastated, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Frenchtown, battle of, 085.
Frenchtown, Battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Gallatin, Albert, made a peace commissioner, 225.
Gallatin, Albert, appointed as a peace commissioner, 225.
Gananoqui, fight at, 046.
Gananoque, fight at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Gattanewa, Happah chief, 298.
Gattanewa, chief of Happah, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
George III. quoted, 002.
George III quoted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
George, Fort, capture of, 107.
George, Fort, capture of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Georgetown, Md., ravaged, 171.
Georgetown, MD, devastated, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Ghent, Treaty of, 346-7.
Ghent, Treaty of, 346-7.
Gleig, Lt., quoted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Gray, Col., at Sackett's Harbor, 115.
Gray, Col., at Sackett's Harbor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hall, Gen., at Buffalo, 164.
Hall, Gen., in Buffalo, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hamilton, Lieut., at Fort Madison, 044.
Hamilton, Lieutenant, at Fort Madison, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hampden, Me., captured, 270.
Hampden, ME, captured, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hampton, Va., destroyed, 173.
Hampton, VA, was destroyed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hancock, Major, at La Colie, 232.
Hancock, Major, at La Colie, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hanson, Alexander, mobbed, 021.
Hanson, Alexander, overwhelmed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hardy, Sir Thomas, his expeditions on the eastern coast, 268.
Hardy, Sir Thomas, his adventures on the eastern coast, 268.
Harrison, Fort, fight at, 041.
Harrison, Fort, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hartford Convention, 326.
Hartford Convention, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Havre de Grace destroyed, 170.
Havre de Grace devastated, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Henley, Lieut., at Plattsburg, 266.
Henley, Lt., at Plattsburg, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hillabee towns, fight at, 186.
Hillabee towns, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hillyar, Capt. James, sent out in search of the Essex, 310.
Hillyar, Capt. James, was sent out to look for the Essex, 310.
Hislop, Gen., captured, 080.
Hislop, Gen., captured, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Holmes Major, killed, 239.
Holmes Major, murdered, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hoophole Creek, fight at, 137.
Hoophole Creek, altercation at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Horseshoe Bend, battle of, 228.
Horseshoe Bend, battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Hough. Lieut., at Stonington, 273.
Hough, Lieutenant, at Stonington, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Indians, armed for depredation by the British, 003.
Indians, equipped by the British for plundering, 003.
Irvine, Capt. Armstrong, at Chrysler's
Irvine, Captain Armstrong, at Chrysler's
Field, 156.
Field, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Isaacs, Midshipman, 313.
Isaacs, Midshipman, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Johnson, Lieut.-Col. James, at battle of the Thames, 144.
Johnson, Lieutenant Colonel James, at the Battle of the Thames, 144.
Johnson, John, his heroism, 216.
Johnson, John, his bravery, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Keane, Gen., in New Orleans, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ hurt, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Key, Francis S., how he wrote the "Star-Spangled Banner,", 288.
Key, Francis S., how he wrote the "Star-Spangled Banner," 288.
King, Major, at York, 101.
King, Major, in York, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lafitte, Jean, in Jackson's campaign, 332.
Lafitte, Jean, in Jackson's campaign, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lambert, Capt., killed, 080.
Capt. Lambert, killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lang, John, his exploit, 074.
Lang, John, his story, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Larrabee, Lieut., at La Colie, 252.
Larrabee, Lieutenant, at La Colie, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lathrop, Lieut., at Stonington., 273.
Lathrop, Lt., at Stonington, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lawrence, Maj. W., at Mobile, 334.
Lawrence, Maj. W., in Mobile, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lee, Gen. Henry, assists Hanson against rioters, 022.
Lee, Gen. Henry, helps Hanson against protesters, 022.
Lewis, Col., 083.
Lewis, Col., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lewistown, Del., bombarded, 168.
Lewistown, Del., attacked, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lewiston, N, Y., burned, 164.
Lewiston, NY, burned, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lingan, Gen. James M., killed, 022.
Lingan, Gen. James M., killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Long-log Lane, battle of, 287.
Long-log Lane, battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Lundy's Lane, battle of, 239.
Lundy's Lane, Battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
McClure, Gen. George, his performances on the Niagara, 161.
McClure, Gen. George, his actions on the Niagara, 161.
McDonall, Lieut.-Col., at Michilimackinac, 259.
McDonall, Lt. Col., at Michilimackinac, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
McDonell, Lieut.-Col., at Queenstown, 055.
McDonell, Lt. Col., at Queenstown, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
McDonough, Lieut., at Fort Erie, 247.
McDonough, Lieutenant, at Fort Erie, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Macdonough, Lieut. Thomas, at Plattsburg, 264.
Lieutenant Thomas Macdonough, at Plattsburgh, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
McDougall, Capt., at New Orleans, 344.
McDougall, Capt., in New Orleans, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
McFarland, Major, killed, 244.
McFarland, Major, killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
McHenry, Fort, bombarded, 287.
McHenry, Fort, under attack, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
McPherson, Capt., at La Colie, 252.
McPherson, Capt., at La Colie, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Madison, Fort, fight at, 043.
Madison, Fort, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Madison, Major, at Frenchtown, 088.
Madison, Major, at Frenchtown, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Maguaga, fight at, 032.
Maguaga, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Malden, where Hull's forces are, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Manchester, N. Y., burned, 164.
Manchester, NY, burned, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Manners, Capt., killed, 321.
Manners, Capt., killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Manowa, Chief, his exploit, 230.
Manowa, Chief, his feat, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Martin, sloop-of-war, fight with, 169.
Martin, sloop-of-war, battle with, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Meigs, Fort, siege of, 090.
Meigs, Fort, siege, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Melville, Capt., at Sandy Creek, 257.
Melville, Capt., at Sandy Creek, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Mills, Col., killed, 114.
Mills, Col., deceased, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Mims, Fort, massacre at., 179.
Mims Fort massacre, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Mitchell, Lieut.-Col., at Oswego, 254.
Mitchell, Lt. Col., at Oswego, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Mobile, battle at, 334.
Mobile, fight at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Monroe, Jas., at Bladensburg, 278.
Monroe, Jas., in Bladensburg, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Moorfields, fight at, 285.
Moorfields, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Moravian Town destroyed, 147.
Moravian Town devastated, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Morris, Capt., at Hampden, 269.
Morris, Capt., at Hampden, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Morris, Lieut., 069.
Morris, Lt., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Murray, Col., at Fort Niagara, 163.
Murray, Col., at Fort Niagara, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Naval Battles: Argus and Pelican, 202. Armstrong and Queen, 214; and an English frigate, 218; destroyed at Fayal, 322. Chesapeake and Shannon, 197. Comet against four vessels, 216. Constitution and Guerriere, 067; and Java, 079; and Cyane and Levant, 325. Decatur and Dominica, 220. Dolphin and two vessels, 217. Enterprise and Boxer, 202. Essex and Alert, 065; and Phoebe and Cherub, 310. Globe against two packets, 221. Grampus and a sloop, 221. Hornet and Peacock, 195. Hornet (another) and Penguin, 325. Lake Erie, Perry's victory, 130; an Indian, 136. Lottery against barges, 218. Peacock and Epervier, 320. Plattsburg, Macdonough's victory, 263. President and Belvidera, 064; and Endymion, 325; and Little Belt, 062. Saratoga and Morgiana, 221. Tompkins and a frigate, 215. United States and Macedonian, 075. Wasp and Avon, 321; and Bream, 220; and Frolic, 073; and Reindeer, 320. Yankee and Eagle, 222.
Naval Battles: Argus and Pelican, 202. Armstrong and Queen, 214; and an English frigate, 218; destroyed at Fayal, 322. Chesapeake and Shannon, 197. Comet against four vessels, 216. Constitution and Guerriere, 067; and Java, 079; and Cyane and Levant, 325. Decatur and Dominica, 220. Dolphin and two vessels, 217. Enterprise and Boxer, 202. Essex and Alert, 065; and Phoebe and Cherub, 310. Globe against two packets, 221. Grampus and a sloop, 221. Hornet and Peacock, 195. Hornet (another) and Penguin, 325. Lake Erie, Perry's victory, 130; an Indian, 136. Lottery against barges, 218. Peacock and Epervier, 320. Plattsburg, Macdonough's victory, 263. President and Belvidera, 064; and Endymion, 325; and Little Belt, 062. Saratoga and Morgiana, 221. Tompkins and a frigate, 215. United States and Macedonian, 075. Wasp and Avon, 321; and Bream, 220; and Frolic, 073; and Reindeer, 320. Yankee and Eagle, 222.
Navy, British, size of, 023.
British Navy, size of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Negro sailors, protection denied to, 206.
Black sailors, denied protection to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Newark, burned, 162.
Newark, burned down, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
New London, Conn., American vessels blockaded at, 204.
New London, Conn., American ships blocked at, 204.
Newspapers, English, cited, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__
Niagara, battle of, 244.
Niagara, Battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Niagara, Fort, capture and massacre, 162.
Niagara, Fort, takeover and massacre, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
North Point, battle of, 286.
North Point, Battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Ogdensburg, expedition against, 047.
Ogdensburg, expedition against, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Old Ironsides, 081.
Old Ironsides, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
O'Neill, at Havre de Grace, 170.
O'Neill, at Havre de Grace, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Oswego, Yeo's expedition against, 253.
Oswego, Yeo's mission against, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Parker, Sir Peter, killed, 286.
Parker, Sir Peter, murdered, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Peace negotiations, 223.
Peace talks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Peake, Capt., killed, 195.
Capt. Peake killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Pearce, Col., at York, 103.
Pearce, Col., in York, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Pearson, Lieut.-Col., at Chippewa, 232.
Pearson, Lt. Col., at Chippewa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Percy, Capt., at Mobile, 334.
Percy, Capt., in Mobile, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Perry, Capt., commands a battery on the Potomac, 284.
Perry, Capt., leads a battery on the Potomac, 284.
Pensacola, occupied by Jackson, 335.
Pensacola, taken by Jackson, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Pettigrew, Lieut., captures stores, 107.
Pettigrew, Lieut., seizes supplies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Plattsburg, battle of, 261.
Plattsburgh, battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Poinsett, Joel R., United States Consul at Valparaiso, demands protection for the Essex, 313.
Poinsett, Joel R., U.S. Consul in Valparaiso, is asking for protection for the Essex, 313.
Political parties, explanation, 016.
Political parties explained, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Porter, Col.M., at Fort George, 109.
Porter, Col. M., at Fort George, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Prairie du Chien captured, 258.
Prairie du Chien taken, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Pryor, Capt., at Hampton, 174.
Pryor, Capt., at Hampton, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Purdy, Col., on the Chateaugua,158.
Purdy, Col., on the Chautauqua, 158.
Putnam, Major, at Lastport, 268.
Putnam, Major, at Lastport, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Queenstown, battle of, 049.
Queenstown, Battle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Race, a celebrated naval, 066.
Race, a renowned navy __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Raisin, massacre at the, 089.
Raisin, the massacre at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Randall, Col., at Stonington, 273.
Randall, Col., at Stonington, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Red Jacket at Chippewa, 234.
Red Jacket at Chippewa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Reid, Capt. Samuel C., in the General Armstrong, 322.
Reid, Capt. Samuel C., in the General Armstrong, 322.
Rhea, Capt., at Fort Wayne, 040.
Rhea, Capt., at Fort Wayne, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Riddle, Lieutenant, at York, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ in Buffalo, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Riot in Baltimore, 021.
Baltimore riot, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Ripley, Gen. E. W., succeeds, and at Lundy's Lane, 243.
Ripley, Gen. E. W., succeeds, and at Lundy's Lane, 243.
Rochester, N. Y., 231.
Rochester, NY, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Rodgers, Com. John, naval battles, 62-64.
Rodgers, Com. John, naval battles, 62-64.
Ross, Gen., his expedition against Washington, 274; killed, 286-87.
Ross, Gen., his mission against Washington, 274; killed, 286-87.
Rottenberg, Gen. de, attacks Wilkinson's expedition, 153.
Rottenberg, Gen. de, launches an attack on Wilkinson's expedition, 153.
Ruff, negro boy, drowned, 318.
Ruff, Black boy, drowned, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Rule of 1756, 011.
Rule of 1756, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Russell, Jonathan, made a peace commissioner, 226.
Russell, Jonathan, was appointed as a peace commissioner, 226.
Russian Government offers mediation, 225.
Russian government offers to mediate, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Sackett's Harbor, attack on, in.
Attack on Sackett's Harbor.
St. Clair, Commander Arth., his expedition to Michilimackinac, 258.
St. Clair, Commander Arthur, his trip to Michilimackinac, 258.
St. Leonard's Creek, fight in, 275.
St. Leonard's Creek, fight in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Salaberry, Lieut.-Col. de, defeats Hampton, 157.
Salaberry, Lieutenant Colonel de, defeats Hampton, 157.
Sandy Creek, fight at, 256.
Sandy Creek, battle at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Bounty offered for scalps, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Scituate, Mass., shipping burned at, 273.
Scituate, Mass., shipping burned at, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Forced enlistment of seamen, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Servant, Capt., at Hampton, 174.
Servant, Captain, at Hampton, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Shaler, Capt. N., his sea-fight, 215.
Shaler, Capt. N., his naval battle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Shead, Sailing Master, in fight with sloop Martin, 169.
Shead, Sailing Master, in battle with the sloop Martin, 169.
Shelby, Gov., in Harrison's campaign, 140.
Shelby, Gov., in Harrison's campaign, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Sheldon, Lieut., at La Colle, 252,
Sheldon, Lt., at La Colle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Short, Lieut.-Col., his ideas about quarter, 095.
Short, Lieut.-Col., his thoughts on accommodation, 095.
Smith, Sydney, quoted, 350.
Smith, Sydney, quoted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Sodus, N. Y., burned, 121.
Sodus, NY, burned, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Springs, definition of, 313, note.
Springs, definition of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ reference.
Stafford, Capt. W. S., his cruise in the Dolphin, 217.
Stafford, Capt. W. S., his journey in the Dolphin, 217.
Stansbury, Gen., at Bladensburg, 279.
Stansbury, Gen., in Bladensburg, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Stephenson, Fort, siege of, 094.
Stephenson, Fort, siege of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Stewart, Capt. Charles, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ in the Constitution, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Stone, Col., bums St. Davids, and is court-martialed, 238.
Stone, Col., burns St. Davids and is court-martialed, 238.
Stonington, Conn., bombarded, 270.
Stonington, Conn., bombarded, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Stony Creek, battle of, 118.
Battle of Stony Creek, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Strieker, Gen., at North Point, 286.
Strieker, Gen., at North Point, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Swartwout, Gen. Robert, at Chrysler's
Gen. Robert Swartwout at Chrysler's
Field, 154.
Field, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Swift, Gen. J., at Poultneyville, 256.
Swift, Gen. J., in Poultneyville, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Talladega, battle of, 185.
Talladega, showdown of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Tallnschatches, battle of, 184.
Tallnschatches, Battle of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Tar-cha-chee, death of, 192.
Tar-cha-chee, death of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Thames, battle of the, 140.
Thames, Battle of the, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Thornton, Col., at N. Orleans, 342.
Thornton, Col., in New Orleans, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Tuscarora, N. Y., burned, 164.
Tuscarora, NY, burned, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Tuttle, Lieut.-Col., at Sackett's Harbor, 116.
Tuttle, Lieutenant Colonel, at Sackett's Harbor, 116.
Typee Valley, Porter's campaign in, 297. J
Typee Valley, Porter's campaign in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ J
Van Lloyd, Capt., at Fayal, 323.
Capt. Van Lloyd, in Fayal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Van Rensselaer, Lieut.-Col. Sol. at battle of Queenstown, 050.
Van Rensselaer, Lieutenant Colonel Sol. at the battle of Queenstown, 050.
Van Rensselaer, Gen. Stephen, in command on the Niagara, 049.
Van Rensselaer, Gen. Stephen, in charge on the Niagara, 049.
Vincent, Gen., at Stony Creek, 117.
Vincent, Gen., at Stony Creek, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Wadsworth, Gen. William, at Queenstown, 056.
Wadsworth, Gen. William, at Queenstown, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Walbach, Adjt.-Gen., at Chrysler's Field, 156.
Walbach, Adjt.-Gen., at Chrysler's Field, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
War, its issue determined by the battle-ground, 024.
War, its outcome determined by the battlefield, 024.
Wareham, Mass., raid on, 273.
Wareham, MA, raid on, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Warren, Admiral, joins Cockburn in the Chesapeake, 171.
Warren, Admiral, teams up with Cockburn in the Chesapeake, 171.
Washington, Ross's campaign against, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ burned, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Whinyates, Capt., loses the Frolic, 073.
Capt. Whinyates loses the Frolic, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Whitley, Col., killed, 147.
Whitley, Col., killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Wilmer, Lieut., killed, 318.
Wilmer, Lt., killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Winchester, Gen., his expedition, 084.
Winchester, Gen., his mission, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Wood, Capt., quoted, 093.
Wood, Capt., quoted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
York, mission against, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Youngstown, N. Y., burned, 164.
Youngstown, NY, is on fire, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!